This is a modern-English version of A Dish of Orts : Chiefly Papers on the Imagination, and on Shakespeare, originally written by MacDonald, George.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
A DISH OF ORTS
By George Macdonald
PREFACE.
Since printing throughout the title Orts, a doubt has arisen in my mind as to its fitting the nature of the volume. It could hardly, however, be imagined that I associate the idea of worthlessness with the work contained in it. No one would insult his readers by offering them what he counted valueless scraps, and telling them they were such. These papers, those two even which were caught in the net of the ready-writer from extempore utterance, whatever their merits in themselves; are the results of by no means trifling labour. So much a man ought to be able to say for his work. And hence I might defend, if not quite justify my title—for they are but fragmentary presentments of larger meditation. My friends at least will accept them as such, whether they like their collective title or not.
Since the publication of the title Orts, I’ve had some doubts about whether it really fits the nature of the book. However, it’s hard to believe that I would associate the idea of worthlessness with the content inside. No one would disrespect their readers by presenting what they considered to be worthless scraps, and then claiming they were just that. These papers, even the two that were quickly written down in a spontaneous moment, regardless of their individual merits, result from considerable effort. A person ought to be able to vouch for their work. Therefore, I might defend, if not completely justify, my title—since they are just incomplete presentations of larger thoughts. At the very least, my friends will accept them as such, whether or not they appreciate the collective title.
The title of the last is not quite suitable. It is that of the religious newspaper which reported the sermon. I noted the fact too late for correction. It ought to be True Greatness.
The title of the last isn’t quite right. It’s that of the religious newspaper that reported the sermon. I noticed this too late to make a change. It should be True Greatness.
The paper on The Fantastic Imagination had its origin in the repeated request of readers for an explanation of things in certain shorter stories I had written. It forms the preface to an American edition of my so-called Fairy Tales.
The paper on The Fantastic Imagination came about from the repeated requests of readers for an explanation of elements in some of the shorter stories I had written. It serves as the introduction to an American edition of my so-called Fairy Tales.
GEORGE MACDONALD.
George MacDonald.
EDENBRIDGE, KENT. August 5, 1893.
EDENBRIDGE, KENT. August 5, 1893.
CONTENTS
TABLE OF CONTENTS
THE IMAGINATION: ITS FUNCTIONS AND ITS CULTURE.
[Footnote: 1867.]
[Footnote: 1867.]
There are in whose notion education would seem to consist in the production of a certain repose through the development of this and that faculty, and the depression, if not eradication, of this and that other faculty. But if mere repose were the end in view, an unsparing depression of all the faculties would be the surest means of approaching it, provided always the animal instincts could be depressed likewise, or, better still, kept in a state of constant repletion. Happily, however, for the human race, it possesses in the passion of hunger even, a more immediate saviour than in the wisest selection and treatment of its faculties. For repose is not the end of education; its end is a noble unrest, an ever renewed awaking from the dead, a ceaseless questioning of the past for the interpretation of the future, an urging on of the motions of life, which had better far be accelerated into fever, than retarded into lethargy.
Some people believe that education is about creating a certain calm by developing some abilities while suppressing others. However, if calm were the ultimate goal, simply dulling all the faculties would be the most effective way to achieve it, as long as basic animal instincts could also be subdued, or even better, kept fully satisfied. Fortunately, for humanity, the basic instinct of hunger serves as a more immediate source of motivation than the careful cultivation of our abilities. Education isn’t meant to create calm; its true aim is a noble restlessness, a continual awakening from the status quo, an ongoing questioning of the past to understand the future, and a push toward the active flow of life, which is far better pushed into excitement than slowed into apathy.
By those who consider a balanced repose the end of culture, the imagination must necessarily be regarded as the one faculty before all others to be suppressed. “Are there not facts?” say they. “Why forsake them for fancies? Is there not that which, may be known? Why forsake it for inventions? What God hath made, into that let man inquire.”
By those who see a balanced rest as the ultimate goal of culture, imagination must be considered the first thing to suppress. “Aren’t there facts?” they say. “Why ignore them for fantasies? Isn’t there something that can be known? Why turn away from that for inventions? What God has created is what people should explore.”
We answer: To inquire into what God has made is the main function of the imagination. It is aroused by facts, is nourished by facts; seeks for higher and yet higher laws in those facts; but refuses to regard science as the sole interpreter of nature, or the laws of science as the only region of discovery.
We respond: The main purpose of the imagination is to explore what God has created. It is sparked by facts, sustained by facts, and looks for deeper and deeper laws within those facts. However, it does not see science as the only way to understand nature, nor does it consider the laws of science as the only area of exploration.
We must begin with a definition of the word imagination, or rather some description of the faculty to which we give the name.
We should start with a definition of the word imagination, or more accurately, a description of the ability we refer to by that name.
The word itself means an imaging or a making of likenesses. The imagination is that faculty which gives form to thought—not necessarily uttered form, but form capable of being uttered in shape or in sound, or in any mode upon which the senses can lay hold. It is, therefore, that faculty in man which is likest to the prime operation of the power of God, and has, therefore, been called the creative faculty, and its exercise creation. Poet means maker. We must not forget, however, that between creator and poet lies the one unpassable gulf which distinguishes—far be it from us to say divides—all that is God’s from all that is man’s; a gulf teeming with infinite revelations, but a gulf over which no man can pass to find out God, although God needs not to pass over it to find man; the gulf between that which calls, and that which is thus called into being; between that which makes in its own image and that which is made in that image. It is better to keep the word creation for that calling out of nothing which is the imagination of God; except it be as an occasional symbolic expression, whose daring is fully recognized, of the likeness of man’s work to the work of his maker. The necessary unlikeness between the creator and the created holds within it the equally necessary likeness of the thing made to him who makes it, and so of the work of the made to the work of the maker. When therefore, refusing to employ the word creation of the work of man, we yet use the word imagination of the work of God, we cannot be said to dare at all. It is only to give the name of man’s faculty to that power after which and by which it was fashioned. The imagination of man is made in the image of the imagination of God. Everything of man must have been of God first; and it will help much towards our understanding of the imagination and its functions in man if we first succeed in regarding aright the imagination of God, in which the imagination of man lives and moves and has its being.
The word itself means an imaging or creating of likenesses. The imagination is that ability that shapes thought—not necessarily in spoken words, but in a form that can be expressed as shape or sound, or in any way that the senses can perceive. It is, therefore, that part of us which is most like the fundamental action of God's power and has been called the creative faculty, with its use referred to as creation. Poet means maker. We must not forget, however, that between creator and poet lies an unbridgeable gap that distinguishes—far be it from us to say divides—all that belongs to God from all that belongs to man; a gap filled with countless revelations, but a gap that no one can cross to discover God, even though God does not need to cross it to find man; the gap between that which calls out and that which is called into existence; between that which creates in its own image and that which is created in that image. It's better to reserve the word creation for that bringing forth from nothing that is God's imagination; unless it's used as an occasional symbolic expression, fully recognizing the boldness of comparing man's work to the work of his creator. The necessary difference between the creator and the created simultaneously holds the necessary similarity of the created thing to the one who made it, and thus of the work done by the created to the work of the maker. Therefore, when we refuse to use the word creation to describe human work, but still use the word imagination for God's work, we can't be said to be taking risks at all. It's merely giving the name of human ability to that power after which and by which it was shaped. The imagination of man is made in the image of the imagination of God. Everything that is human must have originated from God first; and it will greatly enhance our understanding of imagination and its functions in humans if we first manage to properly regard God's imagination, in which man's imagination exists and operates.
As to what thought is in the mind of God ere it takes form, or what the form is to him ere he utters it; in a word, what the consciousness of God is in either case, all we can say is, that our consciousness in the resembling conditions must, afar off, resemble his. But when we come to consider the acts embodying the Divine thought (if indeed thought and act be not with him one and the same), then we enter a region of large difference. We discover at once, for instance, that where a man would make a machine, or a picture, or a book, God makes the man that makes the book, or the picture, or the machine. Would God give us a drama? He makes a Shakespere. Or would he construct a drama more immediately his own? He begins with the building of the stage itself, and that stage is a world—a universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they do not act,—they are their part. He utters them into the visible to work out their life—his drama. When he would have an epic, he sends a thinking hero into his drama, and the epic is the soliloquy of his Hamlet. Instead of writing his lyrics, he sets his birds and his maidens a-singing. All the processes of the ages are God’s science; all the flow of history is his poetry. His sculpture is not in marble, but in living and speech-giving forms, which pass away, not to yield place to those that come after, but to be perfected in a nobler studio. What he has done remains, although it vanishes; and he never either forgets what he has once done, or does it even once again. As the thoughts move in the mind of a man, so move the worlds of men and women in the mind of God, and make no confusion there, for there they had their birth, the offspring of his imagination. Man is but a thought of God.
As for what thoughts exist in the mind of God before they take shape, or what the form means to him before he expresses it; in short, what God's consciousness is in either situation, all we can say is that our consciousness, under similar conditions, must, to some degree, resemble his. But when we think about the actions that represent the Divine thought (if, in fact, thought and action are not one and the same for him), we enter a realm of significant difference. For instance, we immediately realize that while a person would create a machine, a painting, or a book, God creates the person who makes the book, or the painting, or the machine. If God wants to give us a play, he creates a Shakespeare. Or if he wants to create a play that is more directly his own, he starts by constructing the very stage, and that stage is a world—a universe of worlds. He makes the actors, and they don’t just act—they are their roles. He brings them into the visible realm to carry out their lives—his drama. When he wants an epic, he sends a thoughtful hero into his play, and the epic becomes the soliloquy of his Hamlet. Instead of writing his lyrics, he causes his birds and maidens to sing. All the processes of the ages are God's science; the entire flow of history is his poetry. His sculpture isn’t made of marble, but of living and speaking forms that pass away not to make room for those that follow, but to be perfected in a greater workshop. What he has done remains, even as it fades away; he never forgets what he has created, nor does he recreate it. Just as thoughts flow in a person's mind, so do the lives of men and women flow in the mind of God, and there is no mix-up, for that is where they originated, the product of his imagination. Humanity is merely a thought of God.
If we now consider the so-called creative faculty in man, we shall find that in no primary sense is this faculty creative. Indeed, a man is rather being thought than thinking, when a new thought arises in his mind. He knew it not till he found it there, therefore he could not even have sent for it. He did not create it, else how could it be the surprise that it was when it arose? He may, indeed, in rare instances foresee that something is coming, and make ready the place for its birth; but that is the utmost relation of consciousness and will he can bear to the dawning idea. Leaving this aside, however, and turning to the embodiment or revelation of thought, we shall find that a man no more creates the forms by which he would reveal his thoughts, than he creates those thoughts themselves.
If we think about the so-called creative ability in people, we’ll see that in no primary sense is this ability truly creative. In fact, a person is more like being thought than thinking when a new idea appears in their mind. They didn’t know it was there until they discovered it, so they couldn’t have actively sought it out. They didn’t create it; otherwise, how could it be such a surprise when it appeared? Although someone may, in rare cases, sense that something is coming and prepare for its arrival, that’s the farthest extent of their awareness and will regarding the emerging idea. But if we set that aside and focus on the embodiment or expression of thought, we’ll find that a person does not create the forms through which they express their thoughts any more than they create those thoughts themselves.
For what are the forms by means of which a man may reveal his thoughts? Are they not those of nature? But although he is created in the closest sympathy with these forms, yet even these forms are not born in his mind. What springs there is the perception that this or that form is already an expression of this or that phase of thought or of feeling. For the world around him is an outward figuration of the condition of his mind; an inexhaustible storehouse of forms whence he may choose exponents—the crystal pitchers that shall protect his thought and not need to be broken that the light may break forth. The meanings are in those forms already, else they could be no garment of unveiling. God has made the world that it should thus serve his creature, developing in the service that imagination whose necessity it meets. The man has but to light the lamp within the form: his imagination is the light, it is not the form. Straightway the shining thought makes the form visible, and becomes itself visible through the form. [Footnote: We would not be understood to say that the man works consciously even in this. Oftentimes, if not always, the vision arises in the mind, thought and form together.]
What are the ways a person can express their thoughts? Are they not rooted in nature? Even though he is closely connected to these forms, they don’t originate in his mind. What emerges there is the understanding that this or that form already reflects this or that aspect of thought or feeling. The world around him is an outward expression of his mental state; it’s an endless reservoir of forms from which he can choose representations—the clear vessels that will protect his thoughts without needing to be shattered for the light to shine through. The meanings are already present in those forms; otherwise, they wouldn’t serve as a way to reveal. God has created the world to serve humanity, enriching the imagination it fulfills. A person only needs to ignite the light within the form: his imagination is the light, not the form itself. Immediately, the bright idea makes the form visible, and through the form, it becomes visible itself. [Footnote: We do not intend to imply that a person is always conscious in this process. Often, if not always, the vision appears in the mind, thought and form together.]
In illustration of what we mean, take a passage from the poet Shelley.
In order to illustrate what we mean, let's consider a passage from the poet Shelley.
In his poem Adonais, written upon the death of Keats, representing death as the revealer of secrets, he says:—
In his poem Adonais, written after Keats' death, portraying death as a discloser of truths, he states:—
“The one remains; the many change and pass; Heaven’s light for ever shines; earth’s shadows fly; Life, like a dome of many coloured glass, Stains the white radiance of eternity, Until death tramples it to fragments.”
“The one stays; the many change and fade away; Heaven’s light forever shines; earth’s shadows disappear; Life, like a dome of colorful glass, Tints the pure brightness of eternity, Until death crushes it into pieces.”
This is a new embodiment, certainly, whence he who gains not, for the moment at least, a loftier feeling of death, must be dull either of heart or of understanding. But has Shelley created this figure, or only put together its parts according to the harmony of truths already embodied in each of the parts? For first he takes the inventions of his fellow-men, in glass, in colour, in dome: with these he represents life as finite though elevated, and as an analysis although a lovely one. Next he presents eternity as the dome of the sky above this dome of coloured glass—the sky having ever been regarded as the true symbol of eternity. This portion of the figure he enriches by the attribution of whiteness, or unity and radiance. And last, he shows us Death as the destroying revealer, walking aloft through, the upper region, treading out this life-bubble of colours, that the man may look beyond it and behold the true, the uncoloured, the all-coloured.
This is definitely a new representation; anyone who doesn't feel at least a deeper sense of death right now must either be lacking in heart or understanding. But did Shelley create this figure, or did he just piece together its parts based on the harmony of truths already present in each part? First, he takes the creations of others—like glass, color, and dome—and uses them to depict life as finite yet elevated, analyzing it in a beautiful way. Next, he presents eternity as the sky's dome above this colored glass dome—the sky has always been seen as the true symbol of eternity. He enhances this part by associating it with whiteness, or unity and brightness. Finally, he portrays Death as the revealing destroyer, moving through the higher realm, extinguishing this life-bubble of colors, so that people may look beyond it and see the true, the uncolored, the all-colored.
But although the human imagination has no choice but to make use of the forms already prepared for it, its operation is the same as that of the divine inasmuch as it does put thought into form. And if it be to man what creation is to God, we must expect to find it operative in every sphere of human activity. Such is, indeed, the fact, and that to a far greater extent than is commonly supposed.
But even though the human imagination has to use the shapes already available to it, its process is similar to that of the divine because it shapes thoughts into forms. If it serves humanity like creation serves God, we should expect it to be active in every area of human life. This is indeed the case, and to an even greater extent than most people realize.
The sovereignty of the imagination, for instance, over the region of poetry will hardly, in the present day at least, be questioned; but not every one is prepared to be told that the imagination has had nearly as much to do with the making of our language as with “Macbeth” or the “Paradise Lost.” The half of our language is the work of the imagination.
The power of imagination, especially when it comes to poetry, is unlikely to be challenged today; however, not everyone is ready to accept that imagination has played a significant role in shaping our language, just like it has with “Macbeth” or “Paradise Lost.” Half of our language is crafted by the imagination.
For how shall two agree together what name they shall give to a thought or a feeling. How shall the one show the other that which is invisible? True, he can unveil the mind’s construction in the face—that living eternally changeful symbol which God has hung in front of the unseen spirit—but that without words reaches only to the expression of present feeling. To attempt to employ it alone for the conveyance of the intellectual or the historical would constantly mislead; while the expression of feeling itself would be misinterpreted, especially with regard to cause and object: the dumb show would be worse than dumb.
For how can two people agree on what name to give a thought or a feeling? How can one person show the other what’s invisible? Sure, they can reveal what’s going on in their mind through their expression—the ever-changing symbol that God has placed in front of the unseen spirit—but that, without words, only shows current feelings. Trying to use it alone to communicate complex ideas or history would constantly lead to misunderstandings, and the expression of feelings would be misinterpreted too, especially regarding cause and effect: a silent display would be worse than silence.
But let a man become aware of some new movement within him. Loneliness comes with it, for he would share his mind with his friend, and he cannot; he is shut up in speechlessness. Thus
But let a man notice some new feeling inside him. Loneliness comes along with it, because he wants to share his thoughts with his friend, but he can't; he is trapped in silence. Thus
He may live a man forbid Weary seven nights nine times nine,
He may live as a man forbids, Tired for seven nights, nine times nine,
or the first moment of his perplexity may be that of his release. Gazing about him in pain, he suddenly beholds the material form of his immaterial condition. There stands his thought! God thought it before him, and put its picture there ready for him when he wanted it. Or, to express the thing more prosaically, the man cannot look around him long without perceiving some form, aspect, or movement of nature, some relation between its forms, or between such and himself which resembles the state or motion within him. This he seizes as the symbol, as the garment or body of his invisible thought, presents it to his friend, and his friend understands him. Every word so employed with a new meaning is henceforth, in its new character, born of the spirit and not of the flesh, born of the imagination and not of the understanding, and is henceforth submitted to new laws of growth and modification.
The first moment of his confusion might actually be the moment he is freed. Looking around in distress, he suddenly sees the physical representation of his mental state. There is his thought! God conceived it before he did, and created its image, ready for him when he needed it. Or, to put it more simply, he can’t look around for long without noticing some form, shape, or movement in nature, some connection between those forms or between them and himself that reflects the feelings or actions within him. He grabs onto this as a symbol, the expression of his unseen thought, shares it with his friend, and his friend gets it. Every word used this way, now with a new meaning, is from now on a product of the spirit rather than the body, a creation of the imagination rather than the intellect, and will thereafter follow new rules of development and change.
“Thinkest thou,” says Carlyle in “Past and Present,” “there were no poets till Dan Chaucer? No heart burning with a thought which it could not hold, and had no word for; and needed to shape and coin a word for—what thou callest a metaphor, trope, or the like? For every word we have there was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a glowing new metaphor and bold questionable originality. Thy very ATTENTION, does it not mean an attentio, a STRETCHING-TO? Fancy that act of the mind, which all were conscious of, which none had yet named,—when this new poet first felt bound and driven to name it. His questionable originality and new glowing metaphor was found adoptable, intelligible, and remains our name for it to this day.”
“Do you think,” says Carlyle in “Past and Present,” “that there were no poets until Dan Chaucer? Was there not a heart burning with a thought that it couldn't contain, lacking the right words to express it, needing to create and coin a word for—what you call a metaphor, trope, or something similar? For every word we have, there was such a man and poet. The coldest word was once a vibrant new metaphor and a bold, questionable originality. Your very ATTENTION, doesn’t it come from attentio, meaning a STRETCHING-TO? Imagine that mental act, which everyone felt but had yet to name—when this new poet first felt compelled to name it. His questionable originality and new vibrant metaphor became acceptable, understandable, and still stands as our term for it today.”
All words, then, belonging to the inner world of the mind, are of the imagination, are originally poetic words. The better, however, any such word is fitted for the needs of humanity, the sooner it loses its poetic aspect by commonness of use. It ceases to be heard as a symbol, and appears only as a sign. Thus thousands of words which were originally poetic words owing their existence to the imagination, lose their vitality, and harden into mummies of prose. Not merely in literature does poetry come first, and prose afterwards, but poetry is the source of all the language that belongs to the inner world, whether it be of passion or of metaphysics, of psychology or of aspiration. No poetry comes by the elevation of prose; but the half of prose comes by the “massing into the common clay” of thousands of winged words, whence, like the lovely shells of by-gone ages, one is occasionally disinterred by some lover of speech, and held up to the light to show the play of colour in its manifold laminations.
All words that belong to the inner world of the mind are imaginative and originally poetic. However, the more a word serves humanity's needs, the quicker it loses its poetic quality due to common use. It stops being heard as a symbol and becomes just a sign. Thus, thousands of words that were once poetic—coming from the imagination—lose their vitality and become stiff mummies of prose. Poetry doesn’t just come first in literature; it’s the foundation of all language connected to the inner world, whether it’s about passion, metaphysics, psychology, or aspiration. No poetry is born from elevating prose, but a significant part of prose emerges from the "massing into the common clay" of countless inspired words, which, like beautiful shells from ancient times, are sometimes unearthed by a lover of language and held up to the light to reveal the interplay of colors in their many layers.
For the world is—allow us the homely figure—the human being turned inside out. All that moves in the mind is symbolized in Nature. Or, to use another more philosophical, and certainly not less poetic figure, the world is a sensuous analysis of humanity, and hence an inexhaustible wardrobe for the clothing of human thought. Take any word expressive of emotion—take the word emotion itself—and you will find that its primary meaning is of the outer world. In the swaying of the woods, in the unrest of the “wavy plain,” the imagination saw the picture of a well-known condition of the human mind; and hence the word emotion. [Footnote: This passage contains only a repetition of what is far better said in the preceding extract from Carlyle, but it was written before we had read (if reviewers may be allowed to confess such ignorance) the book from which that extract is taken.]
For the world is—if you’ll allow us this simple analogy—the human being flipped inside out. Everything that happens in the mind is represented in Nature. Or, to use a more philosophical and definitely poetic comparison, the world is a sensory reflection of humanity, making it an endless wardrobe for dressing human thought. Take any word that expresses an emotion—take the word emotion itself—and you’ll find that its basic meaning refers to the outside world. In the swaying of the trees, in the restlessness of the “wavy plain,” the imagination pictured a familiar state of the human mind; and that's where the word emotion comes from. [Footnote: This passage merely reiterates something that has been expressed much better in the earlier excerpt from Carlyle, but it was written before we had read (if reviewers can admit such ignorance) the book from which that excerpt is taken.]
But while the imagination of man has thus the divine function of putting thought into form, it has a duty altogether human, which is paramount to that function—the duty, namely, which springs from his immediate relation to the Father, that of following and finding out the divine imagination in whose image it was made. To do this, the man must watch its signs, its manifestations. He must contemplate what the Hebrew poets call the works of His hands.
But while human imagination has the divine ability to shape thought into form, it also has a crucial human responsibility that takes priority over that ability—specifically, the responsibility that comes from its direct relationship with the Father, which is to pursue and discover the divine imagination in whose likeness it was created. To achieve this, a person must observe its signs and manifestations. They must reflect on what the Hebrew poets refer to as the works of His hands.
“But to follow those is the province of the intellect, not of the imagination.”—We will leave out of the question at present that poetic interpretation of the works of Nature with which the intellect has almost nothing, and the imagination almost everything, to do. It is unnecessary to insist that the higher being of a flower even is dependent for its reception upon the human imagination; that science may pull the snowdrop to shreds, but cannot find out the idea of suffering hope and pale confident submission, for the sake of which that darling of the spring looks out of heaven, namely, God’s heart, upon us his wiser and more sinful children; for if there be any truth in this region of things acknowledged at all, it will be at the same time acknowledged that that region belongs to the imagination. We confine ourselves to that questioning of the works of God which is called the province of science.
“But following those is the realm of the intellect, not the imagination.” — For now, we’ll set aside the poetic interpretation of Nature's works, which has almost nothing to do with the intellect and almost everything to do with the imagination. It’s unnecessary to stress that the deeper essence of a flower relies on human imagination; science can break the snowdrop down to its components but cannot grasp the idea of suffering hope and pale confident submission, for which that beloved of spring gazes down from heaven, essentially, from God’s heart, upon us, His wiser and more sinful children. If there is any truth in this area at all, it’s also recognized that this area belongs to the imagination. We limit ourselves to that inquiry into God’s works that is known as the domain of science.
“Shall, then, the human intellect,” we ask, “come into readier contact with the divine imagination than that human imagination?” The work of the Higher must be discovered by the search of the Lower in degree which is yet similar in kind. Let us not be supposed to exclude the intellect from a share in every highest office. Man is not divided when the manifestations of his life are distinguished. The intellect “is all in every part.” There were no imagination without intellect, however much it may appear that intellect can exist without imagination. What we mean to insist upon is, that in finding out the works of God, the Intellect must labour, workman-like, under the direction of the architect, Imagination. Herein, too, we proceed in the hope to show how much more than is commonly supposed the imagination has to do with human endeavour; how large a share it has in the work that is done under the sun.
“Can the human intellect,” we ask, “connect more easily with the divine imagination than with our own imagination?” The work of the Higher must be discovered through the search of the Lower, which is similar in nature but different in degree. Let’s not assume that we exclude the intellect from participating in any of the highest roles. A person is not divided when the various aspects of their life are recognized. The intellect “is all in every part.” There is no imagination without intellect, even if it seems that intellect can exist without imagination. What we want to emphasize is that in discovering God’s works, the Intellect must work diligently under the guidance of the architect, Imagination. Here, too, we hope to show how much more the imagination influences human efforts than is commonly believed; how significant a role it plays in the work done under the sun.
“But how can the imagination have anything to do with science? That region, at least, is governed by fixed laws.”
“But how can imagination have anything to do with science? That area is definitely governed by strict laws.”
“True,” we answer. “But how much do we know of these laws? How much of science already belongs to the region of the ascertained—in other words, has been conquered by the intellect? We will not now dispute, your vindication of the ascertained from the intrusion of the imagination; but we do claim for it all the undiscovered, all the unexplored.” “Ah, well! There it can do little harm. There let it run riot if you will.” “No,” we reply. “Licence is not what we claim when we assert the duty of the imagination to be that of following and finding out the work that God maketh. Her part is to understand God ere she attempts to utter man. Where is the room for being fanciful or riotous here? It is only the ill-bred, that is, the uncultivated imagination that will amuse itself where it ought to worship and work.”
“True,” we respond. “But how much do we really know about these laws? How much of science is already part of what we’ve proven—in other words, what we’ve intellectualized? We won't argue against your defense of the proven against the interference of imagination; rather, we assert that it includes all that remains undiscovered, all that’s unexplored.” “Ah, well! There it can cause little harm. Let it run wild if you want.” “No,” we reply. “What we seek isn't freedom to be reckless; we insist that the imagination's duty is to follow and uncover the work of God. Its role is to understand God before it tries to express humanity. Where's the space to be fanciful or wild in that? It’s only those with poor manners, meaning an uncultivated imagination, who entertain themselves where they ought to reverence and engage in meaningful work.”
“But the facts of Nature are to be discovered only by observation and experiment.” True. But how does the man of science come to think of his experiments? Does observation reach to the non-present, the possible, the yet unconceived? Even if it showed you the experiments which ought to be made, will observation reveal to you the experiments which might be made? And who can tell of which kind is the one that carries in its bosom the secret of the law you seek? We yield you your facts. The laws we claim for the prophetic imagination. “He hath set the world in man’s heart,” not in his understanding. And the heart must open the door to the understanding. It is the far-seeing imagination which beholds what might be a form of things, and says to the intellect: “Try whether that may not be the form of these things;” which beholds or invents a harmonious relation of parts and operations, and sends the intellect to find out whether that be not the harmonious relation of them—that is, the law of the phenomenon it contemplates. Nay, the poetic relations themselves in the phenomenon may suggest to the imagination the law that rules its scientific life. Yea, more than this: we dare to claim for the true, childlike, humble imagination, such an inward oneness with the laws of the universe that it possesses in itself an insight into the very nature of things.
“But the facts of Nature can only be discovered through observation and experiment.” True. But how does a scientist come up with their experiments? Does observation extend to the non-present, the possible, the yet unconceived? Even if it indicates the experiments that should be conducted, will observation reveal the experiments that could be conducted? And who can determine which type of experiment holds the key to the law you’re searching for? We give you your facts. The laws, we argue, come from prophetic imagination. “He has set the world in man’s heart,” not in his mind. And the heart must open the door to understanding. It is the far-sighted imagination that perceives what could be a form of things and says to the intellect: “See if that might be the form of these things;” which sees or invents a harmonious relationship of parts and actions, and prompts the intellect to discover whether that is not the harmonious relationship of them—that is, the law of the phenomenon it observes. Indeed, the poetic relationships within the phenomenon may inspire the imagination regarding the law that governs its scientific existence. Moreover, we dare to assert that true, childlike, humble imagination has such an inner unity with the laws of the universe that it holds within itself an understanding of the very nature of things.
Lord Bacon tells us that a prudent question is the half of knowledge. Whence comes this prudent question? we repeat. And we answer, From the imagination. It is the imagination that suggests in what direction to make the new inquiry—which, should it cast no immediate light on the answer sought, can yet hardly fail to be a step towards final discovery. Every experiment has its origin in hypothesis; without the scaffolding of hypothesis, the house of science could never arise. And the construction of any hypothesis whatever is the work of the imagination. The man who cannot invent will never discover. The imagination often gets a glimpse of the law itself long before it is or can be ascertained to be a law. [Footnote: This paper was already written when, happening to mention the present subject to a mathematical friend, a lecturer at one of the universities, he gave us a corroborative instance. He had lately guessed that a certain algebraic process could be shortened exceedingly if the method which his imagination suggested should prove to be a true one—that is, an algebraic law. He put it to the test of experiment—committed the verification, that is, into the hands of his intellect—and found the method true. It has since been accepted by the Royal Society.
Lord Bacon tells us that a smart question is half of knowledge. Where does this smart question come from? we ask. And we answer, From the imagination. It’s the imagination that suggests which direction to pursue the new inquiry—which, even if it doesn’t immediately shed light on the answer we seek, can still be a step towards the final discovery. Every experiment starts with a hypothesis; without the framework of hypothesis, the structure of science could never be built. And creating any hypothesis is the work of imagination. A person who can’t invent will never discover. Imagination often catches a glimpse of the law itself long before it can be confirmed as a law. [Footnote: This paper was already written when, mentioning the current topic to a math friend, a lecturer at one of the universities, he provided a corroborative example. He had recently figured that a certain algebraic process could be significantly shortened if the method suggested by his imagination turned out to be a true one—that is, an algebraic law. He tested it through experimentation—handed the verification, that is, over to his intellect—and found the method to be true. It has since been accepted by the Royal Society.]
Noteworthy illustration we have lately found in the record of the experiences of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman of the name of McLevy. That the service of the imagination in the solution of the problems peculiar to his calling is well known to him, we could adduce many proofs. He recognizes its function in the construction of the theory which shall unite this and that hint into an organic whole, and he expressly sets forth the need of a theory before facts can be serviceable:—
Notable example we've recently discovered in the accounts of an Edinburgh detective, an Irishman named McLevy. It’s clear that he understands the role of imagination in solving the unique problems of his job; we could provide plenty of evidence for this. He acknowledges its importance in forming a theory that brings together various clues into a cohesive whole, and he explicitly states that a theory is necessary before facts can be useful:—
“I would wait for my ‘idea’.... I never did any good without mine.... Chance never smiled on me unless I poked her some way; so that my ‘notion,’ after all, has been in the getting of it my own work only perfected by a higher hand.”
“I would wait for my ‘idea’.... I never did anything good without mine.... Luck never favored me unless I made an effort; so that my ‘notion,’ in the end, has been my own work, just refined by a higher power.”
“On leaving the shop I went direct to Prince’s Street,—of course with an idea in my mind; and somehow I have always been contented with one idea when I could not get another; and the advantage of sticking by one is, that the other don’t jostle it and turn you about in a circle when you should go in a straight line.” (Footnote: Since quoting the above I have learned that the book referred to is unworthy of confidence. But let it stand as illustration where it cannot be proof.)]
“After leaving the shop, I went straight to Prince’s Street—obviously with an idea in my head; and I've always been satisfied with one idea when I couldn't think of another. The benefit of sticking to one is that the others don’t crowd in and confuse you when you should be moving forward.” (Footnote: Since quoting the above, I’ve discovered that the book mentioned is not reliable. But let it remain as an example where it can't be considered evidence.)
The region belonging to the pure intellect is straitened: the imagination labours to extend its territories, to give it room. She sweeps across the borders, searching out new lands into which she may guide her plodding brother. The imagination is the light which redeems from the darkness for the eyes of the understanding. Novalis says, “The imagination is the stuff of the intellect”—affords, that is, the material upon which the intellect works. And Bacon, in his “Advancement of Learning,” fully recognizes this its office, corresponding to the foresight of God in this, that it beholds afar off. And he says: “Imagination is much akin to miracle-working faith.” [Footnote: We are sorry we cannot verify this quotation, for which we are indebted to Mr. Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the novel of that ilk. There is, however, little room for doubt that it is sufficiently correct.]
The realm of pure intellect is limited: imagination strives to expand its boundaries, seeking more space. It crosses the borders, exploring new areas to guide its diligent counterpart. Imagination is the light that brings understanding out of darkness. Novalis states, “Imagination is the essence of intellect”—it provides the material for the intellect to work with. Bacon, in his “Advancement of Learning,” fully acknowledges this role, likening it to God’s foresight, as it perceives things from a distance. He says, “Imagination is very similar to miracle-working faith.” [Footnote: We apologize for not being able to verify this quote, which we received from Mr. Oldbuck the Antiquary, in the novel of the same name. However, there is little doubt that it is mostly correct.]
In the scientific region of her duty of which we speak, the Imagination cannot have her perfect work; this belongs to another and higher sphere than that of intellectual truth—that, namely, of full-globed humanity, operating in which she gives birth to poetry—truth in beauty. But her function in the complete sphere of our nature, will, at the same time, influence her more limited operation in the sections that belong to science. Coleridge says that no one but a poet will make any further great discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon says that “wonder,” that faculty of the mind especially attendant on the child-like imagination, “is the seed of knowledge.” The influence of the poetic upon the scientific imagination is, for instance, especially present in the construction of an invisible whole from the hints afforded by a visible part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, its broken relations, are the only guides to a multiplex harmony, completeness, and end, which is the whole. From a little bone, worn with ages of death, older than the man can think, his scientific imagination dashed with the poetic, calls up the form, size, habits, periods, belonging to an animal never beheld by human eyes, even to the mingling contrasts of scales and wings, of feathers and hair. Through the combined lenses of science and imagination, we look back into ancient times, so dreadful in their incompleteness, that it may well have been the task of seraphic faith, as well as of cherubic imagination, to behold in the wallowing monstrosities of the terror-teeming earth, the prospective, quiet, age-long labour of God preparing the world with all its humble, graceful service for his unborn Man. The imagination of the poet, on the other hand, dashed with the imagination of the man of science, revealed to Goethe the prophecy of the flower in the leaf. No other than an artistic imagination, however, fulfilled of science, could have attained to the discovery of the fact that the leaf is the imperfect flower.
In the area of her expertise we're discussing, Imagination can't achieve her fullest potential; that belongs to a different, higher realm than intellectual truth—specifically, the realm of fully vibrant humanity, where she creates poetry—truth in beauty. However, her role within the complete scope of our nature will, at the same time, impact her more limited function in the domains that pertain to science. Coleridge states that only a poet will make any further great discoveries in mathematics; and Bacon mentions that "wonder," a mental faculty closely associated with child-like imagination, "is the seed of knowledge." The influence of the poetic on scientific imagination, for instance, is especially evident in constructing an unseen whole from the clues provided by a visible part; where the needs of the part, its uselessness, and its broken connections serve as the only guides to a complex harmony, completeness, and purpose, which is the whole. From a small bone, worn down over ages of death—older than what humanity can fathom—his scientific imagination, infused with the poetic, conjures up the shape, size, habits, and lifespan of an animal never seen by human eyes, even down to the contrasting scales and wings, feathers and fur. Through the combined lenses of science and imagination, we look back into the distant past, so terrifying in its incompleteness, that it may have been the role of angelic faith, as much as child-like imagination, to perceive in the grotesque creatures of a fear-filled earth the slow, steady handiwork of God preparing the world with all its humble, graceful service for his future Man. The imagination of the poet, combined with that of the scientist, revealed to Goethe the prophecy of the flower within the leaf. Only an artistic imagination enriched by science could have led to the realization that the leaf is an imperfect flower.
When we turn to history, however, we find probably the greatest operative sphere of the intellectuo-constructive imagination. To discover its laws; the cycles in which events return, with the reasons of their return, recognizing them notwithstanding metamorphosis; to perceive the vital motions of this spiritual body of mankind; to learn from its facts the rule of God; to construct from a succession of broken indications a whole accordant with human nature; to approach a scheme of the forces at work, the passions overwhelming or upheaving, the aspirations securely upraising, the selfishnesses debasing and crumbling, with the vital interworking of the whole; to illuminate all from the analogy with individual life, and from the predominant phases of individual character which are taken as the mind of the people—this is the province of the imagination. Without her influence no process of recording events can develop into a history. As truly might that be called the description of a volcano which occupied itself with a delineation of the shapes assumed by the smoke expelled from the mountain’s burning bosom. What history becomes under the full sway of the imagination may be seen in the “History of the French Revolution,” by Thomas Carlyle, at once a true picture, a philosophical revelation, a noble poem.
When we look at history, we find perhaps the greatest area for the creative imagination to operate. It's about discovering its patterns; understanding the cycles of events that repeat, along with the reasons they return, even as they change shapes; grasping the vital movements of humanity’s spiritual essence; learning from its facts to uncover the rules of God; piecing together a coherent picture from scattered signs that align with human nature; approaching a framework of the forces at play, the passions that crush or lift us, the dreams that uplift, the selfish tendencies that degrade and break down, all interworking in a vital way; illuminating everything through parallels with personal life and the dominant traits of individual character seen as the collective mindset—this is the realm of imagination. Without its influence, no collection of events can truly become history. It would be like trying to describe a volcano by only focusing on the shapes of the smoke coming from its fiery core. The true depth of history under the full influence of imagination can be seen in Thomas Carlyle's "History of the French Revolution," which is both a true depiction, a philosophical insight, and a beautiful poem.
There is a wonderful passage about Time in Shakespere’s “Rape of Lucrece,” which shows how he understood history. The passage is really about history, and not about time; for time itself does nothing—not even “blot old books and alter their contents.” It is the forces at work in time that produce all the changes; and they are history. We quote for the sake of one line chiefly, but the whole stanza is pertinent.
There is a great section about Time in Shakespeare’s “Rape of Lucrece,” which demonstrates his understanding of history. The section is more about history than time itself; because time alone doesn’t do anything—not even “blot old books and alter their contents.” It’s the forces operating within time that bring about all the changes; and those forces are history. We’re quoting mostly for one line, but the entire stanza is relevant.
“Time’s glory is to calm contending kings, To unmask falsehood, and bring truth to light, To stamp the seal of time in aged things, To wake the morn and sentinel the night, To wrong the wronger till he render right; To ruinate proud buildings with thy hours, And smear with dust their glittering golden towers.”
“Time’s glory is to calm warring kings, To reveal deception and bring truth to light, To leave the mark of time on old things, To wake the morning and watch over the night, To make the wrongdoer pay until he makes it right; To destroy proud buildings with your hours, And cover their shining golden towers with dust.”
To wrong the wronger till he render right. Here is a historical cycle worthy of the imagination of Shakespere, yea, worthy of the creative imagination of our God—the God who made the Shakespere with the imagination, as well as evolved the history from the laws which that imagination followed and found out.
To make the wrongdoer fix their wrongs. This is a historical cycle fit for the imagination of Shakespeare, indeed, deserving of the creative vision of our God—the God who crafted Shakespeare with imagination and also shaped history based on the principles that imagination discovered and adhered to.
In full instance we would refer our readers to Shakespere’s historical plays; and, as a side-illustration, to the fact that he repeatedly represents his greatest characters, when at the point of death, as relieving their overcharged minds by prophecy. Such prophecy is the result of the light of imagination, cleared of all distorting dimness by the vanishing of earthly hopes and desires, cast upon the facts of experience. Such prophecy is the perfect working of the historical imagination.
In every instance, we would direct our readers to Shakespeare's historical plays and, as a side note, to the fact that he often shows his greatest characters, when facing death, as easing their troubled minds through prophecy. This prophecy comes from the clarity of imagination, free from the fog of earthly hopes and desires, shining light on the facts of experience. This prophecy is the ideal function of historical imagination.
In the interpretation of individual life, the same principles hold; and nowhere can the imagination be more healthily and rewardingly occupied than in endeavouring to construct the life of an individual out of the fragments which are all that can reach us of the history of even the noblest of our race. How this will apply to the reading of the gospel story we leave to the earnest thought of our readers.
In understanding individual lives, the same principles apply; and nowhere can the imagination be more positively and gratifyingly engaged than in trying to piece together the life of a person from the fragments that are all we have of the history of even the greatest among us. How this will relate to reading the gospel story is something we leave for our readers to ponder deeply.
We now pass to one more sphere in which the student imagination works in glad freedom—the sphere which is understood to belong more immediately to the poet.
We now move on to another area where the student’s imagination thrives freely—the area that is more directly associated with the poet.
We have already said that the forms of Nature (by which word forms we mean any of those conditions of Nature which affect the senses of man) are so many approximate representations of the mental conditions of humanity. The outward, commonly called the material, is informed by, or has form in virtue of, the inward or immaterial—in a word, the thought. The forms of Nature are the representations of human thought in virtue of their being the embodiment of God’s thought. As such, therefore, they can be read and used to any depth, shallow or profound. Men of all ages and all developments have discovered in them the means of expression; and the men of ages to come, before us in every path along which we are now striving, must likewise find such means in those forms, unfolding with their unfolding necessities. The man, then, who, in harmony with nature, attempts the discovery of more of her meanings, is just searching out the things of God. The deepest of these are far too simple for us to understand as yet. But let our imagination interpretive reveal to us one severed significance of one of her parts, and such is the harmony of the whole, that all the realm of Nature is open to us henceforth—not without labour—and in time. Upon the man who can understand the human meaning of the snowdrop, of the primrose, or of the daisy, the life of the earth blossoming into the cosmical flower of a perfect moment will one day seize, possessing him with its prophetic hope, arousing his conscience with the vision of the “rest that remaineth,” and stirring up the aspiration to enter into that rest:
We've already mentioned that the forms of Nature (by which we mean any of those aspects of Nature that affect human senses) are like various representations of humanity's mental states. The outward, often referred to as the material, is shaped by, or takes its form from, the inward or immaterial—essentially, thought. The forms of Nature reflect human thought because they embody God’s thought. Therefore, they can be interpreted and utilized at any level, whether shallow or deep. People of all ages and backgrounds have found ways to express themselves through them; and people in the future, just like us, will continue to find ways within these forms as their needs evolve. Thus, a person who seeks to discover more of Nature's meanings in harmony with it is essentially searching for the things of God. The deepest meanings are likely too simple for us to grasp just yet. But if our imagination can interpret even one aspect of Nature, the entire realm of Nature becomes accessible to us—though not without effort—and over time. A person who can understand the significance of the snowdrop, the primrose, or the daisy will one day be seized by the life of the earth unfolding into the cosmic beauty of a perfect moment, filling them with prophetic hope, awakening their conscience to the vision of the “rest that remains,” and inspiring a desire to enter that rest:
“Thine is the tranquil hour, purpureal Eve! But long as godlike wish, or hope divine, Informs my spirit, ne’er can I believe That this magnificence is wholly thine! —From worlds not quickened by the sun A portion of the gift is won; An intermingling of Heaven’s pomp is spread On ground which British shepherds tread!”
“Yours is the peaceful hour, purple Evening! But as long as divine desire, or heavenly hope, Fills my soul, I can never believe That this grandeur is entirely yours! —From worlds not warmed by the sun A part of this gift is taken; A blend of Heaven's splendor is scattered On land where British shepherds walk!”
Even the careless curve of a frozen cloud across the blue will calm some troubled thoughts, may slay some selfish thoughts. And what shall be said of such gorgeous shows as the scarlet poppies in the green corn, the likest we have to those lilies of the field which spoke to the Saviour himself of the care of God, and rejoiced His eyes with the glory of their God-devised array? From such visions as these the imagination reaps the best fruits of the earth, for the sake of which all the science involved in its construction, is the inferior, yet willing and beautiful support.
Even the casual shape of a frozen cloud across the blue sky can soothe some troubled thoughts and quiet some selfish ones. And what can be said about such stunning sights as the red poppies in the green cornfield, the closest we have to those lilies of the field that spoke to the Savior about God's care and delighted Him with their beautiful design? From visions like these, the imagination gathers the best rewards of the earth, for which all the science behind its creation is the lesser yet willing and beautiful foundation.
From what we have now advanced, will it not then appear that, on the whole, the name given by our Norman ancestors is more fitting for the man who moves in these regions than the name given by the Greeks? Is not the Poet, the Maker, a less suitable name for him than the Trouvère, the Finder? At least, must not the faculty that finds precede the faculty that utters?
From what we've discussed so far, doesn't it seem that the name our Norman ancestors gave is more appropriate for the person who operates in these areas than the name given by the Greeks? Isn't the Poet, the Maker, a less fitting name for him than the Trouvère, the Finder? At the very least, shouldn't the ability to find come before the ability to express?
But is there nothing to be said of the function of the imagination from the Greek side of the question? Does it possess no creative faculty? Has it no originating power?
But is there nothing to say about the role of the imagination from the Greek perspective? Does it have no creative ability? Does it lack any founding power?
Certainly it would be a poor description of the Imagination which omitted the one element especially present to the mind that invented the word Poet.—It can present us with new thought-forms—new, that is, as revelations of thought. It has created none of the material that goes to make these forms. Nor does it work upon raw material. But it takes forms already existing, and gathers them about a thought so much higher than they, that it can group and subordinate and harmonize them into a whole which shall represent, unveil that thought. [Footnote: Just so Spenser describes the process of the embodiment of a human soul in his Platonic “Hymn in Honour of Beauty.”
Certainly, it would be a poor description of Imagination that left out the one element most relevant to the mind that coined the word Poet. It allows us to see new ways of thinking—new as insights of thought. It doesn't create any of the material that forms these ideas. Nor does it work with raw material. Instead, it takes existing forms and combines them with a thought so much greater than they are that it can organize, subordinate, and harmonize them into a whole that represents and reveals that thought. [Footnote: Just as Spenser describes the process of embodying a human soul in his Platonic “Hymn in Honour of Beauty.”
“She frames her house in which she will be placed Fit for herself.... And the gross matter by a sovereign might Tempers so trim.... For of the soul the body form doth take; For soul is form, and doth the body make.”]
“She shapes her home where she will belong, Just right for herself.... And the rough matter, with a powerful force, Is crafted so perfectly.... Because the body takes the form of the soul; For the soul is the shape, and it creates the body.”]
The nature of this process we will illustrate by an examination of the well-known Bugle Song in Tennyson’s “Princess.”
The nature of this process will be illustrated by examining the well-known Bugle Song from Tennyson’s “Princess.”
First of all, there is the new music of the song, which does not even remind one of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, harmony are all an embodiment in sound, as distinguished from word, of what can be so embodied—the feeling of the poem, which goes before, and prepares the way for the following thought—tunes the heart into a receptive harmony. Then comes the new arrangement of thought and figure whereby the meaning contained is presented as it never was before. We give a sort of paraphrastical synopsis of the poem, which, partly in virtue of its disagreeableness, will enable the lovers of the song to return to it with an increase of pleasure.
First of all, there’s the new music of the song, which doesn’t even remind anyone of the music of any other. The rhythm, rhyme, melody, and harmony are all a representation in sound, separate from words, of what can be expressed—the feeling of the poem, which comes first and sets the stage for the following ideas—tuning the heart into a receptive state. Then comes the new arrangement of thoughts and imagery that presents the meaning in a way that’s never been done before. We provide a sort of paraphrased summary of the poem, which, partly due to its unlikability, will allow the fans of the song to come back to it with even more enjoyment.
The glory of midsummer mid-day upon mountain, lake, and ruin. Give nature a voice for her gladness. Blow, bugle.
The glory of midsummer midday on the mountain, lake, and ruins. Let nature express her joy. Play, bugle.
Nature answers with dying echoes, sinking in the midst of her splendour into a sad silence.
Nature responds with fading echoes, sinking in the middle of her beauty into a quiet sadness.
Not so with human nature. The echoes of the word of truth gather volume and richness from every soul that re-echoes it to brother and sister souls.
Not so with human nature. The echoes of the truth gain depth and richness from every person who shares it with their fellow human beings.
With poets the fashion has been to contrast the stability and rejuvenescence of nature with the evanescence and unreturning decay of humanity:—
With poets, the trend has been to compare the steady and renewing aspects of nature with the fleeting and irreversible decline of humanity:—
“Yet soon reviving plants and flowers, anew shall deck the plain; The woods shall hear the voice of Spring, and flourish green again. But man forsakes this earthly scene, ah! never to return: Shall any following Spring revive the ashes of the urn?”
“Yet soon, the revived plants and flowers will decorate the plain again; The woods will hear the voice of Spring and become green once more. But man leaves this earthly scene, alas! never to return: Will any following Spring bring back the ashes of the urn?”
But our poet vindicates the eternal in humanity:—
But our poet defends the eternal aspect of humanity:—
“O Love, they die in yon rich sky, They faint on hill or field or river: Our echoes roll from soul to soul, And grow for ever and for ever. Blow, bugle, blow, set the wild echoes flying; And answer, echoes, answer, Dying, dying, dying.”
“Oh Love, they die in that beautiful sky, They collapse on the hill, in the field, or by the river: Our echoes travel from soul to soul, And grow forever and ever. Blow, bugle, blow, let the wild echoes soar; And respond, echoes, respond, Dying, dying, dying.”
Is not this a new form to the thought—a form which makes us feel the truth of it afresh? And every new embodiment of a known truth must be a new and wider revelation. No man is capable of seeing for himself the whole of any truth: he needs it echoed back to him from every soul in the universe; and still its centre is hid in the Father of Lights. In so far, then, as either form or thought is new, we may grant the use of the word Creation, modified according to our previous definitions.
Isn't this a new way of thinking—one that makes us feel the truth in a fresh way? Every new expression of a familiar truth must be a new and broader revelation. No one can grasp the entirety of any truth on their own; they need it reflected back from every soul in the universe, yet its core remains hidden in the Father of Lights. Therefore, to the extent that either form or thought is new, we can allow the use of the word Creation, adjusted according to our earlier definitions.
This operation of the imagination in choosing, gathering, and vitally combining the material of a new revelation, may be well illustrated from a certain employment of the poetic faculty in which our greatest poets have delighted. Perceiving truth half hidden and half revealed in the slow speech and stammering tongue of men who have gone before them, they have taken up the unfinished form and completed it; they have, as it were, rescued the soul of meaning from its prison of uninformed crudity, where it sat like the Prince in the “Arabian Nights,” half man, half marble; they have set it free in its own form, in a shape, namely, which it could “through every part impress.” Shakespere’s keen eye suggested many such a rescue from the tomb—of a tale drearily told—a tale which no one now would read save for the glorified form in which he has re-embodied its true contents. And from Tennyson we can produce one specimen small enough for our use, which, a mere chip from the great marble re-embodying the old legend of Arthur’s death, may, like the hand of Achilles holding his spear in the crowded picture,
This imaginative process of choosing, gathering, and dynamically combining the elements of a new revelation can be well illustrated by a specific way our greatest poets have found joy in their craft. They see truths that are both hidden and partially revealed in the slow words and hesitant speech of those who came before them. They take these unfinished ideas and complete them; in a sense, they've rescued the essence of meaning from its confinement in vague simplicity, where it lingered like the Prince in the “Arabian Nights,” half man, half stone. They have liberated it in its own expression, in a form that can "impress through every part." Shakespeare's sharp eye revealed many such salvations from obscurity—stories told in a dreary way—tales that no one would read today if it weren't for the elevated form in which he has revitalized their true essence. From Tennyson, we can also highlight a brief example, which, being a small piece of the magnificent retelling of the old legend of Arthur’s death, can stand out like Achilles’ hand holding his spear in a crowded scene.
“Stand for the whole to be imagined.”
“Stand for the whole to be imagined.”
In the “History of Prince Arthur,” when Sir Bedivere returns after hiding Excalibur the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and he answers—
In the “History of Prince Arthur,” when Sir Bedivere comes back after hiding Excalibur for the first time, the king asks him what he has seen, and he replies—
“Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind.”
“Sir, I saw nothing but waves and wind.”
The second time, to the same question, he answers—
The second time he was asked the same question, he replied—
“Sir, I saw nothing but the water1 wap, and the waves wan.”
“Sir, I saw nothing but the water1 waving, and the waves fading.”
1 (return)
[ The word wap is
plain enough; the word wan we cannot satisfy ourselves about. Had
it been used with regard to the water, it might have been worth remarking
that wan, meaning dark, gloomy, turbid, is a common adjective to a
river in the old Scotch ballad. And it might be an adjective here; but
that is not likely, seeing it is conjoined with the verb wap. The
Anglo-Saxon wanian, to decrease, might be the root-word, perhaps,
(in the sense of to ebb,) if this water had been the sea and not a
lake. But possibly the meaning is, “I heard the water whoop or wail
aloud” (from Wópan); and “the waves whine or bewail”
(from Wánian to lament). But even then the two verbs would seem to
predicate of transposed subjects.]
1 (return)
[ The word wap is clear enough; the word wan remains puzzling. If it had been used in relation to the water, it might be worth noting that wan, meaning dark, gloomy, or murky, is a common adjective for a river in old Scottish ballads. It could be an adjective here too, but that's unlikely since it’s paired with the verb wap. The Anglo-Saxon wanian, meaning to decrease, might be the root word, possibly suggesting to ebb, if this water were the sea rather than a lake. However, it’s possible the meaning is, “I heard the water whoop or wail aloud” (from Wópan); and “the waves whine or bewail” (from Wánian to lament). Even then, the two verbs would seem to imply switched subjects.]
This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines—
This answer Tennyson has expanded into the well-known lines—
“I heard the ripple washing in the reeds, And the wild water lapping on the crag;”
“I heard the water flowing through the reeds, And the wild waves lapping against the rocks;”
slightly varied, for the other occasion, into—
slightly changed, for the other occasion, into—
“I heard the water lapping on the crag, And the long ripple washing in the reeds.”
“I heard the water lapping against the rock, and the long ripple washing through the reeds.”
But, as to this matter of creation, is there, after all, I ask yet, any genuine sense in which a man may be said to create his own thought-forms? Allowing that a new combination of forms already existing might be called creation, is the man, after all, the author of this new combination? Did he, with his will and his knowledge, proceed wittingly, consciously, to construct a form which should embody his thought? Or did this form arise within him without will or effort of his—vivid if not clear—certain if not outlined? Ruskin (and better authority we do not know) will assert the latter, and we think he is right: though perhaps he would insist more upon the absolute perfection of the vision than we are quite prepared to do. Such embodiments are not the result of the man’s intention, or of the operation of his conscious nature. His feeling is that they are given to him; that from the vast unknown, where time and space are not, they suddenly appear in luminous writing upon the wall of his consciousness. Can it be correct, then, to say that he created them? Nothing less so, as it seems to us. But can we not say that they are the creation of the unconscious portion of his nature? Yes, provided we can understand that that which is the individual, the man, can know, and not know that it knows, can create and yet be ignorant that virtue has gone out of it. From that unknown region we grant they come, but not by its own blind working. Nor, even were it so, could any amount of such production, where no will was concerned, be dignified with the name of creation. But God sits in that chamber of our being in which the candle of our consciousness goes out in darkness, and sends forth from thence wonderful gifts into the light of that understanding which is His candle. Our hope lies in no most perfect mechanism even of the spirit, but in the wisdom wherein we live and move and have our being. Thence we hope for endless forms of beauty informed of truth. If the dark portion of our own being were the origin of our imaginations, we might well fear the apparition of such monsters as would be generated in the sickness of a decay which could never feel—only declare—a slow return towards primeval chaos. But the Maker is our Light.
But regarding the idea of creation, is there, really, any genuine way that a person can be said to create their own thoughts? Even if we consider a new combination of existing forms as creation, can a person truly be the author of that new combination? Did they consciously and intentionally construct a form to represent their thoughts? Or did this form emerge within them without their will or effort—intense yet unclear—certain but not fully defined? Ruskin (and there's no better authority we know of) would assert the latter, and we believe he's right, though he might emphasize the absolute perfection of the vision more than we are ready to do. These embodiments don’t stem from the person’s intention or conscious efforts. They feel as if they're given to him; suddenly appearing in bright letters on the wall of his awareness from the vast unknown where time and space do not exist. Can we really say that he created them? It seems incorrect to us. But can we say they are the creation of his unconscious self? Yes, as long as we understand that the individual, the person, can know and also be unaware of that knowledge, can create while being ignorant of the virtue that has emerged. We agree they come from that unknown area, but not by its own blind process. And even if that were the case, any such production without will couldn't be called creation. But God resides in that part of our being where the light of our awareness fades into darkness, sending forth remarkable gifts into the light of the understanding that is His light. Our hope lies not in the most perfect mechanism of spirit, but in the wisdom through which we live and move and have our existence. From there, we hope for endless forms of beauty filled with truth. If the dark side of our being were the source of our imaginations, we would rightfully fear the emergence of monsters generated from a sickness that feels nothing—only indicates—a slow return to primeval chaos. But the Creator is our Light.
One word more, ere we turn to consider the culture of this noblest faculty, which we might well call the creative, did we not see a something in God for which we would humbly keep our mighty word:—the fact that there is always more in a work of art—which is the highest human result of the embodying imagination—than the producer himself perceived while he produced it, seems to us a strong reason for attributing to it a larger origin than the man alone—for saying at the last, that the inspiration of the Almighty shaped its ends.
One more thing before we shift our focus to the development of this greatest ability, which we might simply call creativity, if we didn’t see something in God that makes us want to hold onto our powerful word:—the idea that there is always more in a piece of art—which is the highest achievement of human imagination—than the creator was aware of while making it, seems to us a compelling reason to credit it with a greater origin than just the individual alone—for concluding ultimately that the inspiration of the Almighty guided its purpose.
We return now to the class which, from the first, we supposed hostile to the imagination and its functions generally. Those belonging to it will now say: “It was to no imagination such as you have been setting forth that we were opposed, but to those wild fancies and vague reveries in which young people indulge, to the damage and loss of the real in the world around them.”
We now return to the group that we initially thought was against imagination and its functions in general. Those in this group will now say: “We weren't opposed to the kind of imagination you’ve been talking about, but to those wild fantasies and unclear daydreams that young people get lost in, which harm and obscure the real world around them.”
“And,” we insist, “you would rectify the matter by smothering the young monster at once—because he has wings, and, young to their use, flutters them about in a way discomposing to your nerves, and destructive to those notions of propriety of which this creature—you stop not to inquire whether angel or pterodactyle—has not yet learned even the existence. Or, if it is only the creature’s vagaries of which you disapprove, why speak of them as the exercise of the imagination? As well speak of religion as the mother of cruelty because religion has given more occasion of cruelty, as of all dishonesty and devilry, than any other object of human interest. Are we not to worship, because our forefathers burned and stabbed for religion? It is more religion we want. It is more imagination we need. Be assured that these are but the first vital motions of that whose results, at least in the region of science, you are more than willing to accept.” That evil may spring from the imagination, as from everything except the perfect love of God, cannot be denied. But infinitely worse evils would be the result of its absence. Selfishness, avarice, sensuality, cruelty, would flourish tenfold; and the power of Satan would be well established ere some children had begun to choose. Those who would quell the apparently lawless tossing of the spirit, called the youthful imagination, would suppress all that is to grow out of it. They fear the enthusiasm they never felt; and instead of cherishing this divine thing, instead of giving it room and air for healthful growth, they would crush and confine it—with but one result of their victorious endeavours—imposthume, fever, and corruption. And the disastrous consequences would soon appear in the intellect likewise which they worship. Kill that whence spring the crude fancies and wild day-dreams of the young, and you will never lead them beyond dull facts—dull because their relations to each other, and the one life that works in them all, must remain undiscovered. Whoever would have his children avoid this arid region will do well to allow no teacher to approach them—not even of mathematics—who has no imagination.
“And,” we insist, “you would solve the issue by smothering the young monster right away—because he has wings, and being new to using them, he flutters them in a way that strains your nerves and challenges your sense of decency, which this creature—you don’t stop to consider whether it’s an angel or a pterodactyl—hasn’t even learned about yet. Or, if it’s just the creature’s quirks that you dislike, why refer to them as the exercise of imagination? It’s just as silly to say that religion is the source of cruelty because throughout history, religion has prompted more cruelty, dishonesty, and wickedness than any other human interest. Should we not worship because our ancestors burned and stabbed in the name of religion? What we need is more religion. What we need is more imagination. Rest assured that these are just the initial vital sparks of what, at least in the realm of science, you are more than happy to embrace.” That evil can arise from the imagination, as it can from everything except the perfect love of God, cannot be denied. But infinitely worse evils would result from its absence. Selfishness, greed, lust, cruelty would thrive tenfold; and the power of evil would be firmly established before some children even started to make choices. Those who would stifle the seemingly chaotic whims of the spirit, called youthful imagination, would suppress all that is meant to develop from it. They fear the enthusiasm that they never experienced; and instead of nurturing this divine gift, instead of allowing it space and light for healthy growth, they would crush and confine it—with just one outcome of their victorious efforts—abscess, fever, and decay. And the disastrous effects would soon manifest in the intellect they hold in such high regard. Kill that from which the crude fantasies and wild daydreams of the young arise, and you will never lead them beyond boring facts—boring because their connections to one another, and the single life that flows through them all, will remain undiscovered. Anyone who wants their children to steer clear of this barren realm should ensure that no teacher—especially in mathematics—approaches them without imagination.
“But although good results may appear in a few from the indulgence of the imagination, how will it be with the many?”
“But even though a few might see good outcomes from letting their imagination run wild, what about the majority?”
We answer that the antidote to indulgence is development, not restraint, and that such is the duty of the wise servant of Him who made the imagination.
We respond that the cure for indulgence is growth, not limitation, and that this is the responsibility of the wise servant of the one who created imagination.
“But will most girls, for instance, rise to those useful uses of the imagination? Are they not more likely to exercise it in building castles in the air to the neglect of houses on the earth? And as the world affords such poor scope for the ideal, will not this habit breed vain desires and vain regrets? Is it not better, therefore, to keep to that which is known, and leave the rest?”
“But will most girls, for example, really engage in those practical applications of their imagination? Aren't they more likely to spend their time daydreaming instead of focusing on reality? And since the world offers so little opportunity for idealism, doesn’t this tendency lead to empty desires and pointless regrets? Isn't it therefore better to stick to what is familiar and leave the unknown alone?”
“Is the world so poor?” we ask in return. The less reason, then, to be satisfied with it; the more reason to rise above it, into the region of the true, of the eternal, of things as God thinks them. This outward world is but a passing vision of the persistent true. We shall not live in it always. We are dwellers in a divine universe where no desires are in vain, if only they be large enough. Not even in this world do all disappointments breed only vain regrets. [Footnote: “We will grieve not, rather find Strength in what remains behind; In the primal sympathy Which, having been, must ever be; In the soothing thoughts that spring Out of human suffering; In the faith that looks through death, In years that bring the philosophic mind.”]
“Is the world really that lacking?” we respond. This gives us even less reason to be satisfied with it; instead, it encourages us to strive for something higher, something that reflects the true, the eternal, the way God perceives things. This external world is merely a temporary glimpse of the lasting truth. We won’t exist in it forever. We are residents of a divine universe where no desire is in vain, as long as it’s grand enough. Even in this world, not all disappointments lead to empty regrets. [Footnote: “We will grieve not, rather find Strength in what remains behind; In the primal sympathy Which, having been, must ever be; In the soothing thoughts that spring Out of human suffering; In the faith that looks through death, In years that bring the philosophic mind.”]
And as to keeping to that which is known and leaving the rest—how many affairs of this world are so well-defined, so capable of being clearly understood, as not to leave large spaces of uncertainty, whose very correlate faculty is the imagination? Indeed it must, in most things, work after some fashion, filling the gaps after some possible plan, before action can even begin. In very truth, a wise imagination, which is the presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide that man or woman can have; for it is not the things we see the most clearly that influence us the most powerfully; undefined, yet vivid visions of something beyond, something which eye has not seen nor ear heard, have far more influence than any logical sequences whereby the same things may be demonstrated to the intellect. It is the nature of the thing, not the clearness of its outline, that determines its operation. We live by faith, and not by sight. Put the question to our mathematicians—only be sure the question reaches them—whether they would part with the well-defined perfection of their diagrams, or the dim, strange, possibly half-obliterated characters woven in the web of their being; their science, in short, or their poetry; their certainties, or their hopes; their consciousness of knowledge, or their vague sense of that which cannot be known absolutely: will they hold by their craft or by their inspirations, by their intellects or their imaginations? If they say the former in each alternative, I shall yet doubt whether the objects of the choice are actually before them, and with equal presentation.
And when it comes to sticking to what’s known and leaving the rest—how many things in this world are so clearly defined and easy to understand that they don’t leave us with a lot of uncertainty, which is where imagination comes in? In most cases, imagination has to step in to fill in the gaps with some possible idea before any action can even take place. Truly, a wise imagination, which is the presence of the spirit of God, is the best guide a person can have; because it’s not the things we see most clearly that affect us the most strongly; rather, it’s those undefined but vivid visions of something greater, something that hasn’t been seen or heard, that hold far more power than any logical explanations that our intellects might offer. It’s the essence of the thing, not how clearly it’s defined, that determines its impact. We live by faith, not by sight. Ask our mathematicians—just make sure the question reaches them—if they would choose the well-defined perfection of their diagrams over the vague, strange, perhaps half-formed elements woven into their existence; in other words, their science or their poetry; their certainties or their hopes; their awareness of what they know or their hazy sense of what can never be fully known: will they cling to their skills or their inspirations, their intellects or their imaginations? If they answer the former for every choice, I will still doubt whether the items they’re choosing between are truly before them and presented equally.
What can be known must be known severely; but is there, therefore, no faculty for those infinite lands of uncertainty lying all about the sphere hollowed out of the dark by the glimmering lamp of our knowledge? Are they not the natural property of the imagination? there, for it, that it may have room to grow? there, that the man may learn to imagine greatly like God who made him, himself discovering their mysteries, in virtue of his following and worshipping imagination?
What can be known must be known thoroughly; but is there, then, no ability for those endless areas of uncertainty surrounding the space illuminated by the light of our knowledge? Aren't they the natural domain of imagination? There, for it, so it can have space to expand? There, so that a person can learn to imagine profoundly like God who created him, discovering their mysteries as a result of his pursuing and honoring imagination?
All that has been said, then, tends to enforce the culture of the imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains behind. For, if the whole power of pedantry should rise against her, the imagination will yet work; and if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth, then for falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil alternative becoming the more likely from the unnatural treatment she has experienced from those who ought to have fostered her. The power that might have gone forth in conceiving the noblest forms of action, in realizing the lives of the true-hearted, the self-forgetting, will go forth in building airy castles of vain ambition, of boundless riches, of unearned admiration. The imagination that might be devising how to make home blessed or to help the poor neighbour, will be absorbed in the invention of the new dress, or worse, in devising the means of procuring it. For, if she be not occupied with the beautiful, she will be occupied by the pleasant; that which goes not out to worship, will remain at home to be sensual. Cultivate the mere intellect as you may, it will never reduce the passions: the imagination, seeking the ideal in everything, will elevate them to their true and noble service. Seek not that your sons and your daughters should not see visions, should not dream dreams; seek that they should see true visions, that they should dream noble dreams. Such out-going of the imagination is one with aspiration, and will do more to elevate above what is low and vile than all possible inculcations of morality. Nor can religion herself ever rise up into her own calm home, her crystal shrine, when one of her wings, one of the twain with which she flies, is thus broken or paralyzed.
All that has been said reinforces the importance of nurturing imagination. But the strongest argument of all remains. If all the pedantry in the world rises against her, imagination will still prevail; if not for good, then for evil; if not for truth, then for falsehood; if not for life, then for death; the evil outcomes becoming more likely due to the unnatural way she has been treated by those who should have supported her. The potential that could have led to the noblest actions, to realizing the lives of the true-hearted and selfless, will instead be wasted on constructing illusory castles of empty ambition, endless wealth, and unearned praise. The imagination that could be figuring out how to make a home a joyful place or to assist a struggling neighbor will instead get caught up in creating the perfect outfit, or worse, finding ways to get it. If she is not engaged with the beautiful, she will be distracted by the enjoyable; that which does not seek to worship will stay home and indulge in pleasure. No matter how much you nurture mere intellect, it will never tame the passions: the imagination, in its quest for the ideal, will elevate them to their true and noble purpose. Do not wish for your sons and daughters to lack visions or dreams; instead, hope that they see true visions and dream noble dreams. This outward flow of imagination is tied to aspiration and will do more to uplift us from what is low and base than all the teachings of morality put together. Moreover, religion herself cannot reach her serene home, her crystal sanctuary, when one of her wings, one of the two that help her fly, is broken or paralyzed.
“The universe is infinitely wide, And conquering Reason, if self-glorified, Can nowhere move uncrossed by some new wall Or gulf of mystery, which thou alone, Imaginative Faith! canst overleap, In progress towards the fount of love.”
“The universe is endlessly vast, And proud Reason, if it seeks self-importance, Can’t move without encountering some new barrier Or a chasm of mystery that only you, Imaginative Faith! can bypass, On the journey towards the source of love.”
The danger that lies in the repression of the imagination may be well illustrated from the play of “Macbeth.” The imagination of the hero (in him a powerful faculty), representing how the deed would appear to others, and so representing its true nature to himself, was his great impediment on the path to crime. Nor would he have succeeded in reaching it, had he not gone to his wife for help—sought refuge from his troublesome imagination with her. She, possessing far less of the faculty, and having dealt more destructively with what she had, took his hand, and led him to the deed. From her imagination, again, she for her part takes refuge in unbelief and denial, declaring to herself and her husband that there is no reality in its representations; that there is no reality in anything beyond the present effect it produces on the mind upon which it operates; that intellect and courage are equal to any, even an evil emergency; and that no harm will come to those who can rule themselves according to their own will. Still, however, finding her imagination, and yet more that of her husband, troublesome, she effects a marvellous combination of materialism and idealism, and asserts that things are not, cannot be, and shall not be more or other than people choose to think them. She says,—
The danger of suppressing imagination is well illustrated in the play "Macbeth." The hero's imagination, a strong ability in him, shows how the act would seem to others, revealing its true nature to himself and becoming a major obstacle on his path to crime. He wouldn't have succeeded without turning to his wife for support—seeking relief from his burdening thoughts through her. She, with far less imagination and having used what she had destructively, takes his hand and guides him to the act. From her imagination, she also escapes into disbelief and denial, convincing herself and her husband that there’s no truth in its representations; that reality consists only of the immediate effects on the mind it influences; that intellect and courage can handle any situation, even a wicked one; and that no harm comes to those who can control themselves according to their own will. Yet, still finding her thoughts, and even more so her husband's, troubling, she creates a remarkable blend of materialism and idealism, claiming that things are not, cannot be, and won’t be more or different than what people choose to think they are. She says,—
“These deeds must not be thought After these ways; so, it will make us mad.” “The sleeping and the dead Are but as pictures.”
“We can’t think about these actions like that; it will drive us crazy.” “The sleeping and the dead are just like images.”
But she had over-estimated the power of her will, and under-estimated that of her imagination. Her will was the one thing in her that was bad, without root or support in the universe, while her imagination was the voice of God himself out of her own unknown being. The choice of no man or woman can long determine how or what he or she shall think of things. Lady Macbeth’s imagination would not be repressed beyond its appointed period—a time determined by laws of her being over which she had no control. It arose, at length, as from the dead, overshadowing her with all the blackness of her crime. The woman who drank strong drink that she might murder, dared not sleep without a light by her bed; rose and walked in the night, a sleepless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing the spotted hand of her dreams, which, often as water had cleared it of the deed, yet smelt so in her sleeping nostrils, that all the perfumes of Arabia would not sweeten it. Thus her long down-trodden imagination rose and took vengeance, even through those senses which she had thought to subordinate to her wicked will.
But she had overestimated the strength of her will and underestimated the power of her imagination. Her will was the one bad part of her, lacking any foundation or support in the world, while her imagination was like the voice of God coming from her own unknown self. No man or woman can decide for long how they will think about things. Lady Macbeth’s imagination couldn’t be suppressed beyond its set time—a time determined by the laws of her being, which she couldn’t control. Eventually, it rose from the dead, overwhelming her with the darkness of her crime. The woman who drank heavily to prepare for murder was afraid to sleep without a light by her bed; she walked around at night, a restless spirit in a sleeping body, rubbing her stained hands from her dreams, which, even after washing away the deed with water, still had the smell in her sleeping nostrils that no amount of Arabian perfumes could sweeten. Thus, her long-repressed imagination rose and took revenge, even through the senses she thought she could dominate with her wicked will.
But all this is of the imagination itself, and fitter, therefore, for illustration than for argument. Let us come to facts.—Dr. Pritchard, lately executed for murder, had no lack of that invention, which is, as it were, the intellect of the imagination—its lowest form. One of the clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through indescribable horrors in the vain endeavour to induce the man simply to cease from lying: one invention after another followed the most earnest asseverations of truth. The effect produced upon us by this clergyman’s report of his experience was a moral dismay, such as we had never felt with regard to human being, and drew from us the exclamation, “The man could have had no imagination.” The reply was, “None whatever.” Never seeking true or high things, caring only for appearances, and, therefore, for inventions, he had left his imagination all undeveloped, and when it represented his own inner condition to him, had repressed it until it was nearly destroyed, and what remained of it was set on fire of hell. [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, evidently as much in ignorance of the man as of the facts of the case, spoke of Dr. MacLeod as having been engaged in “white-washing the murderer for heaven.” So far is this from a true representation, that Dr. MacLeod actually refused to pray with him, telling him that if there was a hell to go to, he must go to it.]
But all of this is just imagination, and it's better suited for stories than for serious discussion. Let’s talk about the facts. Dr. Pritchard, who was recently executed for murder, had no shortage of that creativity, which is essentially the intellect of the imagination—its most basic form. One of the clergymen who, at his own request, attended the prisoner, went through unimaginable horrors trying unsuccessfully to convince the man just to stop lying: one fabrication after another followed his most sincere claims of truth. The impact of this clergyman’s account of his experience left us in moral shock like we had never felt towards any human before, and we exclaimed, “The man must have had no imagination.” The response was, “None at all.” He never sought true or elevated concepts, only caring about appearances and therefore about fabrications; he left his imagination completely underdeveloped. When it tried to reflect his inner state back to him, he suppressed it until it was almost destroyed, and what little was left had been ignited by hell. [Footnote: One of the best weekly papers in London, clearly ignorant of both the man and the details of the case, claimed that Dr. MacLeod was “whitewashing the murderer for heaven.” This is far from an accurate portrayal; Dr. MacLeod actually refused to pray with him, telling him that if there was a hell to go to, he had to go to it.]
Man is “the roof and crown of things.” He is the world, and more. Therefore the chief scope of his imagination, next to God who made him, will he the world in relation to his own life therein. Will he do better or worse in it if this imagination, touched to fine issues and having free scope, present him with noble pictures of relationship and duty, of possible elevation of character and attainable justice of behaviour, of friendship and of love; and, above all, of all these in that life to understand which as a whole, must ever be the loftiest aspiration of this noblest power of humanity? Will a woman lead a more or a less troubled life that the sights and sounds of nature break through the crust of gathering anxiety, and remind her of the peace of the lilies and the well-being of the birds of the air? Or will life be less interesting to her, that the lives of her neighbours, instead of passing like shadows upon a wall, assume a consistent wholeness, forming themselves into stories and phases of life? Will she not hereby love more and talk less? Or will she be more unlikely to make a good match——? But here we arrest ourselves in bewilderment over the word good, and seek to re-arrange our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a good match, is the alliance of a man of position and means—or let them throw intellect, manners, and personal advantages into the same scale—if this be all, then we grant the daughter of cultivated imagination may not be manageable, will probably be obstinate. “We hope she will be obstinate enough. [Footnote: Let women who feel the wrongs of their kind teach women to be high-minded in their relation to men, and they will do more for the social elevation of women, and the establishment of their rights, whatever those rights may be, than by any amount of intellectual development or assertion of equality. Nor, if they are other than mere partisans, will they refuse the attempt because in its success men will, after all, be equal, if not greater gainers, if only thereby they should be “feelingly persuaded” what they are.] But will the girl be less likely to marry a gentleman, in the grand old meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was no irreverence to call our Lord
Man is “the roof and crown of things.” He is the world and more. Therefore, the main focus of his imagination, next to God who created him, will be the world in relation to his own life within it. Will he do better or worse if this imagination, refined and unrestricted, presents him with noble images of relationships and responsibilities, potential character growth, and achievable fairness in behavior, of friendship and love; and, above all, of all these aspects in a life whose complete understanding should always be the highest aspiration of this greatest human potential? Will a woman lead a more or less troubled life when the sights and sounds of nature break through her gathering anxiety and remind her of the peace of the lilies and the well-being of the birds in the sky? Or will her life be less interesting when the lives of her neighbors, instead of merely passing like shadows on a wall, take on a cohesive wholeness, forming stories and stages of life? Will she not thereby love more and speak less? Or will she be less likely to make a good match? But here we pause in confusion over the term good and try to reorganize our thoughts. If what mothers mean by a good match is an alliance with a man of position and wealth—or adding intellect, manners, and personal qualities into the mix—if this is all, then we admit the daughter of a cultivated imagination may not be easily managed and will likely be stubborn. “We hope she will be stubborn enough. [Footnote: Let women who recognize the injustices faced by their kind teach other women to be principled in their relationships with men, and they will do more for the social advancement of women and the establishment of their rights, whatever those rights may entail, than by any amount of intellectual progress or claims of equality. Also, if they are more than mere partisans, they won't shy away from this effort, even if it results in men receiving equal, if not greater, benefits, simply by being “feelingly persuaded” about what they are.] But will the girl be less likely to marry a gentleman, in the grand old meaning of the sixteenth century? when it was not disrespectful to call our Lord
“The first true gentleman that ever breathed;”
“The first real gentleman that ever lived;”
or in that of the fourteenth?—when Chaucer teaching “whom is worthy to be called gentill,” writes thus:—
or in that of the fourteenth?—when Chaucer teaches “who is worthy to be called gentle,” writes this:—
“The first stocke was full of rightwisnes, Trewe of his worde, sober, pitous and free, Clene of his goste, and loved besinesse, Against the vice of slouth in honeste; And but his heire love vertue as did he, He is not gentill though he rich seme, All weare he miter, crowne, or diademe.”
“The first stock was full of righteousness, True to his word, sober, compassionate, and generous, Pure in spirit, and loved hard work, Against the vice of laziness in honesty; And unless his heir loves virtue as he did, He is not noble, no matter how rich he seems, Even if he wore a mitre, crown, or diadem.”
Will she be less likely to marry one who honours women, and for their sakes, as well as his own, honours himself? Or to speak from what many would regard as the mother’s side of the question—will the girl be more likely, because of such a culture of her imagination, to refuse the wise, true-hearted, generous rich man, and fall in love with the talking, verse-making fool, because he is poor, as if that were a virtue for which he had striven? The highest imagination and the lowliest common sense are always on one side.
Will she be less likely to marry someone who respects women and, for their sake as well as his own, respects himself? Or to think from what many would see as the mother's perspective—will the girl be more inclined, because of such a cultural influence, to reject the wise, kind-hearted, generous rich man and instead fall for the charming, poetic fool because he’s poor, as if that were a virtue he had worked for? The highest ideals and the simplest common sense are always aligned.
For the end of imagination is harmony. A right imagination, being the reflex of the creation, will fall in with the divine order of things as the highest form of its own operation; “will tune its instrument here at the door” to the divine harmonies within; will be content alone with growth towards the divine idea, which includes all that is beautiful in the imperfect imaginations of men; will know that every deviation from that growth is downward; and will therefore send the man forth from its loftiest representations to do the commonest duty of the most wearisome calling in a hearty and hopeful spirit. This is the work of the right imagination; and towards this work every imagination, in proportion to the rightness that is in it, will tend. The reveries even of the wise man will make him stronger for his work; his dreaming as well as his thinking will render him sorry for past failure, and hopeful of future success.
The ultimate goal of imagination is harmony. A healthy imagination, reflecting creation, aligns with the divine order as the highest expression of its capability; it “tunes its instrument here at the door” to the divine harmonies within; it is satisfied with simply striving towards the divine idea, which encompasses all that is beautiful in the flawed imaginations of humanity; it understands that any step away from that growth is a step downwards; and thus it encourages the person to embrace even the most mundane tasks of the most exhausting jobs with a sincere and optimistic spirit. This is the essence of a healthy imagination; and every imagination, to the extent that it is aligned with what is right, will move toward this purpose. Even the daydreams of the wise will strengthen them for their work; both their dreaming and their thinking will make them regret past failures and hopeful for future triumphs.
To come now to the culture of the imagination. Its development is one of the main ends of the divine education of life with all its efforts and experiences. Therefore the first and essential means for its culture must be an ordering of our life towards harmony with its ideal in the mind of God. As he that is willing to do the will of the Father, shall know of the doctrine, so, we doubt not, he that will do the will of THE POET, shall behold the Beautiful. For all is God’s; and the man who is growing into harmony with His will, is growing into harmony with himself; all the hidden glories of his being are coming out into the light of humble consciousness; so that at the last he shall be a pure microcosm, faithfully reflecting, after his manner, the mighty macrocosm. We believe, therefore, that nothing will do so much for the intellect or the imagination as being good—we do not mean after any formula or any creed, but simply after the faith of Him who did the will of his Father in heaven.
To address the culture of imagination, its growth is one of the primary goals of the divine education of life, along with all its efforts and experiences. Therefore, the first and essential step for nurturing it must be organizing our lives to align with the ideal in God's mind. Just as someone willing to do the will of the Father will understand the doctrine, we believe that anyone who seeks to follow THE POET will see the Beautiful. Everything belongs to God, and a person who is aligning with His will is also coming into alignment with themselves; all the hidden wonders of their being are emerging into the light of humble awareness, ultimately becoming a pure microcosm that reflects, in their own way, the vast macrocosm. We believe that nothing benefits the intellect or the imagination as much as being good—not according to any formula or creed, but simply through the faith of the one who did the will of his Father in heaven.
But if we speak of direct means for the culture of the imagination, the whole is comprised in two words—food and exercise. If you want strong arms, take animal food, and row. Feed your imagination with food convenient for it, and exercise it, not in the contortions of the acrobat, but in the movements of the gymnast. And first for the food.
But when we talk about direct ways to cultivate the imagination, it all comes down to two things—nutrition and activity. If you want strong arms, eat meat and go rowing. Nourish your imagination with the right kind of input, and work it out, not through the tricks of an acrobat, but through the practices of a gymnast. Let's start with nutrition.
Goethe has told us that the way to develop the aesthetic faculty is to have constantly before our eyes, that is, in the room we most frequent, some work of the best attainable art. This will teach us to refuse the evil and choose the good. It will plant itself in our minds and become our counsellor. Involuntarily, unconsciously, we shall compare with its perfection everything that comes before us for judgment. Now, although no better advice could be given, it involves one danger, that of narrowness. And not easily, in dread of this danger, would one change his tutor, and so procure variety of instruction. But in the culture of the imagination, books, although not the only, are the readiest means of supplying the food convenient for it, and a hundred books may be had where even one work of art of the right sort is unattainable, seeing such must be of some size as well as of thorough excellence. And in variety alone is safety from the danger of the convenient food becoming the inconvenient model.
Goethe has pointed out that to develop our aesthetic sense, we should always have a piece of quality art in the spaces we frequent. This exposure will teach us to reject the bad and embrace the good. It will settle in our minds and guide us. Unconsciously, we will measure everything we assess against its standard of perfection. While this is excellent advice, it carries a risk of becoming narrow-minded. Changing our sources of inspiration for the sake of variety isn’t easy due to this concern. However, in cultivating our imagination, books, though not the only option, are the most accessible way to provide the necessary nourishment, and you can find hundreds of books where you might be unable to find even one piece of suitable art, which must be both substantial and of high quality. Variety is essential to protect against the risk of overly familiar influences becoming undesirable standards.
Let us suppose, then, that one who himself justly estimates the imagination is anxious to develop its operation in his child. No doubt the best beginning, especially if the child be young, is an acquaintance with nature, in which let him be encouraged to observe vital phenomena, to put things together, to speculate from what he sees to what he does not see. But let earnest care be taken that upon no matter shall he go on talking foolishly. Let him be as fanciful as he may, but let him not, even in his fancy, sin against fancy’s sense; for fancy has its laws as certainly as the most ordinary business of life. When he is silly, let him know it and be ashamed.
Let’s say that someone who truly understands the value of imagination wants to encourage it in his child. The best starting point, especially for a young child, is to explore nature, where he should be encouraged to observe living things, piece together information, and make guesses about what he sees and what he can’t see. However, it’s important to ensure that he never speaks foolishly about anything. He can be as imaginative as he wants, but even in his imagination, he shouldn’t violate the principles of imagination; it has its own rules just like everyday life does. When he acts silly, he should recognize it and feel embarrassed.
But where this association with nature is but occasionally possible, recourse must be had to literature. In books, we not only have store of all results of the imagination, but in them, as in her workshop, we may behold her embodying before our very eyes, in music of speech, in wonder of words, till her work, like a golden dish set with shining jewels, and adorned by the hands of the cunning workmen, stands finished before us. In this kind, then, the best must be set before the learner, that he may eat and not be satisfied; for the finest products of the imagination are of the best nourishment for the beginnings of that imagination. And the mind of the teacher must mediate between the work of art and the mind of the pupil, bringing them together in the vital contact of intelligence; directing the observation to the lines of expression, the points of force; and helping the mind to repose upon the whole, so that no separable beauties shall lead to a neglect of the scope—that is the shape or form complete. And ever he must seek to show excellence rather than talk about it, giving the thing itself, that it may grow into the mind, and not a eulogy of his own upon the thing; isolating the point worthy of remark rather than making many remarks upon the point.
But where connecting with nature is only occasionally possible, we must turn to literature. In books, we find a wealth of imagination, and in them, like in a workshop, we see creativity come to life in the rhythm of language and the beauty of words, until the final product, like a golden dish adorned with shining jewels crafted by skilled hands, stands complete before us. In this way, the best must be presented to learners so they can indulge and remain hungry for more; the finest products of imagination provide the best fuel for igniting that imagination. The teacher’s role is to connect the artwork with the student’s mind, bringing them together in a meaningful exchange of ideas; guiding observations toward the nuances of expression and the key points, and helping the mind to focus on the whole so that no individual beauty distracts from the overall design or structure. The teacher should always aim to demonstrate excellence instead of just discussing it, presenting the work itself so it can take root in the student’s mind, rather than offering a personal tribute to it; highlighting the significant points instead of making too many comments on them.
Especially must he endeavour to show the spiritual scaffolding or skeleton of any work of art; those main ideas upon which the shape is constructed, and around which the rest group as ministering dependencies.
He especially needs to demonstrate the spiritual framework or skeleton of any piece of art; those key ideas on which the structure is built, and around which everything else clusters as supporting elements.
But he will not, therefore, pass over that intellectual structure without which the other could not be manifested. He will not forget the builder while he admires the architect. While he dwells with delight on the relation of the peculiar arch to the meaning of the whole cathedral, he will not think it needless to explain the principles on which it is constructed, or even how those principles are carried out in actual process. Neither yet will the tracery of its windows, the foliage of its crockets, or the fretting of its mouldings be forgotten. Every beauty will have its word, only all beauties will be subordinated to the final beauty—that is, the unity of the whole.
But he won't overlook the intellectual foundation that makes the other possible. He won't forget the builder while admiring the architect. As he takes pleasure in the way the unique arch relates to the meaning of the entire cathedral, he won't find it unnecessary to explain the principles behind its construction, or even how those principles are implemented in practice. The details of its windows, the design of its crockets, or the intricacy of its moldings won't be ignored either. Every beauty will have its explanation, but all beauties will be secondary to the ultimate beauty—that is, the unity of the whole.
Thus doing, he shall perform the true office of friendship. He will introduce his pupil into the society which he himself prizes most, surrounding him with the genial presence of the high-minded, that this good company may work its own kind in him who frequents it.
By doing this, he will fulfill the true role of a friend. He will connect his student with the community he values the most, surrounding him with the uplifting presence of those with strong principles, so that this positive environment can influence and shape the character of the one who engages with it.
But he will likewise seek to turn him aside from such company, whether of books or of men, as might tend to lower his reverence, his choice, or his standard. He will, therefore, discourage indiscriminate reading, and that worse than waste which consists in skimming the books of a circulating library. He knows that if a book is worth reading at all, it is worth reading well; and that, if it is not worth reading, it is only to the most accomplished reader that it can be worth skimming. He will seek to make him discern, not merely between the good and the evil, but between the good and the not so good. And this not for the sake of sharpening the intellect, still less of generating that self-satisfaction which is the closest attendant upon criticism, but for the sake of choosing the best path and the best companions upon it. A spirit of criticism for the sake of distinguishing only, or, far worse, for the sake of having one’s opinion ready upon demand, is not merely repulsive to all true thinkers, but is, in itself, destructive of all thinking. A spirit of criticism for the sake of the truth—a spirit that does not start from its chamber at every noise, but waits till its presence is desired—cannot, indeed, garnish the house, but can sweep it clean. Were there enough of such wise criticism, there would be ten times the study of the best writers of the past, and perhaps one-tenth of the admiration for the ephemeral productions of the day. A gathered mountain of misplaced worships would be swept into the sea by the study of one good book; and while what was good in an inferior book would still be admired, the relative position of the book would be altered and its influence lessened.
But he will also try to steer him away from any company, whether it's books or people, that might lower his respect, choices, or standards. Therefore, he will discourage casual reading, especially the mindless skimming of books from a public library. He understands that if a book is worth reading at all, it’s worth reading deeply; and if a book isn't worth reading, it can only be worth skimming for the most skilled reader. He will encourage him to distinguish not just between good and bad, but also between good and mediocre. And he does this not to sharpen the intellect, or to encourage the kind of self-satisfaction that often comes with criticism, but to help choose the best path and the best companions along that path. A critical spirit that only seeks to distinguish or, worse, to have an opinion handy whenever needed, is not only off-putting to genuine thinkers, but is also destructive to all thinking. A spirit of criticism that seeks the truth—a spirit that doesn’t react to every noise but waits until its insights are needed—may not decorate the space, but it can certainly clean it up. If there were more of such wise criticism, there would be ten times more studying of the best writers from the past, and perhaps only a fraction of the admiration for today’s fleeting creations. A mountain of misplaced admiration would be washed away by the study of one good book; and while the merits of an inferior book would still be appreciated, its significance would shift and its influence would diminish.
Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: “It taketh away vain admiration of anything, which is the root of all weakness.”
Speaking of true learning, Lord Bacon says: “It removes any pointless admiration of anything, which is the root of all weakness.”
The right teacher would have his pupil easy to please, but ill to satisfy; ready to enjoy, unready to embrace; keen to discover beauty, slow to say, “Here I will dwell.”
The right teacher would have their student easy to please, but hard to satisfy; eager to enjoy, hesitant to commit; excited to discover beauty, slow to say, “This is where I will stay.”
But he will not confine his instructions to the region of art. He will encourage him to read history with an eye eager for the dawning figure of the past. He will especially show him that a great part of the Bible is only thus to be understood; and that the constant and consistent way of God, to be discovered in it, is in fact the key to all history.
But he won't limit his lessons to just art. He'll encourage him to read history with a keen interest in uncovering the past. He'll particularly emphasize that a significant portion of the Bible can only be understood this way, and that recognizing the consistent manner of God revealed in it is actually the key to understanding all of history.
In the history of individuals, as well, he will try to show him how to put sign and token together, constructing not indeed a whole, but a probable suggestion of the whole.
In the history of people, he will also attempt to show him how to combine signs and symbols, creating not a complete picture, but a reasonable suggestion of the whole.
And, again, while showing him the reflex of nature in the poets, he will not be satisfied without sending him to Nature herself; urging him in country rambles to keep open eyes for the sweet fashionings and blendings of her operation around him; and in city walks to watch the “human face divine.”
And once more, while pointing out how nature is reflected in poetry, he won't be content until he directs him to Nature itself; encouraging him during country walks to stay aware of the beautiful shapes and combinations of her work around him; and in city strolls to observe the “human face divine.”
Once more: he will point out to him the essential difference between reverie and thought; between dreaming and imagining. He will teach him not to mistake fancy, either in himself or in others for imagination, and to beware of hunting after resemblances that carry with them no interpretation.
Once again, he will show him the key difference between daydreaming and thinking; between dreaming and truly imagining. He will teach him not to confuse fantasy, whether in himself or in others, with real imagination, and to be cautious about chasing after similarities that don't have any real meaning.
Such training is not solely fitted for the possible development of artistic faculty. Few, in this world, will ever be able to utter what they feel. Fewer still will be able to utter it in forms of their own. Nor is it necessary that there should be many such. But it is necessary that all should feel. It is necessary that all should understand and imagine the good; that all should begin, at least, to follow and find out God.
Such training isn't just for developing artistic talent. Few people in this world will ever be able to express what they feel. Even fewer will be able to do it in their own way. But it doesn't matter if there aren't many who can. What matters is that everyone should feel. Everyone should understand and envision the good; that everyone should at least start to seek and discover God.
“The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to find it out,” says Solomon. “As if,” remarks Bacon on the passage, “according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took delight to hide his works, to the end to have them found out; and as if kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God’s playfellows in that game.”
"The glory of God is to hide something, but the glory of the king is to discover it," says Solomon. "As if," notes Bacon on the passage, "just like the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty enjoys hiding His works so that they can be uncovered; and as if kings couldn't receive a greater honor than to be God's playmates in that game."
One more quotation from the book of Ecclesiastes, setting forth both the necessity we are under to imagine, and the comfort that our imagining cannot outstrip God’s making.
One more quote from the book of Ecclesiastes, highlighting both our need to imagine and the assurance that our imagination can't surpass God's creation.
“I have seen the travail which God hath given to the sons of men to be exercised in it. He hath made everything beautiful in his time; also he hath set the world in their heart, so that no man can find out the work that God maketh from the beginning to the end.”
“I have observed the hard work that God has given to people to engage in. He has made everything beautiful in its own time; He has also placed eternity in their hearts, so that no one can understand the work that God does from beginning to end.”
Thus to be playfellows with God in this game, the little ones may gather their daisies and follow their painted moths; the child of the kingdom may pore upon the lilies of the field, and gather faith as the birds of the air their food from the leafless hawthorn, ruddy with the stores God has laid up for them; and the man of science
Thus, to be playmates with God in this game, the little ones can pick their daisies and chase their colorful butterflies; the child of the kingdom can admire the lilies of the field and collect faith just as the birds of the air gather their food from the bare hawthorn, vibrant with the treasures God has provided for them; and the man of science
“May sit and rightly spell Of every star that heaven doth shew, And every herb that sips the dew; Till old experience do attain To something like prophetic strain.”
“Can sit and accurately name Every star that lights up the sky, And every plant that drinks the dew; Until old experience reaches Something close to a prophetic insight.”
A SKETCH OF INDIVIDUAL DEVELOPMENT.
[Footnote: 1880.]
[Footnote: 1880.]
“I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!” said a child once to his mother. “Only,” he added, “I was not made till I was finished, so I couldn’t.” We cannot recall whence we came, nor tell how we began to be. We know approximately how far back we can remember, but have no idea how far back we may not have forgotten. Certainly we knew once much that we have forgotten now. My own earliest definable memory is of a great funeral of one of the Dukes of Gordon, when I was between two and three years of age. Surely my first knowledge was not of death. I must have known much and many things before, although that seems my earliest memory. As in what we foolishly call maturity, so in the dawn of consciousness, both before and after it has begun to be buttressed with self-consciousness, each succeeding consciousness dims—often obliterates—that which went before, and with regard to our past as well as our future, imagination and faith must step into the place vacated of knowledge. We are aware, and we know that we are aware, but when or how we began to be aware, is wrapt in a mist that deepens on the one side into deepest night, and on the other brightens into the full assurance of existence. Looking back we can but dream, looking forward we lose ourselves in speculation; but we may both speculate and dream, for all speculation is not false, and all dreaming is not of the unreal. What may we fairly imagine as to the inward condition of the child before the first moment of which his memory affords him testimony?
“I wish I had thought to watch when God was making me!” a child once said to his mother. “But,” he added, “I wasn’t made until I was finished, so I couldn’t.” We can’t remember where we came from or how we began to exist. We know roughly how far back we can remember, but we have no idea how much we might have forgotten. Clearly, we once knew a lot that we’ve forgotten now. My earliest clear memory is of a big funeral for one of the Dukes of Gordon when I was between two and three years old. Surely, my first awareness wasn’t of death. I must have known a lot of things before that, even though it seems like my first memory. Just like in what we naively call maturity, in the early stages of awareness—both before and after it starts to be supported by self-awareness—each new awareness often dims—or completely wipes out—what came before. Regarding our past as well as our future, imagination and faith have to fill in the gaps left by knowledge. We are aware, and we know we are aware, but when or how we started being aware is wrapped in a haze that deepens into the darkest night on one side and brightens into the full assurance of existence on the other. Looking back, we can only dream; looking forward, we get lost in speculation. Yet, we can both speculate and dream because not all speculation is false and not all dreaming is about the unreal. What can we reasonably imagine about the inner state of the child before the first moment that his memory captures?
It is one, I venture to say, of absolute, though, no doubt, largely negative faith. Neither memory of pain that is past, nor apprehension of pain to come, once arises to give him the smallest concern. In some way, doubtless very vague, for his being itself is a border-land of awful mystery, he is aware of being surrounded, enfolded with an atmosphere of love; the sky over him is his mother’s face; the earth that nourishes him is his mother’s bosom. The source, the sustentation, the defence of his being, the endless mediation betwixt his needs and the things that supply them, are all one. There is no type so near the highest idea of relation to a God, as that of the child to his mother. Her face is God, her bosom Nature, her arms are Providence—all love—one love—to him an undivided bliss.
It's a kind of faith that's absolute, even if it’s mostly negative. He doesn’t worry about past pain or fear future pain at all. In a way that he can’t fully grasp, since his existence is surrounded by deep mystery, he feels enveloped by love; the sky above him is like his mother’s face, and the earth that nurtures him is like his mother’s embrace. The source and support of his existence, and the constant connection between his needs and what meets them, are all one. No relationship reflects the highest idea of connection with a God better than that of a child with their mother. Her face represents God, her embrace is Nature, and her arms symbolize Providence—all love—one love—bringing him complete joy.
The region beyond him he regards from this vantage-ground of unquestioned security. There things may come and go, rise and vanish—he neither desires nor bemoans them. Change may grow swift, its swiftness grow fierce, and pass into storm: to him storm is calm; his haven is secure; his rest cannot be broken: he is accountable for nothing, knows no responsibility. Conscience is not yet awake, and there is no conflict. His waking is full of sleep, yet his very being is enough for him.
He looks out at the world beyond him from this place of complete safety. There, things may come and go, rise and fall—he neither wants them nor regrets their absence. Change can happen quickly, even violently, and turn into chaos: to him, chaos feels like peace; his safe space is untouched; his rest is unshakable: he is responsible for nothing, feels no burden. His conscience is still asleep, and there are no inner struggles. His waking moments feel like sleep, yet his very existence is sufficient for him.
But all the time his mother lives in the hope of his growth. In the present babe, her heart broods over the coming boy—the unknown marvel closed in the visible germ. Let mothers lament as they will over the change from childhood to maturity, which of them would not grow weary of nursing for ever a child in whom no live law of growth kept unfolding an infinite change! The child knows nothing of growth—desires none—but grows. Within him is the force of a power he can no more resist than the peach can refuse to swell and grow ruddy in the sun. By slow, inappreciable, indivisible accretion and outfolding, he is lifted, floated, drifted on towards the face of the awful mirror in which he must encounter his first foe—must front himself.
But all the while, his mother holds onto the hope of his growth. In the current baby, her heart dreams of the future boy—the unknown wonder wrapped in the visible seed. Let mothers complain as they wish about the change from childhood to adulthood; which of them wouldn’t get tired of endlessly nursing a child in whom no living law of growth keeps revealing endless change? The child knows nothing of growth—desires none—but still, he grows. Inside him is the force of a power he can no more resist than a peach can refuse to swell and turn red in the sunlight. Through slow, barely noticeable, indivisible accumulation and unfolding, he is lifted, carried, and drifted toward the face of the terrifying mirror in which he must confront his first enemy—must face himself.
By degrees he has learned that the world is around, and not within him—that he is apart, and that is apart; from consciousness he passes to self-consciousness. This is a second birth, for now a higher life begins. When a man not only lives, but knows that he lives, then first the possibility of a real life commences. By real life, I mean life which has a share in its own existence.
Gradually, he has realized that the world exists outside of him, not just within him—that he is separate, and that separation is real; he shifts from simple awareness to self-awareness. This is like a second birth, as a higher level of life begins. When a person not only exists but also understands that they exist, that's when the possibility of a genuine life starts. By genuine life, I mean a life that has a stake in its own existence.
For now, towards the world around him—the world that is not his mother, and, actively at least, neither loves him nor ministers to him, reveal themselves certain relations, initiated by fancies, desires, preferences, that arise within himself—reasonable or not matters little:—founded in reason, they can in no case be devoid of reason. Every object concerned in these relations presents itself to the man as lovely, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, bad; and through these relations, obscure and imperfect, and to a being weighted with a strong faculty for mistake, begins to be revealed the existence and force of Being other and higher than his own, recognized as Will, and first of all in its opposition to his desires. Thereupon begins the strife without which there never was, and, I presume, never can be, any growth, any progress; and the first result is what I may call the third birth of the human being.
For now, regarding the world around him—the world that isn’t his mother, and, at least in an active sense, neither loves him nor takes care of him—certain relationships emerge, sparked by his thoughts, desires, and preferences that arise within himself. Whether these feelings are reasonable or not doesn’t matter much; since they’re based in reason, they can’t be completely without it. Each object involved in these relationships appears to him as beautiful, desirable, good, or ugly, hateful, and bad; and through these relationships, which are unclear and imperfect, a being burdened with a strong tendency to make mistakes begins to perceive the existence and power of something greater than himself, recognized as Will, especially in how it opposes his desires. This is where the struggle starts—without which there has never been, and I suppose there never can be, any growth or progress; and the first outcome of this is what I would call the third birth of the human being.
The first opposing glance of the mother wakes in the child not only answering opposition, which is as the rudimentary sac of his own coming will, but a new something, to which for long he needs no name, so natural does it seem, so entirely a portion of his being, even when most he refuses to listen to and obey it. This new something—we call it Conscience—sides with his mother, and causes its presence and judgment to be felt not only before but after the event, so that he soon comes to know that it is well with him or ill with him as he obeys or disobeys it. And now he not only knows, not only knows that he knows, but knows he knows that he knows—knows that he is self-conscious—that he has a conscience. With the first sense of resistance to it, the power above him has drawn nearer, and the deepest within him has declared itself on the side of the highest without him. At one and the same moment, the heaven of his childhood has, as it were, receded and come nigher. He has run from under it, but it claims him. It is farther, yet closer—immeasurably closer: he feels on his being the grasp and hold of his mother’s. Through the higher individuality he becomes aware of his own. Through the assertion of his mother’s will, his own begins to awake. He becomes conscious of himself as capable of action—of doing or of not doing; his responsibility has begun.
The first disapproving glance from a mother stirs in the child not only a response to opposition, as basic as the instinct of his own existence, but also something new, which for a while he doesn’t even need a name for, as it feels so natural and fully part of him, even when he most resists listening to and following it. This new thing—we call it Conscience—aligns with his mother, making its presence and judgment felt both before and after actions, so he quickly learns that things are well or bad for him depending on whether he obeys or disobeys it. Now he not only knows, not only knows that he knows, but knows he knows that he knows—he understands that he is self-aware—that he has a conscience. With the first feeling of resistance against it, the power above him has drawn closer, and the deepest part of him has declared itself aligned with the highest part outside of him. At the same moment, the paradise of his childhood has, in a way, both retreated and come closer. He has tried to escape its influence, but it still claims him. It feels farther away, yet so much closer—immeasurably closer: he feels the grip and hold of his mother on him. Through this higher individuality, he becomes aware of his own. Through his mother asserting her will, his own starts to awaken. He becomes aware of himself as capable of action—of choosing to do or not do; his sense of responsibility has begun.
He slips from her lap; he travels from chair to chair; he puts his circle round the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he braves the precipice of the stair; he takes the greatest step that, according to George Herbert, is possible to man—that out of doors, changing the house for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden; crosses the road; wanders, is lost, is found again. His powers expand, his activity increases; he goes to school, and meets other boys like himself; new objects of strife are discovered, new elements of strife developed; new desires are born, fresh impulses urge. The old heaven, the face and will of his mother, recede farther and farther; a world of men, which he foolishly thinks a nobler as it is a larger world, draws him, claims him. More or less he yields. The example and influence of such as seem to him more than his mother like himself, grow strong upon him. His conscience speaks louder. And here, even at this early point in his history, what I might call his fourth birth may begin to take place: I mean the birth in him of the Will—the real Will—not the pseudo-will, which is the mere Desire, swayed of impulse, selfishness, or one of many a miserable motive. When the man, listening to his conscience, wills and does the right, irrespective of inclination as of consequence, then is the man free, the universe open before him. He is born from above. To him conscience needs never speak aloud, needs never speak twice; to him her voice never grows less powerful, for he never neglects what she commands. And when he becomes aware that he can will his will, that God has given him a share in essential life, in the causation of his own being, then is he a man indeed. I say, even here this birth may begin; but with most it takes years not a few to complete it. For, the power of the mother having waned, the power of the neighbour is waxing. If the boy be of common clay, that is, of clay willing to accept dishonour, this power of the neighbour over him will increase and increase, till individuality shall have vanished from him, and what his friends, what society, what the trade or the profession say, will be to him the rule of life. With such, however, I have to do no more than with the deaf dead, who sleep too deep for words to reach them.
He slips off her lap; he moves from chair to chair; he circles the room; he dares to cross the threshold; he faces the edge of the stairs; he takes the biggest step that, according to George Herbert, is possible for a person—that outside, trading the house for the universe; he runs from flower to flower in the garden; crosses the street; wanders, gets lost, and finds himself again. His abilities grow, his activity increases; he goes to school and meets other boys like him; new conflicts emerge, new sources of struggle develop; new desires arise, fresh impulses push him. The old comfort, his mother’s face and will, recede further and further; a world of men, which he naively believes is nobler because it’s larger, draws him in, claims him. He somewhat gives in. The example and influence of those he sees as more similar to him than his mother become stronger. His conscience speaks louder. And even at this early point in his life, what I’d call his fourth birth may begin to happen: I mean the birth of the Will—the real Will—not the fake will that’s just Desire, driven by impulse, selfishness, or one of many miserable motives. When a man, listening to his conscience, chooses to do what’s right, regardless of what he feels or what happens, then he is free, the universe opens up for him. He is reborn. For him, conscience never has to shout, never has to repeat itself; for him, her voice never loses its power, because he never ignores what she commands. And when he realizes that he can will his own will, that God has given him a part in the essence of life, in the creation of his own being, then he is truly a man. I say, even here this birth may begin; but for most, it takes many years to fully develop. For, as the power of the mother declines, the influence of peers increases. If the boy is made of common stuff, willing to accept disgrace, this influence of his peers will grow and grow, until his individuality disappears, and what his friends, what society, what his job or profession says becomes the rule of his life. With such people, however, I have to deal no more than with the deaf dead, who are too deep in sleep for words to reach them.
My typical child of man is not of such. He is capable not of being influenced merely, but of influencing—and first of all of influencing himself; of taking a share in his own making; of determining actively, not by mere passivity, what he shall be and become; for he never ceases to pay at least a little heed, however poor and intermittent, to the voice of his conscience, and to-day he pays more heed than he did yesterday.
My typical human isn't like that. They're not just influenced, but they can influence others—and most importantly, they can influence themselves. They take an active role in shaping their own identity and deciding who they will be; they don’t just passively accept things. They always pay at least a little attention, even if it’s sporadic, to their conscience, and today they pay more attention than they did yesterday.
Long ere now the joy of space, of room, has laid hold upon him—the more powerfully if he inhabit a wild and broken region. The human animal delights in motion and change, motions of his members even violent, and swiftest changes of place. It is as if he would lay hold of the infinite by ceaseless abandonment and choice of a never-abiding stand-point, as if he would lay hold of strength by the consciousness of the strength he has. He is full of unrest. He must know what lies on the farther shore of every river, see how the world looks from every hill: What is behind? What is beyond? is his constant cry. To learn, to gather into himself, is his longing. Nor do many years pass thus, it may be not many months, ere the world begins to come alive around him. He begins to feel that the stars are strange, that the moon is sad, that the sunrise is mighty. He begins to see in them all the something men call beauty. He will lie on the sunny bank and gaze into the blue heaven till his soul seems to float abroad and mingle with the infinite made visible, with the boundless condensed into colour and shape. The rush of the water through the still twilight, under the faint gleam of the exhausted west, makes in his ears a melody he is almost aware he cannot understand. Dissatisfied with his emotions he desires a deeper waking, longs for a greater beauty, is troubled with the stirring in his bosom of an unknown ideal of Nature. Nor is it an ideal of Nature alone that is forming within him. A far more precious thing, a human ideal namely, is in his soul, gathering to itself shape and consistency. The wind that at night fills him with sadness—he cannot tell why, in the daytime haunts him like a wild consciousness of strength which has neither difficulty nor danger enough to spend itself upon. He would be a champion of the weak, a friend to the great; for both he would fight—a merciless foe to every oppressor of his kind. He would be rich that he might help, strong that he might rescue, brave—that he counts himself already, for he has not proved his own weakness. In the first encounter he fails, and the bitter cup of shame and confusion of face, wholesome and saving, is handed him from the well of life. He is not yet capable of understanding that one such as he, filled with the glory and not the duty of victory, could not but fail, and therefore ought to fail; but his dismay and chagrin are soothed by the forgetfulness the days and nights bring, gently wiping out the sins that are past, that the young life may have a fresh chance, as we say, and begin again unburdened by the weight of a too much present failure.
Long ago, the joy of having space and freedom took hold of him—especially powerfully when he's in a wild and rugged area. Humans thrive on movement and change, even if it means swift and intense action. It’s as if he’s trying to grasp infinity by constantly letting go and choosing to be in different places, as if he seeks strength through the awareness of his own power. He feels restless. He wants to know what’s on the other side of every river, to see how the world looks from every hill: What’s behind? What’s beyond? is his incessant question. To learn and absorb experiences is his desire. Before long, sometimes just within months, the world starts to come alive around him. He begins to sense that the stars are unusual, that the moon feels melancholic, and that the sunrise is powerful. He starts to see the beauty in all of these things. He’ll lie on a sunlit bank and gaze up at the blue sky until his spirit seems to drift away and mingle with the infinite, with the boundless made visible, brought together in color and form. The sound of water rushing through the still dusk, under the faint glow of the fading west, creates a melody in his ears that he almost knows he can’t completely understand. Unhappy with his feelings, he yearns for a deeper awakening, longs for a greater beauty, and feels troubled by the stirring of an unknown ideal of Nature inside him. But it's not just an ideal of Nature that’s forming; a far more valuable human ideal is taking shape within his soul. The wind that fills him with sadness at night—he can’t explain why—during the day haunts him like an intense awareness of strength that lacks the challenges or dangers to be fully realized. He wants to be a defender of the weak, a friend to the strong; he would fight for both—merciless against every oppressor. He desires wealth to help others, strength to save, and bravery—though he believes himself brave already, since he hasn’t faced his own weaknesses yet. In his first confrontation, he fails, and the painful cup of shame and embarrassment, which can be a lesson and a blessing, is handed to him from the well of life. He doesn’t yet grasp that someone like him, filled with the glory but not the responsibility of victory, would naturally fail, and thus should fail; but his disappointment and frustration are eased by the forgetfulness that days and nights bring, gently erasing past mistakes so that young life can have a fresh start, free from the burden of too many present failures.
And now, probably at school, or in the first months of his college-life, a new phase of experience begins. He has wandered over the border of what is commonly called science, and the marvel of facts multitudinous, strung upon the golden threads of law, has laid hold upon him. His intellect is seized and possessed by a new spirit. For a time knowledge is pride; the mere consciousness of knowing is the reward of its labour; the ever recurring, ever passing contact of mind with a new fact is a joy full of excitement, and promises an endless delight. But ever the thing that is known sinks into insignificance, save as a step of the endless stair on which he is climbing—whither he knows not; the unknown draws him; the new fact touches his mind, flames up in the contact, and drops dark, a mere fact, on the heap below. Even the grandeur of law as law, so far from adding fresh consciousness to his life, causes it no small suffering and loss. For at the entrance of Science, nobly and gracefully as she bears herself, young Poetry shrinks back startled, dismayed. Poetry is true as Science, and Science is holy as Poetry; but young Poetry is timid and Science is fearless, and bears with her a colder atmosphere than the other has yet learned to brave. It is not that Madam Science shows any antagonism to Lady Poetry; but the atmosphere and plane on which alone they can meet as friends who understand each other, is the mind and heart of the sage, not of the boy. The youth gazes on the face of Science, cold, clear, beautiful; then, turning, looks for his friend—but, alas! Poetry has fled. With a great pang at the heart he rushes abroad to find her, but descries only the rainbow glimmer of her skirt on the far horizon. At night, in his dreams, she returns, but never for a season may he look on her face of loveliness. What, alas! have evaporation, caloric, atmosphere, refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, to do with “sad Hesper o’er the buried sun?” From quantitative analysis how shall he turn again to “the rime of the ancient mariner,” and “the moving moon” that “went up the sky, and nowhere did abide”? From his window he gazes across the sands to the mightily troubled ocean: “What is the storm to me any more!” he cries; “it is but the clashing of countless water-drops!” He finds relief in the discovery that, the moment you place man in the midst of it, the clashing of water-drops becomes a storm, terrible to heart and brain: human thought and feeling, hope, fear, love, sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and the shadows of destiny. The relief, however, is but partial, and may be but temporary; for what if this mingling of man and Nature in the mind of man be but the casting of a coloured shadow over her cold indifference? What if she means nothing—never was meant to mean anything! What if in truth “we receive but what we give, and in our life alone doth Nature live!” What if the language of metaphysics as well as of poetry be drawn, not from Nature at all, but from human fancy concerning her!
And now, probably at school or in the early months of college, a new phase of experience begins. He has crossed into what is often called science, and the wonder of countless facts, connected by the golden threads of law, has captivated him. His mind is taken over by a new spirit. For a while, knowledge feels like pride; just being aware that he knows is the reward for his hard work; the constant, fleeting interaction between his mind and new facts brings him joy full of excitement and promises endless delight. But the things he knows quickly fade into insignificance, except as steps on the endless staircase he’s climbing—where he’s heading, he doesn’t know; the unknown pulls him in; the new fact sparks his mind, ignites a flame in the moment, and then falls dark, just a mere fact, onto the pile below. Even the greatness of law, as a law, doesn't add any fresh awareness to his life, bringing him no small pain and loss. At the doorway of Science, noble and graceful as it appears, young Poetry shrinks back, startled and dismayed. Poetry is as true as Science, and Science is as sacred as Poetry; but young Poetry is timid while Science is bold, carrying a colder atmosphere than Poetry has yet learned to face. It’s not that Madam Science shows any hostility toward Lady Poetry; it’s just that the only place they can meet as friends who truly understand each other is in the mind and heart of the wise, not of the boy. The youth gazes at the face of Science, cold, clear, beautiful; then, turning, looks for his friend—but, alas! Poetry has vanished. With a heavy heart, he rushes out to find her, but sees only the rainbow shimmer of her skirt on the distant horizon. At night, in his dreams, she returns, but he may not gaze upon her lovely face for a long time. What, alas! do evaporation, heat, atmosphere, refraction, the prism, and the second planet of our system, have to do with “sad Hesper o’er the buried sun?” From quantitative analysis, how can he return to “the rime of the ancient mariner,” and “the moving moon” that “rose up the sky, and didn’t stay anywhere”? From his window, he looks out across the sands to the wildly agitated ocean: “What is the storm to me now?” he cries; “it’s just the clash of countless water-drops!” He finds some comfort in realizing that once you place man in the middle of it, the clash of water-drops turns into a storm, terrifying to heart and mind: human thoughts and feelings, hope, fear, love, sacrifice, make the motions of nature alive with mystery and the shadows of fate. However, this relief is only partial and may be temporary; for what if this mixing of man and Nature in the human mind is just casting a colored shadow over her cold indifference? What if she means nothing—never was meant to mean anything! What if, in truth, “we only receive what we give, and in our life alone does Nature live!” What if the language of metaphysics as well as poetry is drawn, not from Nature at all, but from human imagination about her!
At length, from the unknown, whence himself he came, appears an angel to deliver him from this horror—this stony look—ah, God! of soulless law. The woman is on her way whose part it is to meet him with a life other than his own, at once the complement of his, and the visible presentment of that in it which is beyond his own understanding. The enchantment of what we specially call love is upon him—a deceiving glamour, say some, showing what is not, an opening of the eyes, say others, revealing that of which a man had not been aware: men will still be divided into those who believe that the horses of fire and the chariots of fire are ever present at their need of them, and those who class the prophet and the drunkard in the same category as the fools of their own fancies. But what this love is, he who thinks he knows least understands. Let foolish maidens and vulgar youths simper and jest over it as they please, it is one of the most potent mysteries of the living God. The man who can love a woman and remain a lover of his wretched self, is fit only to be cast out with the broken potsherds of the city, as one in whom the very salt has lost its savour. With this love in his heart, a man puts on at least the vision robes of the seer, if not the singing robes of the poet. Be he the paltriest human animal that ever breathed, for the time, and in his degree, he rises above himself. His nature so far clarifies itself, that here and there a truth of the great world will penetrate, sorely dimmed, through the fog-laden, self-shadowed atmosphere of his microcosm. For the time, I repeat, he is not a lover only, but something of a friend, with a reflex touch of his own far-off childhood. To the youth of my history, in the light of his love—a light that passes outward from the eyes of the lover—the world grows alive again, yea radiant as an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he saw them in boyhood, recovering from an illness of all the winter, only they have a yet deeper glow, a yet fresher delight, a yet more unspeakable soul. He becomes pitiful over them, and not willingly breaks their stems, to hurt the life he more than half believes they share with him. He cannot think anything created only for him, any more than only for itself. Nature is no longer a mere contention of forces, whose heaven and whose hell in one is the dull peace of an equilibrium; but a struggle, through splendour of colour, graciousness of form, and evasive vitality of motion and sound, after an utterance hard to find, and never found but marred by the imperfection of the small and weak that would embody and set forth the great and mighty. The waving of the tree-tops is the billowy movement of a hidden delight. The sun lifts his head with intent to be glorious. No day lasts too long, no night comes too soon: the twilight is woven of shadowy arms that draw the loving to the bosom of the Night. In the woman, the infinite after which he thirsts is given him for his own.
Finally, from the unknown place he came from, an angel appears to free him from this nightmare—this cold stare—oh, God! of lifeless law. The woman is on her way, destined to meet him with a life that complements his own and represents something that he can't quite grasp. The enchantment of what we call love has taken hold of him—a misleading charm, some say, showing what isn't real; an awakening of the senses, others argue, revealing things he hadn’t noticed before. People will always be split between those who believe in the existence of fiery horses and chariots ready to help them, and those who lump the prophet and the drunkard together with the fools of their own making. But what this love is, even those who know the least understand in some way. Let silly young women and crude young men laugh and joke about it all they want; it remains one of the most powerful mysteries of the living God. A man who can love a woman while still being a lover of his miserable self is only fit to be discarded with the broken shards of the city, someone in whom the very essence has lost its flavor. With this love in his heart, a man at least dons the vision of a seer, if not the creative sparkle of a poet. Even if he's the most insignificant person ever, for that moment, he rises above himself. His nature becomes clear enough for glimpses of truth from the greater world to penetrate through the foggy shadows of his own small existence. For now, I repeat, he is not just a lover, but also somewhat of a friend, with a hint of his far-off childhood. For the youth in my story, in the light of his love—a light that radiates from the lover's eyes—the world comes alive again, yes, shining like an infinite face. He sees the flowers as he did in childhood, recovering from the long winter, only they now have an even deeper glow, a fresher joy, a more indescribable soul. He feels compassion for them and doesn't willingly break their stems, trying not to harm the life he believes they share with him. He can't think anything was created just for him, any more than it exists solely for itself. Nature is no longer just a struggle of forces, where its heaven and hell blend into the dull peace of balance; rather, it’s a quest, through splendid colors, graceful shapes, and the lively movement and sound, for an expression that's hard to find and always flawed due to the small and weak trying to embody the great and powerful. The rustling of the treetops reflects hidden joy. The sun raises its head wanting to shine brightly. No day runs too long, no night arrives too early: twilight is the weaving of shadowy arms that draw the loving into the embrace of Night. In the woman, the infinite he desires is given to him as his own.
Man’s occupation with himself turns his eyes from the great life beyond his threshold: when love awakes, he forgets himself for a time, and many a glimpse of strange truth finds its way through his windows, blocked no longer by the shadow of himself. He may now catch even a glimpse of the possibilities of his own being—may dimly perceive for a moment the image after which he was made. But alas! too soon, self, radiant of darkness, awakes; every window becomes opaque with shadow, and the man is again a prisoner. For it is not the highest word alone that the cares of this world, the deceitfulness of riches, and the lust of other things entering in, choke, and render unfruitful. Waking from the divine vision, if that can be called waking which is indeed dying into the common day, the common man regards it straightway as a foolish dream; the wise man believes in it still, holds fast by the memory of the vanished glory, and looks to have it one day again a present portion of the light of his life. He knows that, because of the imperfection and dulness and weakness of his nature, after every vision follow the inclosing clouds, with the threat of an ever during dark; knows that, even if the vision could tarry, it were not well, for the sake of that which must yet be done with him, yet be made of him, that it should tarry. But the youth whose history I am following is not like the former, nor as yet like the latter.
A person's focus on themselves keeps them from seeing the bigger life outside their door. When love awakens, they forget themselves for a while, allowing strange truths to peek through their windows, no longer hidden by their own shadow. They might even catch a glimpse of their own potential—briefly seeing the person they were meant to be. But unfortunately, self, filled with darkness, soon wakes up; every window gets covered in shadow again, and the person becomes imprisoned once more. It's not just the highest ideals that get stifled by the world's cares, the deceit of wealth, and the desire for more, which choke and render life unfruitful. When waking from a divine vision—if that can be called waking when it feels more like dying into everyday life—the average person quickly dismisses it as a foolish dream; the wise person still believes in it, holds on to the memory of the lost glory, and hopes to have it as part of their life again one day. They understand that because of the flaws, dullness, and weakness of their nature, after every vision comes a wave of enclosing clouds, threatening an ongoing darkness; they know that even if the vision could stay, it wouldn’t be good, considering what still needs to be accomplished and who they still need to become. But the young man whose story I'm following is not like the former, nor is he yet like the latter.
From whatever cause, then, whether of fault, of natural law, or of supernal will, the flush that seemed to promise the dawn of an eternal day, shrinks and fades, though, with him, like the lagging skirt of the sunset in the northern west, it does not vanish, but travels on, a withered pilgrim, all the night, at the long last to rise the aureole of the eternal Aurora. And now new paths entice him—or old paths opening fresh horizons. With stronger thews and keener nerves he turns again to the visible around him. The changelessness amid change, the law amid seeming disorder, the unity amid units, draws him again. He begins to descry the indwelling poetry of science. The untiring forces at work in measurable yet inconceivable spaces of time and room, fill his soul with an awe that threatens to uncreate him with a sense of littleness; while, on the other side, the grandeur of their operations fills him with such an informing glory, the mere presence of the mighty facts, that he no more thinks of himself, but in humility is great, and knows it not. Rapt spectator, seer entranced under the magic wand of Science, he beholds the billions of billions of miles of incandescent vapour begin a slow, scarce perceptible revolution, gradually grow swift, and gather an awful speed. He sees the vapour, as it whirls, condensing through slow eternities to a plastic fluidity. He notes ring after ring part from the circumference of the mass, break, rush together into a globe, and the glowing ball keep on through space with the speed of its parent bulk. It cools and still cools and condenses, but still fiercely glows. Presently—after tens of thousands of years is the creative presently—arises fierce contention betwixt the glowing heart and its accompanying atmosphere. The latter invades the former with antagonistic element. He listens in his soul, and hears the rush of ever descending torrent rains, with the continuous roaring shock of their evanishment in vapour—to turn again to water in the higher regions, and again rush to the attack upon the citadel of fire. He beholds the slow victory of the water at last, and the great globe, now glooming in a cloak of darkness, covered with a wildly boiling sea—not boiling by figure of speech, under contending forces of wind and tide, but boiling high as the hills to come, with veritable heat. He sees the rise of the wrinkles we call hills and mountains, and from their sides the avalanches of water to the lower levels. He sees race after race of living things appear, as the earth becomes, for each new and higher kind, a passing home; and he watches the succession of terrible convulsions dividing kind from kind, until at length the kind he calls his own arrives. Endless are the visions of material grandeur unfathomable, awaked in his soul by the bare facts of external existence.
From whatever cause, whether due to fault, natural law, or higher power, the glow that seemed to promise the start of an endless day shrinks and fades. Yet, like the fading glow of sunset in the northern west, it doesn’t completely disappear but travels on as a weary traveler all night, eventually rising as the halo of the eternal dawn. Now, new paths attract him—or old paths revealing new horizons. With stronger muscles and sharper senses, he looks again at the world around him. The unchanging amidst change, the order within apparent chaos, the unity among individuals draws him back in. He starts to perceive the hidden beauty of science. The relentless forces at work in measurable yet unimaginable stretches of time and space fill him with an awe that makes him feel small, while also, on the flip side, the magnificence of these processes fills him with a profound glory; he no longer thinks of himself, but in humility, he feels great and doesn’t realize it. As an absorbed observer, enchanted by the magic of Science, he watches the billions of miles of glowing gas begin a slow, nearly imperceptible revolution, gradually speeding up to an incredible pace. He sees the gas swirling, condensing through endless eons into a malleable fluid. He observes ring after ring breaking off from the mass’s edge, coming together into a globe, and the glowing sphere moving through space at the speed of its larger parent mass. It cools, continues to cool, and condenses, but still burns brightly. Eventually—after tens of thousands of years is what he considers “eventually”—a fierce struggle arises between the glowing core and its surrounding atmosphere. The latter invades the former with opposing elements. He listens intently and hears the rush of endless torrential rains, with the continuous crashing sound of their disappearance into vapor—only to turn back into water in higher regions and again charge against the fortress of fire. He witnesses the gradual triumph of water, and soon the great globe, now shrouded in darkness, is covered by a violently boiling sea—not just a figure of speech, stirred by competing winds and tides, but boiling as high as the mountains to come, with real heat. He sees the formation of wrinkles we call hills and mountains, and from their sides, the torrents of water flowing down to lower levels. He watches successive waves of living beings arise as the earth becomes a temporary home for each new and higher species; he observes the succession of violent upheavals separating one type from another, until finally the species he identifies with makes its appearance. The visions of unimaginable material grandeur, stirred within him by the mere facts of external existence, are endless.
But soon comes a change. So far as he can see or learn, all the motion, all the seeming dance, is but a rush for death, a panic flight into the moveless silence. The summer wind, the tropic tornado, the softest tide, the fiercest storm, are alike the tumultuous conflict of forces, rushing, and fighting as they rush, into the arms of eternal negation. On and on they hurry—down and down, to a cold stirless solidity, where wind blows not, water flows not, where the seas are not merely tideless and beat no shores, but frozen cleave with frozen roots to their gulfy basin. All things are on the steep-sloping path to final evanishment, uncreation, non-existence. He is filled with horror—not so much of the dreary end, as at the weary hopelessness of the path thitherward. Then a dim light breaks upon him, and with it a faint hope revives, for he seems to see in all the forms of life, innumerably varied, a spirit rushing upward from death—a something in escape from the terror of the downward cataract, of the rest that knows not peace. “Is it not,” he asks, “the soaring of the silver dove of life from its potsherd-bed—the heavenward flight of some higher and incorruptible thing? Is not vitality, revealed in growth, itself an unending resurrection?”
But soon there’s a change. As far as he can see or know, all the movement, all the apparent dancing, is just a frantic rush toward death, a desperate flight into unending silence. The summer breeze, the tropical hurricane, the gentlest tide, the most violent storm, all show the same chaotic struggle of forces, rushing and clashing as they go, into the embrace of eternal nothingness. They hurry on and on—down and down, to a cold, still solidity, where the wind doesn't blow, water doesn't flow, where the seas are not just tide-free and don’t touch shores, but are frozen, clinging with icy roots to their deep basin. Everything is on the steep-sloping road to complete disappearance, uncreation, non-existence. He is filled with dread—not so much about the dreary end, but about the exhausting hopelessness of the way there. Then a faint light appears to him, and with it a glimmer of hope returns, as he seems to see in all the varied forms of life a spirit striving upward from death—a something escaping the terror of the downward rush, of the rest that knows no peace. “Is it not,” he wonders, “the soaring of the silver dove of life from its broken pot—the heavenly flight of something higher and incorruptible? Is vitality, revealed in growth, not itself an endless resurrection?”
The vision also of the oneness of the universe, ever reappearing through the vapours of question, helps to keep hope alive in him. To find, for instance, the law of the relation of the arrangements of the leaves on differing plants, correspond to the law of the relative distances of the planets in approach to their central sun, wakes in him that hope of a central Will, which alone can justify one ecstatic throb at any seeming loveliness of the universe. For without the hope of such a centre, delight is unreason—a mockery not such as the skeleton at the Egyptian feast, but such rather as a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons. Life without the higher glory of the unspeakable, the atmosphere of a God, is not life, is not worth living. He would rather cease to be, than walk the dull level of the commonplace—than live the unideal of men in whose company he can take no pleasure—men who are as of a lower race, whom he fain would lift, who will not rise, but for whom as for himself he would cherish the hope they do their best to kill. Those who seem to him great, recognize the unseen—believe the roots of science to be therein hid—regard the bringing forth into sight of the things that are invisible as the end of all Art and every art—judge the true leader of men to be him who leads them closer to the essential facts of their being. Alas for his love and his hope, alas for himself, if the visible should exist for its own sake only!—if the face of a flower means nothing—appeals to no region beyond the scope of the science that would unveil its growth. He cannot believe that its structure exists for the sake of its laws; that would be to build for the sake of its joints a scaffold where no house was to stand. Those who put their faith in Science are trying to live in the scaffold of the house invisible.
The idea of the oneness of the universe, constantly emerging through questions, helps keep his hope alive. For example, discovering that the way leaves are arranged on different plants follows the same principle as the distances of planets from their central sun sparks in him the hope of a central Will, which is the only thing that can make any beautiful part of the universe truly meaningful. Without the hope of such a center, joy becomes irrational—a mockery more like a crowned corpse at a feast of skeletons than a skeleton at an Egyptian banquet. Life, without the higher glory of the indescribable and the presence of a God, isn’t really life and isn’t worth living. He would rather stop existing than live on a dull, ordinary level—than endure the unideal existence of people he finds no joy in—people who seem to belong to a lower class, whom he wishes to uplift, but who refuse to rise, yet for whom, as for himself, he would hold onto hope that they try to destroy. Those he considers great see the unseen—believe that the roots of science are hidden there—view revealing the invisible as the ultimate goal of all art—and believe that the true leader is the one who guides others closer to the essential truths of their existence. Oh, how tragic for his love and hope, and for himself, if the visible only exists for its own sake!—if a flower’s beauty means nothing and appeals only to the limits of the science that seeks to explain its growth. He can’t accept that its structure exists solely for its laws; that would be like constructing a scaffolding for a house that doesn’t exist. Those who trust in Science are trying to live within the scaffold of an unseen house.
He finds harbour and comfort at times in the written poetry of his fellows. He delights in analyzing and grasping the thought that informs the utterance. For a moment, the fine figure, the delicate phrase, make him jubilant and strong; but the jubilation and the strength soon pass, for it is not any of the forms, even of the thought-forms of truth that can give rest to his soul.
He sometimes finds refuge and solace in the poetry written by others. He enjoys analyzing and understanding the ideas behind the words. For a brief moment, the eloquent lines and beautiful expressions lift his spirits and make him feel powerful; but that joy and strength fade quickly, as none of the forms, not even the forms of truth, can truly bring peace to his soul.
History attracts him little, for he is not able to discover by its records the operation of principles yielding hope for his race. Such there may be, but he does not find them. What hope for the rising wave that knows in its rise only its doom to sink, and at length be dashed on the low shore of annihilation?
History interests him very little because he can't find in its records any principles that offer hope for his people. They might exist, but he can't see them. What hope is there for the rising wave that only knows it will crash down and ultimately be destroyed on the shore of nothingness?
But the time would fail me to follow the doubling of the soul coursed by the hounds of Death, or to set down the forms innumerable in which the golden Haemony springs in its path,
But I wouldn't have enough time to track the journey of the soul pursued by the hounds of Death, or to describe the countless shapes in which the golden Haemony appears along the way,
Of sovran use ‘Gainst all enchantments, mildew blast, or damp.
Of great use against all spells, mold, or moisture.
And now the shadows are beginning to lengthen towards the night, which, whether there be a following morn or no, is the night, and spreads out the wings of darkness. And still as it approaches the more aware grows the man of a want that differs from any feeling I have already sought to describe—a sense of insecurity, in no wise the same as the doubt of life beyond the grave—a need more profound even than that which cries for a living Nature. And now he plainly knows, that, all his life, like a conscious duty unfulfilled, this sense has haunted his path, ever and anon descending and clinging, a cold mist, about his heart. What if this lack was indeed the root of every other anxiety! Now freshly revived, this sense of not having, of something, he knows not what, for lack of which his being is in pain at its own incompleteness, never leaves him more. And with it the terror has returned and grows, lest there should be no Unseen Power, as his fathers believed, and his mother taught him, filling all things and meaning all things,—no Power with whom, in his last extremity, awaits him a final refuge. With the quickening doubt falls a tenfold blight on the world of poetry, both that in Nature and that in books. Far worse than that early chill which the assertions of science concerning what it knows, cast upon his inexperienced soul, is now the shivering death which its pretended denials concerning what it knows not, send through all his vital frame. The soul departs from the face of beauty, when the eye begins to doubt if there be any soul behind it; and now the man feels like one I knew, affected with a strange disease, who saw in the living face always the face of a corpse. What can the world be to him who lives for thought, if there be no supreme and perfect Thought,—none but such poor struggles after thought as he finds in himself? Take the eternal thought from the heart of things, no longer can any beauty be real, no more can shape, motion, aspect of nature have significance in itself, or sympathy with human soul. At best and most the beauty he thought he saw was but the projected perfection of his own being, and from himself as the crown and summit of things, the soul of the man shrinks with horror: it is the more imperfect being who knows the least his incompleteness, and for whom, seeing so little beyond himself, it is easiest to imagine himself the heart and apex of things, and rejoice in the fancy. The killing power of a godless science returns upon him with tenfold force. The ocean-tempest is once more a mere clashing of innumerable water-drops; the green and amber sadness of the evening sky is a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness is a mockery of himself. There is nothing in the sadness, nothing in the mockery. To tell him as comfort, that in his own thought lives the meaning if nowhere else, is mockery worst of all; for if there be no truth in them, if these things be no embodiment, to make them serve as such is to put a candle in a death’s-head to light the dying through the place of tombs. To his former foolish fancy a primrose might preach a childlike trust; the untoiling lilies might from their field cast seeds of a higher growth into his troubled heart; now they are no better than the colour the painter leaves behind him on the doorpost of his workshop, when, the day’s labour over, he wipes his brush on it ere he depart for the night. The look in the eyes of his dog, happy in that he is short-lived, is one of infinite sadness. All graciousness must henceforth be a sorrow: it has to go with the sunsets. That a thing must cease takes from it the joy of even an aeonian endurance—for its kind is mortal; it belongs to the nature of things that cannot live. The sorrow is not so much that it shall perish as that it could not live—that it is not in its nature a real, that is, an eternal thing. His children are shadows—their life a dance, a sickness, a corruption. The very element of unselfishness, which, however feeble and beclouded it may be, yet exists in all love, in giving life its only dignity adds to its sorrow. Nowhere at the root of things is love—it is only a something that came after, some sort of fungous excrescence in the hearts of men grown helplessly superior to their origin. Law, nothing but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things—lifeless happily, so not knowing itself, else were it a demon instead of a creative nothing. Endeavour is paralyzed in him. “Work for posterity,” says he of the skyless philosophy; answers the man, “How can I work without hope? Little heart have I to labour, where labour is so little help. What can I do for my children that would render their life less hopeless than my own! Give me all you would secure for them, and my life would be to me but the worse mockery. The true end of labour would be, to lessen the number doomed to breathe the breath of this despair.”
And now the shadows are starting to stretch toward night, which, whether there’s a morning to follow or not, is still the night, spreading out the wings of darkness. As it approaches, the man becomes increasingly aware of a longing that’s different from anything I’ve already tried to describe—a feeling of insecurity, not the same as doubting life after death—a need even deeper than the one that cries out for a living Nature. Now he clearly realizes that all his life, like a duty he hasn’t fulfilled, this feeling has haunted him, descending and clinging like a cold mist around his heart. What if this lack is actually the root of every other worry? Now revived, this sense of lacking something—he doesn’t know what—that causes his being to ache for its incompleteness, never leaves him. Along with it, the terror has returned and is growing, fearing there might be no Unseen Power, as his fathers believed and his mother taught him, filling and giving meaning to all things—no Power waiting for him in his last moments, offering a final refuge. With this rising doubt, a heavy gloom falls on the world of poetry, in both Nature and books. Far worse than that initial chill which the claims of science cast upon his naïve soul is now the icy death that its supposed denials of what it doesn’t know send through his entire being. The soul disappears from the face of beauty when the eye starts to doubt if there’s any soul behind it; and now he feels like someone I knew who had a strange illness and always saw a corpse in the living face. What can the world mean to someone who lives for thought if there’s no supreme and perfect Thought—nothing but the weak struggles for thought that he finds in himself? Remove the eternal thought from the heart of things, and no beauty can be real anymore, nor can shape, movement, or the aspects of nature have intrinsic meaning or connect with the human soul. At best, the beauty he thought he saw was just the projected perfection of his own being, and from himself, as the crown and peak of things, the man’s soul shrinks with horror: it’s the less perfect being who least recognizes his incompleteness and for whom, seeing so little beyond himself, finds it easiest to believe he is the heart and apex of things and delights in that illusion. The deadly power of a godless science strikes him back with tenfold force. The ocean storm becomes nothing more than a clash of countless water droplets; the green and amber sadness of the evening sky is a mockery of sorrow; his own soul and its sadness mock him. There’s nothing in the sadness, nothing in the mockery. To tell him as comfort that in his own thoughts lives the meaning if nowhere else is the worst mockery of all; because if there’s no truth in them, if these things are not embodiments, then making them seem so is like placing a candle in a skull to light the dying through a graveyard. In his previous foolish fancy, a primrose might inspire childlike trust; the lilies, without toil, might cast seeds of a higher growth into his troubled heart; now they’re no better than the color a painter wipes off on the doorpost of his workshop when he finishes for the day. The look in his dog’s eyes, content in its short life, carries an infinite sadness. All grace must now be a sorrow: it has to accompany sunsets. That something must come to an end takes away even the joy of eternal endurance—because its kind is mortal; it belongs to the nature of things that cannot live. The sorrow isn’t just about its demise but rather that it couldn’t live—that it’s not in its nature to be a real, that is, an eternal thing. His children are shadows—their lives a dance, an illness, a decay. The very essence of unselfishness, which, no matter how feeble and clouded it may be, exists in all love, gives life its only dignity and adds to its sorrow. Nowhere at the core of things is love—it’s only something that came after, some kind of fungus growing in the hearts of men, helplessly superior to their origins. Law, nothing but cold, impassive, material law, is the root of things—lifeless and happily so, not knowing itself; otherwise, it would be a demon instead of a creative void. His ambition is paralyzed. “Work for posterity,” says he of the skyless philosophy; the man replies, “How can I work without hope? I have little heart to labor when work offers so little help. What can I do for my children to make their lives less hopeless than mine? Give me all you would secure for them, and my life would be even more of a mockery. The true purpose of labor would be to reduce the number of those doomed to breathe this air of despair.”
Straightway he developes another and a deeper mood. He turns and regards himself. Suspicion or sudden insight has directed the look. And there, in himself, he discovers such imperfection, such wrong, such shame, such weakness, as cause him to cry out, “It were well I should cease! Why should I mourn after life? Where were the good of prolonging it in a being like me? ‘What should such fellows as I do crawling between heaven and earth!’” Such insights, when they come, the seers do their best, in general, to obscure; suspicion of themselves they regard as a monster, and would stifle. They resent the waking of such doubt. Any attempt at the raising in them of their buried best they regard as an offence against intercourse. A man takes his social life in his hand who dares it. Few therefore understand the judgment of Hamlet upon himself; the common reader is so incapable of imagining he could mean it of his own general character as a man, that he attributes the utterance to shame for the postponement of a vengeance, which indeed he must have been such as his critic to be capable of performing upon no better proof than he had yet had. When the man whose unfolding I would now represent, regards even his dearest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, low-lived thing, that in his heart he shames himself before his children and his friends. How little labour, how little watching, how little pain has he endured for their sakes! He reads of great things in this kind, but in himself he does not find them. How often has he not been wrongfully displeased—wrathful with the innocent! How often has he not hurt a heart more tender than his own! Has he ever once been faithful to the height of his ideal? Is his life on the whole a thing to regard with complacency, or to be troubled exceedingly concerning? Beyond him rise and spread infinite seeming possibilities—height beyond height, glory beyond glory, each rooted in and rising from his conscious being, but alas! where is any hope of ascending them? These hills of peace, “in a season of calm weather,” seem to surround and infold him, as a land in which he could dwell at ease and at home: surely among them lies the place of his birth!—while against their purity and grandeur the being of his consciousness shows miserable—dark, weak, and undefined—a shadow that would fain be substance—a dream that would gladly be born into the light of reality. But alas if the whole thing be only in himself—if the vision be a dream of nothing, a revelation of lies, the outcome of that which, helplessly existent, is yet not created, therefore cannot create—if not the whole thing only be a dream of the impotent, but the impotent be himself but a dream—a dream of his own—a self-dreamed dream—with no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then the cherished hope of one day atoning for his wrongs to those who loved him!—they are nowhere—vanished for ever, upmingled and dissolved in the primeval darkness! If truth be but the hollow of a sphere, ah, never shall he cast himself before them, to tell them that now at last, after long years of revealing separation, he knows himself and them, and that now the love of them is a part of his very being—to implore their forgiveness on the ground that he hates, despises, contemns, and scorns the self that showed them less than absolute love and devotion! Never thus shall he lay his being bare to their eyes of love! They do not even rest, for they do not and will not know it. There is no voice nor hearing in them, and how can there be in him any heart to live! The one comfort left him is, that, unable to follow them, he shall yet die and cease, and fare as they—go also nowhither!
Immediately, he falls into another, deeper mood. He turns and looks at himself. Whether it’s suspicion or sudden insight that directs his gaze, he discovers within himself such imperfection, wrong, shame, and weakness that he cries out, “It’d be better if I just stopped! Why should I mourn for life? What’s the point of prolonging it for someone like me? ‘What should people like me do crawling between heaven and earth!’” When such insights occur, seers usually try their best to hide them; they see self-doubt as a monster and want to stifle it. They resent awakening such doubts. Any attempt to bring their buried best to the surface is seen as an offense against connection. A man risks his social life if he dares to do this. Few truly understand Hamlet’s judgment of himself; the typical reader can’t imagine he means it about his own character, so they interpret it as shame for delaying his revenge, which, indeed, he would have to be like his critic to act upon with no better proof than he has. When the man whose unfolding I am now depicting looks even at his deepest love, he finds it such a poor, selfish, lowly thing that he feels ashamed before his children and friends. How little labor, how little awareness, how little pain has he truly endured for their sake! He reads about great things like this, but he finds none in himself. How often has he been unjustly angry—furious with the innocent! How often has he hurt someone with a more tender heart than his own! Has he ever truly lived up to his ideal? Is his life something to look at with satisfaction, or should it be a cause for deep concern? Before him spread endless seeming possibilities—greatness upon greatness, all rooted in and rising from his conscious existence, but alas! where is the hope of achieving any of them? These hills of peace, “in a season of calm weather,” seem to surround and envelope him, like a land where he could live comfortably and feel at home: surely among them is where he was born!—while against their purity and grandeur, his consciousness appears miserable—dark, weak, and unclear—a shadow that wants to be real—a dream longing to be born into reality. But alas, if it all exists only within him—if the vision is just a dream of nothing, an illusion, the result of something that exists helplessly but hasn’t been created, and therefore cannot create—if the whole thing isn’t just a dream of the powerless, but the powerless himself is just a dream—a self-dreamed dream—with no master of dreams to whom to cry! Where then is the cherished hope of one day making amends to those who loved him!—they are nowhere—vanished forever, dissolved into the primal darkness! If truth is just the hollow of a sphere, ah, he’ll never be able to lay himself before them, to tell them that now at last, after many years of revealing separation, he knows himself and them, and that now their love is part of his very being—to plead for their forgiveness on the grounds that he hates, despises, scorns, and looks down on the self that failed to show them complete love and devotion! He will never expose his true self to their loving eyes! They do not even rest because they don’t and won’t recognize it. There is no voice or hearing within them, and how can he have a heart to live? The one comfort left to him is that, unable to follow them, he will eventually die and disappear, just like them—going nowhere!
To a man under the dismay of existence dissociated from power, unrooted in, unshadowed by a creating Will, who is Love, the Father of Man—to him who knows not being and God together, the idea of death—a death that knows no reviving, must be, and ought to be the blessedest thought left him. “O land of shadows!” well may such a one cry! “land where the shadows love to ecstatic self-loss, yet forget, and love no more! land of sorrows and despairs, that sink the soul into a deeper Tophet than death has ever sounded! broken kaleidoscope! shaken camera! promiser, speaking truth to the ear, but lying to the sense! land where the heart of my friend is sorrowful as my heart—the more sorrowful that I have been but a poor and far-off friend! land where sin is strong and righteousness faint! where love dreams mightily and walks abroad so feeble! land where the face of my father is dust, and the hand of my mother will never more caress! where my children will spend a few years of like trouble to mine, and then drop from the dream into the no-dream! gladly, O land of sickliest shadows—gladly, that is, with what power of gladness is in me, I take my leave of thee! Welcome the cold, pain-soothing embrace of immortal Death! Hideous are his looks, but I love him better than Life: he is true, and will not deceive us. Nay, he only is our saviour, setting us free from the tyranny of the false that ought to be true, and sets us longing in vain.”
To someone overwhelmed by life and disconnected from power, untethered by a creative force, who is Love, the Father of Humanity— to someone who does not understand existence and God together, the idea of death—a death that knows no return—must be, and should be, the most comforting thought left to them. “Oh, land of shadows!” such a person may cry! “A place where shadows love to lose themselves in ecstatic abandon, yet forget, and no longer love! A land of sorrows and despair that sinks the soul into a deeper hell than death has ever reached! A broken kaleidoscope! A shaken camera! A promise that speaks truth to the ear but deceives the senses! A land where my friend’s heart is as heavy as mine—the more so because I have been a distant and poor friend! A land where sin is strong, and righteousness is weak! Where love dreams boldly yet walks so feebly! A land where my father's face has turned to dust, and my mother’s hand will never caress me again! Where my children will endure a few years of troubles like mine, and then fade from the dream into nothingness! Gladly, oh land of the saddest shadows—gladly, at least with the little gladness I possess, I bid you farewell! Welcome the cold, comforting embrace of eternal Death! His appearance is frightful, but I prefer him over Life: he is honest and will not deceive us. He is our only savior, freeing us from the tyranny of what should be true, leaving us to yearn in vain.”
But through all the man’s doubts, fears, and perplexities, a certain whisper, say rather, an uncertain rumour, a vague legendary murmur, has been at the same time about, rather than in, his ears—never ceasing to haunt his air, although hitherto he has hardly heeded it. He knows it has come down the ages, and that some in every age have been more or less influenced by a varied acceptance of it. Upon those, however, with whom he has chiefly associated, it has made no impression beyond that of a remarkable legend. It is the story of a man, represented as at least greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this tale he has had a constantly recurring, though altogether undefined suspicion that he has something to do. It is strongest, though not even then strong, at such times when he is most aware of evil and imperfection in himself. Betwixt the two, the idea of this man and his knowledge of himself, seems to lie, dim-shadowy, some imperative duty. He knows that the whole matter concerning the man is commemorated in many of the oldest institutions of his country, but up to this time he has shrunk from the demands which, by a kind of spiritual insight, he foresaw would follow, were he once to admit certain things to be true. He has, however, known some and read of more who by their faith in the man conquered all anxiety, doubt, and fear, lived pure, and died in gladsome hope. On the other hand, it seems to him that the faith which was once easy has now become almost an impossibility. And what is it he is called upon to believe? One says one thing, another another. Much that is asserted is simply unworthy of belief, and the foundation of the whole has in his eyes something of the look of a cunningly devised fable. Even should it be true, it cannot help him, he thinks, for it does not even touch the things that make his woe: the God the tale presents is not the being whose very existence can alone be his cure.
But through all the man’s doubts, fears, and confusion, there's a certain whisper, or maybe more like an uncertain rumor, a vague legendary murmur that’s been lingering around him, never leaving his mind, even though he hasn’t really paid attention to it until now. He knows it has been passed down through the ages and that some people in every generation have been influenced by it in different ways. However, among those he has mostly spent time with, it hasn’t made an impression beyond being a remarkable legend. It’s the story of a man depicted as greater, stronger, and better than any other man. With the hero of this tale, he has constantly felt, though in an undefined way, that he has something to do with it. This feeling is strongest, though still weak, especially during the times he is most aware of the evil and imperfections within himself. Between the idea of this man and his understanding of himself lies a dim, shadowy sense of some duty he must fulfill. He knows that the whole story about this man is remembered in many of the oldest traditions of his country, but until now he has avoided the demands he instinctively knows would come if he were to accept certain things as true. However, he has known some people and read about more who, through their faith in this man, overcame all anxiety, doubt, and fear, lived pure lives, and died in hopeful joy. On the other hand, it seems to him that the faith that was once easy has now become nearly impossible. And what is it he’s supposed to believe? One person says one thing, another says something else. Much of what is claimed is simply not credible, and the whole foundation feels to him like a cleverly crafted story. Even if it were true, he thinks it wouldn’t help him, as it doesn't address the things causing his distress: the God presented in the tale isn’t the being whose very existence could be his salvation.
But he meets one who says to him, “Have you then come to your time of life, and not yet ceased to accept hearsay as ground of action—for there is action in abstaining as well as in doing? Suppose the man in question to have taken all possible pains to be understood, does it follow of necessity that he is now or ever was fairly represented by the bulk of his followers? With such a moral distance between him and them, is it possible?”
But he meets someone who says to him, “So, have you reached a point in your life where you still rely on hearsay to guide your actions—because there’s as much action in not doing something as there is in doing it? Let’s say the person in question has done everything he could to be understood, does that mean he’s really been represented fairly by most of his followers? With such a moral gap between him and them, is that even possible?”
“But the whole thing has from first to last a strange aspect!” our thinker replies.
“But the whole thing has a strange vibe from start to finish!” our thinker replies.
“As to the last that is not yet come. And as to its aspect, its reality must be such as human eye could never convey to reading heart. Every human idea of it must be more or less wrong. And yet perhaps the truer the aspect the stranger it would be. But is it not just with ordinary things you are dissatisfied? And should not therefore the very strangeness of these to you little better than rumours incline you to examine the object of them? Will you assert that nothing strange can have to do with human affairs? Much that was once scarce credible is now so ordinary that men have grown stupid to the wonder inherent in it. Nothing around you serves your need: try what is at least of another class of phenomena. What if the things rumoured belong to a more natural order than these, lie nearer the roots of your dissatisfied existence, and look strange only because you have hitherto been living in the outer court, not in the penetralia of life? The rumour has been vital enough to float down the ages, emerging from every storm: why not see for yourself what may be in it? So powerful an influence on human history, surely there will be found in it signs by which to determine whether the man understood himself and his message, or owed his apparent greatness to the deluded worship of his followers! That he has always had foolish followers none will deny, and none but a fool would judge any leader from such a fact. Wisdom as well as folly will serve a fool’s purpose; he turns all into folly. I say nothing now of my own conclusions, because what you imagine my opinions are as hateful to me as to you disagreeable and foolish.”
"As for the last that hasn't arrived yet, and about its aspect, its reality must be something that the human eye can never truly express to a receptive heart. Every human idea of it must be somewhat inaccurate. Yet maybe the more accurate the aspect is, the stranger it would seem. But isn’t it the ordinary things that you’re really unhappy with? Shouldn’t the very strangeness of these things, which seem like mere rumors, make you want to explore their actual source? Do you really believe that nothing strange can relate to human affairs? Much that was once hard to believe has now become so common that people have become numb to the wonder of it all. Nothing around you meets your needs: why not try something from a different category of phenomena? What if the rumored things belong to a more natural order than what you know, lie closer to the roots of your discontented existence, and seem strange only because you have been living in the outer court, not in the penetralia of life? The rumor has been significant enough to survive through the ages, emerging from every storm: why not check for yourself what truth it might hold? With such a powerful influence on human history, surely there are signs within it to help determine whether the person understood himself and his message, or if his apparent greatness was due to the misguided admiration of his followers! It's undeniable that he has always had foolish followers, and it would be foolish to judge any leader based solely on that fact. Both wisdom and folly can be used to serve a fool's agenda; he twists everything into folly. I won’t speak now of my own conclusions, because what you think my opinions are is as distasteful to me as they are to you."
So says the friend; the man hears, takes up the old story, and says to himself, “Let me see then what I can see!”
So says the friend; the man hears this, picks up the old story, and thinks to himself, “Let me see what I can discover!”
I will not follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns by which at length he arrives at this much: A man claiming to be the Son of God says he has come to be the light of men; says, “Come to me, and I will give you rest;” says, “Follow me, and you shall find my Father; to know him is the one thing you cannot do without, for it is eternal life.” He has learned from the reported words of the man, and from the man himself as in the tale presented, that the bliss of his conscious being is his Father; that his one delight is to do the will of that Father—the only thing in his eyes worthy of being done, or worth having done; that he would make men blessed with his own blessedness; that the cry of creation, the cry of humanity shall be answered into the deepest soul of desire; that less than the divine mode of existence, the godlike way of being, can satisfy no man, that is, make him content with his consciousness; that not this world only, but the whole universe is the inheritance of those who consent to be the children of their Father in heaven, who put forth the power of their will to be of the same sort as he; that to as many as receive him he gives power to become the sons of God; that they shall be partakers of the divine nature, of the divine joy, of the divine power—shall have whatever they desire, shall know no fear, shall love perfectly, and shall never die; that these things are beyond the grasp of the knowing ones of the world, and to them the message will be a scorn; but that the time will come when its truth shall be apparent, to some in confusion of face, to others in joy unspeakable; only that we must beware of judging, for many that are first shall be last, and there are last that shall be first.
I won't follow him through the many shadows and slow dawns until he finally arrives at this: A man who claims to be the Son of God says he has come to be the light for humanity; he says, “Come to me, and I will give you rest;” he says, “Follow me, and you will find my Father; knowing him is the one thing you can't do without because it leads to eternal life.” He has learned from what the man has reportedly said and from the man himself, as presented in the story, that the happiness of his conscious self is his Father; that his true joy is doing the will of that Father—the only thing he believes is truly worth doing. He wants to make people blessed with his own blessings; that the cry of creation, the cry of humanity will be answered in the deepest soul of desire; that nothing less than a divine way of living can satisfy anyone, that is, make them content with their awareness; that not just this world, but the entire universe is the inheritance of those who agree to be the children of their Father in heaven, who exert the power of their will to be like him; that to everyone who accepts him, he gives the power to become sons of God; that they will share in the divine nature, divine joy, and divine power—they will have whatever they desire, will know no fear, will love perfectly, and will never die; that these things are beyond the reach of the knowledgeable ones of the world, and they will scorn the message; but the time will come when its truth shall be clear, to some with a look of confusion, to others with unspeakable joy; we just have to be careful not to judge, because many who are first will be last, and some who are last will be first.
To find himself in such conscious as well as vital relation with the source of his being, with a Will by which his own will exists, with a Consciousness by and through which he is conscious, would indeed be the end of all the man’s ills! nor can he imagine any other, not to say better way, in which his sorrows could be met, understood and annihilated. For the ills that oppress him are both within him and without, and over each kind he is powerless. If the message were but a true one! If indeed this man knew what he talked of! But if there should be help for man from anywhere beyond him, some one might know it first, and may not this be the one? And if the message be so great, so perfect as this man asserts, then only a perfect, an eternal man, at home in the bosom of the Father, could know, or bring, or tell it. According to the tale, it had been from the first the intent of the Father to reveal himself to man as man, for without the knowledge of the Father after man’s own modes of being, he could not grow to real manhood. The grander the whole idea, the more likely is it to be what it claims to be! and if not high as the heavens above the earth, beyond us yet within our reach, it is not for us, it cannot be true. Fact or not, the existence of a God such as Christ, a God who is a good man infinitely, is the only idea containing hope enough for man! If such a God has come to be known, marvel must surround the first news at least of the revelation of him. Because of its marvel, shall men find it in reason to turn from the gracious rumour of what, if it be true, must be the event of all events? And could marvel be lovelier than the marvel reported? But the humble men of heart alone can believe in the high—they alone can perceive, they alone can embrace grandeur. Humility is essential greatness, the inside of grandeur.
To connect with the source of his existence, with a Will that makes his own will possible, with a Consciousness that allows him to be aware, would truly be the solution to all his problems! He can't envision any other, let alone a better, way for his sorrows to be addressed, understood, and eliminated. The troubles that weigh him down come from both within and outside him, and he feels powerless against both. If only the message were genuine! If this man really knew what he was talking about! But if there is help for humanity from somewhere outside of ourselves, surely someone must know about it first, and could this man be that someone? If the message is as profound and perfect as he claims, then only a perfect, eternal person, intimately connected with the Father, could know it, share it, or communicate it. According to the story, the Father intended from the beginning to reveal Himself to humanity as a human, because without understanding the Father in ways that make sense to humans, one cannot achieve true adulthood. The more grand the idea, the more likely it is to be what it says it is! And if it's not as high as the heavens above the earth, distant yet within reach, then it's not for us, and it can't be true. Whether it's real or not, the concept of a God like Christ, a God who is an infinitely good person, is the only idea that offers enough hope for humanity! If such a God has been revealed, there must be some awe surrounding the very first news of that revelation. Because of its wonder, would people find it reasonable to turn away from the beautiful rumor of what, if true, must be the most significant event ever? And could anything be more marvelous than the marvel that’s been shared? Yet, only humble-hearted people can truly believe in the extraordinary—they are the only ones who can recognize and embrace greatness. Humility is the essence of true greatness, the heart of magnificence.
Something of such truths the man glimmeringly sees. But in his mind awake, thereupon, endless doubts and questions. What if the whole idea of his mission was a deception born of the very goodness of the man? What if the whole matter was the invention of men pretending themselves the followers of such a man? What if it was a little truth greatly exaggerated? Only, be it what it may, less than its full idea would not be enough for the wants and sorrows that weaken and weigh him down!
The man has a vague sense of certain truths. But in his awake mind, endless doubts and questions emerge. What if his whole mission is just a deception created by his own goodness? What if everything is just made up by people pretending to follow such a man? What if it's a small truth that's been blown out of proportion? Still, whatever it is, anything less than the complete idea wouldn’t be enough to meet the needs and sorrows that burden him!
He passes through many a thorny thicket of inquiry; gathers evidence upon evidence; reasons upon the goodness of the men who wrote: they might be deceived, but they dared not invent; holds with himself a thousand arguments, historical, psychical, metaphysical—which for their setting-forth would require volumes; hears many an opposing, many a scoffing word from men “who surely know, else would they speak?” and finds himself much where he was before. But at least he is haunting the possible borders of discovery, while those who turn their backs upon the idea are divided from him by a great gulf—it may be of moral difference. To him there is still a grand auroral hope about the idea, and it still draws him; the others, taking the thing from merest report of opinion, look anywhere but thitherward. He who would not trust his best friend to set forth his views of life, accepts the random judgements of unknown others for a sufficing disposal of what the highest of the race have regarded as a veritable revelation from the Father of men. He sees in it therefore nothing but folly; for what he takes for the thing nowhere meets his nature. Our searcher at least holds open the door for the hearing of what voice may come to him from the region invisible: if there be truth there, he is where it will find him.
He goes through a lot of difficult questions; collects evidence after evidence; thinks about the integrity of the people who wrote it: they might have been misled, but they wouldn’t fabricate it; he argues with himself using thousands of historical, psychological, and metaphysical points that would need volumes to explain; listens to many opposing and mocking views from those who "must know, or they wouldn't speak?" and realizes he’s pretty much where he started. But at least he’s exploring the potential for discovery, while those who turn away from the idea are separated from him by a significant divide—it might even be a moral one. For him, there’s still a bright hope surrounding the idea, and it continues to attract him; the others, basing their beliefs solely on hearsay, look anywhere but towards that. Someone who wouldn’t trust their best friend to express their views on life accepts random opinions from strangers as a sufficient explanation of what the best of humanity has seen as a true revelation from the Creator. He sees nothing but foolishness in it; what he perceives doesn’t resonate with his nature. Our seeker, however, keeps the door open for any voice that might reach him from the unseen realm: if there’s truth there, he’ll be in the right place to find it.
As he continues to read and reflect, the perception gradually grows clear in him, that, if there be truth in the matter, he must, first of all, and beyond all things else, give his best heed to the reported words of the man himself—to what he says, not what is said about him, valuable as that may afterwards prove to be. And he finds that concerning these words of his, the man says, or at least plainly implies, that only the obedient, childlike soul can understand them. It follows that the judgement of no man who does not obey can be received concerning them or the speaker of them—that, for instance, a man who hates his enemy, who tells lies, who thinks to serve God and Mammon, whether he call himself a Christian or no, has not the right of an opinion concerning the Master or his words—at least in the eyes of the Master, however it may be in his own. This is in the very nature of things: obedience alone places a man in the position in which he can see so as to judge that which is above him. In respect of great truths investigation goes for little, speculation for nothing; if a man would know them, he must obey them. Their nature is such that the only door into them is obedience. And the truth-seeker perceives—which allows him no loophole of escape from life—that what things the Son of Man requires of him, are either such as his conscience backs for just, or such as seem too great, too high for any man. But if there be help for him, it must be a help that recognizes the highest in him, and urges him to its use. Help cannot come to one made in the image of God, save in the obedient effort of what life and power are in him, for God is action. In such effort alone is it possible for need to encounter help. It is the upstretched that meets the downstretched hand. He alone who obeys can with confidence pray—to him alone does an answer seem a thing that may come. And should anything spoken by the Son of Man seem to the seeker unreasonable, he feels in the rest such a majesty of duty as compels him to judge with regard to the other, that he has not yet perceived its true nature, or its true relation to life.
As he keeps reading and reflecting, he gradually realizes that, if there’s any truth to be found, he must prioritize the actual words of the man himself—what he says, not just what others say about him, no matter how valuable that information might turn out to be. He learns that the man suggests, or at least strongly hints, that only those who are obedient and childlike can truly understand his words. This means that the opinion of anyone who doesn’t obey can’t be trusted regarding those words or the speaker himself—that, for example, someone who hates their enemy, lies, or tries to serve both God and money, regardless of whether they call themselves a Christian, has no right to an opinion about the Master or his teachings—at least from the Master’s perspective, regardless of what they think. This is simply how things are: only obedience allows someone to see clearly enough to judge what is above them. When it comes to profound truths, investigation matters little, and speculation is pointless; if someone wants to truly know them, they must obey. The nature of these truths is such that the only entry point is obedience. The truth-seeker realizes—leaving him no escape from reality—that what the Son of Man asks of him is either what his conscience agrees is just or what seems far too great and high for any individual. But if help is available, it must recognize the best within him and encourage him to use it. Help can't reach someone made in God's image except through the obedient effort of what life and power he possesses, because God is action. Only through that effort can need meet help. It is the outstretched hand that meets the extended one. Only those who obey can pray with confidence—only to them does an answer seem like a possibility. And if anything spoken by the Son of Man seems unreasonable to the seeker, he feels such a sense of duty that it compels him to realize that he has yet to grasp its true nature or its genuine relationship to life.
And now comes the crisis: if here the man sets himself honestly to do the thing the Son of Man tells him, he so, and so first, sets out positively upon the path which, if there be truth in these things, will conduct him to a knowledge of the whole matter; not until then is he a disciple. If the message be a true one, the condition of the knowledge of its truth is not only reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If there be help for him, how otherways should it draw nigh? He has to be assured of the highest truth of his being: there can be no other assurance than that to be gained thus, and thus alone; for not only by obedience does a man come into such contact with truth as to know what it is, and in regard to truth knowledge and belief are one. That things which cannot appear save to the eye capable of seeing them, that things which cannot be recognized save by the mind of a certain development, should be examined by eye incapable, and pronounced upon by mind undeveloped, is absurd. The deliverance the message offers is a change such that the man shall be the rightness of which he talked: while his soul is not a hungered, athirst, aglow, a groaning after righteousness—that is, longing to be himself honest and upright, it is an absurdity that he should judge concerning the way to this rightness, seeing that, while he walks not in it, he is and shall be a dishonest man: he knows not whither it leads and how can he know the way! What he can judge of is, his duty at a given moment—and that not in the abstract, but as something to be by him done, neither more, nor less, nor other than done. Thus judging and doing, he makes the only possible step nearer to righteousness and righteous judgement; doing otherwise, he becomes the more unrighteous, the more blind. For the man who knows not God, whether he believes there is a God or not, there can be, I repeat, no judgement of things pertaining to God. To our supposed searcher, then, the crowning word of the Son of Man is this, “If any man is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall know of the doctrine, whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself.”
And now comes the crisis: if a person honestly sets out to do what the Son of Man tells him, he truly embarks on the journey that, if there is any truth to these matters, will lead him to a complete understanding of everything; only then is he a disciple. If the message is genuine, the requirement to recognize its truth is not just reasonable but an unavoidable necessity. If there’s help available for him, how else would it come to him? He needs to be assured of the highest truth of his existence: there’s no other way to gain that assurance except through this process; only through obedience can a person connect with the truth enough to understand what it is, and when it comes to truth, knowledge and belief are inseparable. It’s absurd for those who cannot perceive things except with a capable eye, and who cannot comprehend things except with a developed mind, to attempt to assess them with an incapable eye and an undeveloped mind. The liberation the message offers is a transformation where the person truly embodies the righteousness he speaks of: while his soul is not hungry, thirsty, burning, or yearning for righteousness — which means longing to be genuinely honest and upright — it’s ridiculous for him to judge the path to that righteousness, since as long as he doesn’t walk in it, he remains and will remain dishonest: he doesn’t know where it leads, so how could he possibly know the way? What he can judge is his duty at a given moment — and not in the abstract, but as something he needs to actually do, no more, no less, and nothing else but done. By judging and acting in this way, he takes the only possible step closer to righteousness and proper judgment; otherwise, he becomes even more unrighteous and even more blind. For a person who does not know God, whether they believe there is a God or not, I repeat, there can be no judgment about things concerning God. Therefore, to our presumed seeker, the final words of the Son of Man are this: “If anyone is willing to do the will of the Father, he shall know whether the doctrine is from God or if I am speaking on my own.”
Having thus accompanied my type to the borders of liberty, my task for the present is over. The rest let him who reads prove for himself. Obedience alone can convince. To convince without obedience I would take no bootless labour; it would be but a gain for hell. If any man call these things foolishness, his judgement is to me insignificant. If any man say he is open to conviction, I answer him he can have none but on the condition, by the means of obedience. If a man say, “The thing is not interesting to me,” I ask him, “Are you following your conscience? By that, and not by the interest you take or do not take in a thing, shall you be judged. Nor will anything be said to you, or of you, in that day, whatever that day mean, of which your conscience will not echo every syllable.”
Having accompanied my type to the edge of freedom, my job for now is done. The rest is up to the reader to discover. Only obedience can truly convince. I wouldn't waste time trying to convince without it; that would only benefit hell. If someone calls these ideas foolish, their opinion means nothing to me. If a person claims they are open to being convinced, I tell them they can only be convinced through obedience. If someone says, “I'm not interested,” I ask them, “Are you following your conscience? Your judgment will be based on that, not on your interest in the matter, whether you find it engaging or not. And on that day, whatever that day means, your conscience will resonate with every word said about you.”
Oneness with God is the sole truth of humanity. Life parted from its causative life would be no life; it would at best be but a barrack of corruption, an outpost of annihilation. In proportion as the union is incomplete, the derived life is imperfect. And no man can be one with neighbour, child, dearest, except as he is one with his origin; and he fails of his perfection so long as there is one being in the universe he could not love.
Oneness with God is the only truth about humanity. A life separated from its source of life would not truly be living; it would at best be a place of decay, a station of destruction. The more incomplete the union, the more imperfect the resulting life. No one can truly be one with their neighbor, child, or loved ones unless they are one with their origin; they fall short of their potential as long as there is even one being in the universe they cannot love.
Of all men he is bound to hold his face like a flint in witness of this truth who owes everything that makes for eternal good, to the belief that at the heart of things and causing them to be, at the centre of monad, of world, of protoplastic mass, of loving dog, and of man most cruel, is an absolute, perfect love; and that in the man Christ Jesus this love is with us men to take us home. To nothing else do I for one owe any grasp upon life. In this I see the setting right of all things. To the man who believes in the Son of God, poetry returns in a mighty wave; history unrolls itself in harmony; science shows crowned with its own aureole of holiness. There is no enlivener of the imagination, no enabler of the judgment, no strengthener of the intellect, to compare with the belief in a live Ideal, at the heart of all personality, as of every law. If there be no such live Ideal, then a falsehood can do more for the race than the facts of its being; then an unreality is needful for the development of the man in all that is real, in all that is in the highest sense true; then falsehood is greater than fact, and an idol necessary for lack of a God. They who deny cannot, in the nature of things, know what they deny. When one sees a chaos begin to put on the shape of an ordered world, he will hardly be persuaded it is by the power of a foolish notion bred in a diseased fancy.
Of all people, he must keep his expression as tough as flint in recognition of this truth: anyone who owes everything good and lasting to the belief that at the core of everything—whether it's the essence of life, the cosmos, the fundamental elements, a loving dog, or the most ruthless human—is an absolute, perfect love; and that in Christ Jesus, this love is with us to guide us home. I personally owe my understanding of life to nothing else. In this, I see the restoration of all things. For the person who believes in the Son of God, poetry comes flooding back; history unfolds in harmony; science shines with its own halo of holiness. There’s no stimulant for the imagination, no enhancer for judgment, no strengthener of intellect that compares to the belief in a living Ideal at the heart of every person, just as it is at the center of every law. If such a living Ideal doesn’t exist, then falsehood can do more for humanity than the actual truths of its existence; then, an illusion becomes necessary for the growth of a person in everything that is real and genuinely true; then, falsehood outweighs fact, and an idol becomes essential in the absence of God. Those who deny cannot truly understand what they are denying. When someone observes chaos beginning to take the form of an orderly world, they will hardly be convinced that it’s due to a foolish idea born from a sick imagination.
Let the man then who would rise to the height of his being, be persuaded to test the Truth by the deed—the highest and only test that can be applied to the loftiest of all assertions. To every man I say, “Do the truth you know, and you shall learn the truth you need to know.”
Let the person who wants to reach their highest potential be encouraged to prove the truth through action—the ultimate and only way to validate the greatest of all claims. I say to everyone, “Live the truth you know, and you will discover the truth you need to learn.”
ST. GEORGE’S DAY, 1564.
[Footnote: 1864.]
[Footnote: 1864.]
All England knows that this year (1864) is the three hundredth since Shakspere was born. The strong probability is likewise that this month of April is that in which he first saw the earthly light. On the twenty-sixth of April he was baptized. Whether he was born on the twenty-third, to which effect there may once have been a tradition, we do not know; but though there is nothing to corroborate that statement, there are two facts which would incline us to believe it if we could: the one that he died on the twenty-third of April, thus, as it were, completing a cycle; and the other that the twenty-third of April is St. George’s Day. If there is no harm in indulging in a little fanciful sentiment about such a grand fact, we should say that certainly it was St. George for merry England when Shakspere was born. But had St. George been the best saint in the calendar—which we have little enough ground for supposing he was—it would better suit our subject to say that the Highest was thinking of his England when he sent Shakspere into it, to be a strength, a wonder, and a gladness to the nations of his earth.
All of England knows that this year (1864) marks three hundred years since Shakespeare was born. It’s quite likely that this month of April is when he first entered the world. He was baptized on April 26th. Whether he was actually born on the 23rd, which there might have once been a tradition about, we can't say for sure; but although there's no solid evidence to support that claim, there are two facts that might make us believe it if we could: one is that he died on April 23rd, thus completing a cycle, and the other is that April 23rd is St. George’s Day. If there's no harm in indulging in a little imaginative sentiment about such a grand fact, we can say that it was certainly St. George for merry England when Shakespeare was born. But even if St. George were the best saint in the calendar—which we have little reason to think he was—it would be more fitting to say that the Highest was thinking of his England when he sent Shakespeare into it, to be a source of strength, wonder, and joy to the nations of the earth.
But if we write thus about Shakspere, influenced only by the fashion of the day, we shall be much in the condition of those fashionable architects who with their vain praises built the tombs of the prophets, while they had no regard to the lessons they taught. We hope to be able to show that we have good grounds for our rejoicing in the birth of that child whom after-years placed highest on the rocky steep of Art, up which so many of those who combine feeling and thought are always striving.
But if we write about Shakespeare this way, influenced only by current trends, we’ll be like those fashionable architects who built the prophets' tombs with empty praise while ignoring the lessons they imparted. We hope to demonstrate that we have solid reasons to celebrate the birth of that child whom later generations placed at the pinnacle of Art, a peak that so many who blend emotion and intellect are constantly striving to reach.
First, however, let us look at some of the more powerful of the influences into the midst of which he was born. For a child is born into the womb of the time, which indeed enclosed and fed him before he was born. Not the least subtle and potent of those influences which tend to the education of the child (in the true sense of the word education) are those which are brought to bear upon him through the mind, heart, judgement of his parents. We mean that those powers which have operated strongly upon them, have a certain concentrated operation, both antenatal and psychological, as well as educational and spiritual, upon the child. Now Shakspere was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth. He was the eldest son, but the third child. His father and mother must have been married not later than the year 1557, two years after Cranmer was burned at the stake, one of the two hundred who thus perished in that time of pain, resulting in the firm establishment of a reformation which, like all other changes for the better, could not be verified and secured without some form or other of the trial by fire. Events such as then took place in every part of the country could not fail to make a strong impression upon all thinking people, especially as it was not those of high position only who were thus called upon to bear witness to their beliefs. John Shakspere and Mary Arden were in all likelihood themselves of the Protestant party; and although, as far as we know, they were never in any especial danger of being denounced, the whole of the circumstances must have tended to produce in them individually, what seems to have been characteristic of the age in which they lived, earnestness. In times such as those, people are compelled to think.
First, however, let’s examine some of the significant influences surrounding his birth. A child arrives into the environment of their time, which has already shaped and nurtured them even before their arrival. One of the most subtle yet powerful influences on a child's true education comes from their parents' minds, hearts, and judgments. The powerful forces that have impacted the parents have a concentrated effect, both before birth and psychologically, as well as in terms of education and spirituality, on the child. Shakespeare was born in the sixth year of Queen Elizabeth's reign. He was the eldest son but the third child. His parents must have married no later than 1557, two years after Cranmer was executed, one of the two hundred who died during that painful period, which ultimately led to the solid establishment of a reformation that, like all improvements, was validated and secured through some form of trial by fire. The events occurring throughout the country at that time undoubtedly left a strong mark on all thoughtful individuals, especially since it wasn't just the upper classes who were called to testify to their beliefs. John Shakespeare and Mary Arden were likely part of the Protestant movement themselves; and although, as far as we know, they were never particularly at risk of being denounced, the overall circumstances must have contributed to instill in them what seems to have been typical of their era: earnestness. In such times, people are forced to think deeply.
And here an interesting question occurs: Was it in part to his mother that Shakspere was indebted for that profound knowledge of the Bible which is so evident in his writings? A good many copies of the Scriptures must have been by this time, in one translation or another, scattered over the country. [Footnote: And it seems to us probable that this diffusion of the Bible, did more to rouse the slumbering literary power of England, than any influences of foreign literature whatever.] No doubt the word was precious in those days, and hard to buy; but there might have been a copy, notwithstanding, in the house of John Shakspere, and it is possible that it was from his mother’s lips that the boy first heard the Scripture tales. We have called his acquaintance with Scripture profound, and one peculiar way in which it manifests itself will bear out the assertion; for frequently it is the very spirit and essential aroma of the passage that he reproduces, without making any use of the words themselves. There are passages in his writings which we could not have understood but for some acquaintance with the New Testament. We will produce a few specimens of the kind we mean, confining ourselves to one play, “Macbeth.”
And here’s an interesting question: Was Shakspere partially indebted to his mother for that deep knowledge of the Bible that is so clear in his writings? By this time, many copies of the Scriptures, in various translations, must have been spread across the country. [Footnote: It seems likely that this distribution of the Bible did more to awaken England's dormant literary power than any influence from foreign literature.] No doubt the word was precious back then and hard to come by; however, there might have been a copy in John Shakspere’s house, and it's possible that it was from his mother that the boy first heard the Scripture stories. We’ve referred to his familiarity with Scripture as profound, and one distinctive way it shows is that he often captures the very spirit and essential essence of a passage, without using the actual words themselves. There are lines in his works that we wouldn't have understood without some knowledge of the New Testament. We will provide a few examples of what we mean, focusing on just one play, “Macbeth.”
Just mentioning the phrase, “temple-haunting martlet” (act i. scene 6), as including in it a reference to the verse, “Yea, the sparrow hath found an house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay her young, even thine altars, O Lord of hosts,” we pass to the following passage, for which we do not believe there is any explanation but that suggested to us by the passage of Scripture to be cited.
Just mentioning the phrase, “temple-haunting martlet” (act i. scene 6), which references the verse, “Yes, the sparrow has found a home, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she can lay her young, even at your altars, O Lord of hosts,” we move to the next passage, for which we believe there is no explanation other than the one suggested by the Scripture we will cite.
Macbeth, on his way to murder Duncan, says,—
Macbeth, on his way to kill Duncan, says,—
“Thou sure and firm-set earth, Hear not my steps, which way they walk, for fear Thy very stones prate of my whereabout, And take the present horror from the time Which now suits with it.”
“You solid and steady earth, Don’t let my footsteps be heard, no matter which way I go, out of fear That your very stones will gossip about my presence, And take away the current horror of this moment That fits perfectly with it.”
What is meant by the last two lines? It seems to us to be just another form of the words, “For there is nothing covered, that shall not be revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. Therefore whatsoever ye have spoken in darkness shall be heard in the light; and that which ye have spoken in the ear in closets shall be proclaimed upon the house-tops.” Of course we do not mean that Macbeth is represented as having this passage in his mind, but that Shakspere had the feeling of it when he wrote thus. What Macbeth means is, “Earth, do not hear me in the dark, which is suitable to the present horror, lest the very stones prate about it in the daylight, which is not suitable to such things; thus taking ‘the present horror from the time which now suits with it.’”
What do the last two lines mean? To us, they seem to convey the message, “Nothing that is hidden will remain concealed, and nothing that is covered will not be revealed. Everything you've said in the dark will be heard in the light, and what you've whispered in private will be shouted from the rooftops.” Of course, we’re not saying that Macbeth is actually thinking of this passage, but rather that Shakespeare felt this way when he wrote it. What Macbeth really means is, “Earth, don’t listen to me in the dark, which fits the current horror, or else even the stones will gossip about it in the daylight, which is inappropriate for such matters; thus ‘taking the present horror from the time that suits it.’”
Again, in the only piece of humour in the play—if that should be called humour which, taken in its relation to the consciousness of the principal characters, is as terrible as anything in the piece—the porter ends off his fantastic soliloquy, in which he personates the porter of hell-gate, with the words, “But this place is too cold for hell: I’ll devil-porter it no further. I had thought to have let in some of all professions, that go the primrose way to the everlasting bonfire.” Now what else had the writer in his mind but the verse from the Sermon on the Mount, “For wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat”?
Once again, in the only humorous moment in the play—if that can even be called humor, given how it relates to the awareness of the main characters, which is as horrifying as anything else in the piece—the porter concludes his wild soliloquy, in which he takes on the role of the gatekeeper of hell, with the line, “But this place is too cold for hell: I’ll devil-porter it no further. I had thought to let in some of all professions that travel the primrose path to the everlasting bonfire.” Now, what else could the writer have meant but the verse from the Sermon on the Mount, “For wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat”?
It may be objected that such passages as these, being of the most commonly quoted, imply no profound acquaintance with Scripture, such as we have said Shakspere possessed. But no amount of knowledge of the words of the Bible would be sufficient to justify the use of the word profound. What is remarkable in the employment of these passages, is not merely that they are so present to his mind that they come up for use in the most exciting moments of composition, but that he embodies the spirit of them in such a new form as reveals to minds saturated and deadened with the sound of the words, the very visual image and spiritual meaning involved in them. “The primrose way!” And to what?
It might be argued that passages like these, being some of the most frequently quoted, don’t show a deep understanding of Scripture, which we’ve said Shakespeare had. However, no amount of familiarity with the words of the Bible could justify calling it profound. What’s remarkable about using these passages is not just that they’re so readily available to him that they come up during the most intense moments of writing, but that he captures their essence in such a new way that it reveals to minds that are numb and dulled by the sound of the words the actual visual image and spiritual meaning behind them. “The primrose way!” And to what?
We will confine ourselves to one passage more:—
We will stick to one more passage:—
“Macbeth Is ripe for shaking, and the powers above Put on their instruments.”
“Macbeth Is ready to be shaken up, and the forces above Get ready to play their part.”
In the end of the 14th chapter of the Revelation we have the words, “Thrust in thy sickle, and reap: for the time is come for thee to reap; for the harvest of the earth is ripe.” We suspect that Shakspere wrote, ripe to shaking.
In the final part of the 14th chapter of Revelation, it says, “Use your sickle to reap, for the time has come for you to gather the harvest of the earth, which is ready.” We think that Shakespeare wrote, ripe to shaking.
The instances to which we have confined ourselves do not by any means belong to the most evident kind of proof that might be adduced of Shakspere’s acquaintance with Scripture. The subject, in its ordinary aspect, has been elsewhere treated with far more fulness than our design would permit us to indulge in, even if it had not been done already. Our object has been to bring forward a few passages which seem to us to breathe the very spirit of individual passages in sacred writ, without direct use of the words themselves; and, of course, in such a case we can only appeal to the (no doubt) very various degrees of conviction which they may rouse in the minds of our readers.
The examples we’ve focused on don’t necessarily represent the clearest proof of Shakespeare’s familiarity with the Bible. The topic has been explored in much greater depth elsewhere than we can allow ourselves to do here, even if it hadn't already been covered. Our goal has been to highlight a few excerpts that seem to capture the essence of specific passages from scripture, without using the exact words. Naturally, in this situation, we can only rely on the different levels of belief that these might inspire in our readers.
But there is one singular correspondence in another almost literal quotation from the Gospel, which is to us wonderfully interesting. We are told that the words “eye of a needle,” in the passage about a rich man entering the kingdom of heaven, mean the small side entrance in a city gate. Now, in “Richard II,” act v. scene 5, Richard quotes the passage thus:—
But there is one unique connection in another almost literal quote from the Gospel, which we find incredibly interesting. We are told that the phrase “eye of a needle” in the passage about a rich man entering the kingdom of heaven refers to the small side entrance in a city gate. Now, in “Richard II,” act v. scene 5, Richard quotes the passage like this:—
“It is as hard to come as for a camel To thread the postern of a needle’s eye;”
“It is as hard to come as for a camel to go through the eye of a needle;”
showing that either the imagination of Shakspere suggested the real explanation, or he had taken pains to acquaint himself with the significance of the simile. We can hardly say that the correspondence might be merely fortuitous; because, at the least, Shakspere looked for and found a suitable figure to associate with the words eye of a needle, and so fell upon the real explanation; except, indeed, he had no particular significance in using the word that meant a little gate, instead of a word meaning any kind of entrance, which, with him, seems unlikely.
showing that either Shakespeare's imagination provided the real explanation, or he took the time to understand the meaning of the simile. We can hardly say that the connection might be merely coincidental; because, at the very least, Shakespeare looked for and found an appropriate figure to connect with the words eye of a needle, and in doing so, arrived at the real explanation; unless, of course, he had no particular meaning in using the word that referred to a little gate, instead of a word that meant any kind of entrance, which seems unlikely for him.
We have not by any means proven that Shakspere’s acquaintance with the Scriptures had an early date in his history; but certainly the Bible must have had a great influence upon him who was the highest representative mind of the time, its influence on the general development of the nation being unquestionable. This, therefore, seeing the Bible itself was just dawning full upon the country while Shakspere was becoming capable of understanding it, seems the suitable sequence in which to take notice of that influence, and of some of those passages in his works which testify to it.
We haven't definitely shown that Shakespeare's familiarity with the Scriptures started early in his life; however, the Bible must have significantly influenced him, as he was the leading intellectual of his time, and its impact on the nation's overall development is beyond doubt. Therefore, considering that the Bible was just beginning to spread throughout the country while Shakespeare was becoming able to understand it, it makes sense to acknowledge that influence and highlight some passages in his works that reflect it.
But, besides the Bible, every nation has a Bible, or at least an Old Testament, in its own history; and that Shakspere paid especial attention to this, is no matter of conjecture. We suspect his mode of writing historical plays is more after the fashion of the Bible histories than that of most writers of history. Indeed, the development and consequences of character and conduct are clear to those that read his histories with open eyes. Now, in his childhood Shakspere may have had some special incentive to the study of history springing out of the fact that his mother’s grandfather had been “groom of the chamber to Henry VII.,” while there is sufficient testimony that a further removed ancestor of his father, as well, had stood high in the favour of the same monarch. Therefore the history of the troublous times of the preceding century, which were brought to a close by the usurpation of Henry VII., would naturally be a subject of talk in the quiet household, where books and amusements such as now occupy our boys, were scarce or wanting altogether. The proximity of such a past of strife and commotion, crowded with eventful change, must have formed a background full of the material of excitement to an age which lived in the midst of a peculiarly exciting history of its own.
But, besides the Bible, every nation has a Bible, or at least an Old Testament, in its own history; and it's clear that Shakespeare paid special attention to this. We think his way of writing historical plays is more aligned with the Bible stories than that of most historical writers. In fact, the development and consequences of characters and actions are obvious to those who read his histories with an open mind. During his childhood, Shakespeare likely had a unique motivation to study history because his mother’s grandfather was “groom of the chamber to Henry VII.,” and there’s enough evidence that a more distant ancestor of his father was also favored by that same king. So, the history of the turbulent times of the previous century, which ended with the rise of Henry VII., would naturally come up in conversation in the quiet household where books and distractions like those that occupy our boys today were scarce or completely unavailable. The closeness to such a tumultuous past, filled with significant change, must have provided a backdrop rich with exciting material for someone growing up during a particularly thrilling period of their own history.
Perhaps the chief intellectual characteristic of the age of Elizabeth was activity; this activity accounting even for much that is objectionable in its literature. Now this activity must have been growing in the people throughout the fifteenth century; the wars of the Roses, although they stifled literature, so that it had, as it were, to be born again in the beginning of the following century, being, after all, but as the “eager strife” of the shadow-leaves above the “genuine life” of the grass,—
Perhaps the main intellectual trait of Elizabeth's era was activity; this same activity even explains much of what is problematic in its literature. This activity must have been building among the people throughout the fifteenth century; the Wars of the Roses, while they suppressed literature, ultimately forced it to be reborn at the start of the next century, serving as a contrast to the “eager strife” of the shadow leaves above the “genuine life” of the grass,—
“And the mute repose Of sweetly breathing flowers.”
“And the peaceful stillness Of gently breathing flowers.”
But when peace had fallen on the land, it would seem as if the impulse to action springing from strife still operated, as the waves will go on raving upon the shore after the wind has ceased, and found one outlet, amongst others, in literature, and peculiarly in dramatic literature. Peace, rendered yet more intense by the cessation of the cries of the tormentors, and the groans of the noble army of suffering martyrs, made, as it were, a kind of vacuum; and into that vacuum burst up the torrent-springs of a thousand souls—the thoughts that were no longer repressed—in the history of the past and the Utopian speculation on the future; in noble theology, capable statesmanship, and science at once brilliant and profound; in the voyage of discovery, and the change of the swan-like merchantman into a very fire-drake of war for the defence of the threatened shores; in the first brave speech of the Puritan in Elizabeth’s Parliament, the first murmurs of the voice of liberty, soon to thunder throughout the land; in the naturalizing of foreign genius by translation, and the invention, or at least adoption, of a new and transcendent rhythm; in the song, in the epic, in the drama.
But when peace settled over the land, it seemed like the drive to act stemming from conflict still lingered, much like how waves continue to crash on the shore even after the wind has died down. This energy found various outlets in literature, especially in plays. The peace, made more intense by the absence of the cries of tormentors and the suffering of countless martyrs, created what felt like a vacuum. Into that vacuum surged the passionate thoughts of many—expressing what had long been suppressed—reflecting on the past and imagining the future; showcasing noble theology, capable leadership, and brilliant, profound science; in exploration, and the transformation of graceful merchant ships into fierce war vessels to protect our shores; in the courageous words of the Puritan in Elizabeth’s Parliament, the first stirrings of liberty’s voice, which would soon echo throughout the land; in bringing foreign brilliance to life through translation and creating, or at least adopting, a new and extraordinary rhythm; in song, in epic tales, in drama.
So much for the general. Let us now, following the course of his life, recall, in a few sentences, some of the chief events which must have impressed the all-open mind of Shakspere in the earlier portion of his history.
So much for the general overview. Now, let's briefly go over some key events that likely left a strong impression on the open mind of Shakespeare during the early part of his life.
Perhaps it would not be going back too far to begin with the Massacre of Paris, which took place when he was eight years old. It caused so much horror in England, that it is not absurd to suppose that some black rays from the deed of darkness may have fallen on the mind of such a child as Shakspere.
Perhaps it wouldn't be going back too far to start with the Massacre of Paris, which happened when he was eight years old. It caused so much shock in England that it’s not unreasonable to think that some dark shadows from that act of evil may have affected the mind of a child like Shakespeare.
In strong contrast with the foregoing is the next event to which we shall refer.
In stark contrast to what we've just discussed is the next event we will address.
When he was eleven years old, Leicester gave the Queen that magnificent reception at Kenilworth which is so well known from its memorials in our literature. It has been suggested as probable, with quite enough of likelihood to justify a conjecture, that Shakspere may have been present at the dramatic representations then so gorgeously accumulated before her Majesty. If such was the fact, it is easy to imagine what an influence the shows must have had on the mind of the young dramatic genius, at a time when, happily, the critical faculty is not by any means so fully awake as are the receptive and exultant faculties, and when what the nature chiefly needs is excitement to growth, without which all pruning, the most artistic, is useless, as having nothing to operate upon.
When he was eleven years old, Leicester hosted that amazing reception for the Queen at Kenilworth, which is well-remembered in our literature. It has been suggested, with enough likelihood to make it a reasonable guess, that Shakespeare might have been present for the spectacular performances organized for her Majesty. If that was the case, it’s easy to imagine how much those shows could have influenced the young dramatic talent at a time when, fortunately, the critical mind is not fully developed, allowing the receptive and excited parts of the brain to flourish, and when what young minds really need is stimulation for growth; without that, even the best shaping efforts are pointless, as there is nothing for them to work on.
When he was fifteen years old, Sir Thomas North’s translation of Plutarch (through the French) was first published. Any reader who has compared one of Shakspere’s Roman plays with the corresponding life in Plutarch, will not be surprised that we should mention this as one of those events which must have been of paramount influence upon Shakspere. It is not likely that he became acquainted with the large folio with its medallion portraits first placed singly, and then repeated side by side for comparison, as soon as it made its appearance, but as we cannot tell when he began to read it, it seems as well to place it in the order its publication would assign to it. Besides, it evidently took such a hold of the man, that it is most probable his acquaintance with it began at a very early period of his history. Indeed, it seems to us to have been one of the most powerful aids to the development of that perception and discrimination of character with which he was gifted to such a remarkable degree. Nor would it be any derogation from the originality of his genius to say, that in a very pregnant sense he must have been a disciple of Plutarch. In those plays founded on Plutarch’s stories he picked out every dramatic point, and occasionally employed the very phrases of North’s nervous, graphic, and characteristic English. He seems to have felt that it was an honour to his work to embody in it the words of Plutarch himself, as he knew them first. From him he seems especially to have learned how to bring out the points of a character, by putting one man over against another, and remarking wherein they resembled each other and wherein they differed; after which fashion, in other plays as well as those, he partly arranged his dramatic characters.
When he was fifteen, Sir Thomas North’s translation of Plutarch (through French) was first published. Any reader who has compared one of Shakespeare’s Roman plays with the corresponding life in Plutarch won’t be surprised that we point this out as a key event that must have greatly influenced Shakespeare. It's unlikely he got his hands on the large folio with its individual medallion portraits, initially shown one by one, then side by side for comparison, right when it came out, but since we can’t pinpoint when he started reading it, it makes sense to mention it in the order it was published. Moreover, it clearly impacted him so much that it's very likely he began engaging with it at a very early age. In fact, it seems to have been one of the most powerful influences on his exceptional ability to perceive and distinguish character. It wouldn’t diminish the originality of his genius to suggest that, in a significant way, he must have been a student of Plutarch. In those plays based on Plutarch’s stories, he highlighted every dramatic element and sometimes used phrases from North’s vivid, graphic, and distinct English. He seemed to view it as an honor for his work to include the exact words of Plutarch as he first encountered them. From him, he particularly learned how to explore character traits by contrasting one person with another, noting their similarities and differences; this method likely influenced the way he organized characters in both those plays and his other works.
Not long after he went to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of Sir Philip Sidney at the age of thirty-two, must have had its unavoidable influence on him, seeing all Europe was in mourning for the death of its model, almost ideal man. In England the general mourning, both in the court and the city, which lasted for months, is supposed by Dr. Zouch to have been the first instance of the kind; that is, for the death of a private person. Renowned over the civilized world for everything for which a man could be renowned, his literary fame must have had a considerable share in the impression his death would make on such a man as Shakspere. For although none of his works were published till after his death, the first within a few months of that event, his fame as a writer was widely spread in private, and report of the same could hardly fail to reach one who, although he had probably no friends of rank as yet, kept such keen open ears for all that was going on around him. But whether or not he had heard of the literary greatness of Sir Philip before his death, the “Arcadia,” which was first published four years after his death (1590), and which in eight years had reached the third edition—with another still in Scotland the following year—must have been full of interest to Shakspere. This book is very different indeed from the ordinary impression of it which most minds have received through the confident incapacity of the critics of last century. Few books have been published more fruitful in the results and causes of thought, more sparkling with fancy, more evidently the outcome of rich and noble habit, than this “Arcadia” of Philip Sidney. That Shakspere read it, is sufficiently evident from the fact that from it he has taken the secondary but still important plots in two of his plays.
Not long after he moved to London, when he was twenty-two, the death of Sir Philip Sidney at thirty-two must have had a significant impact on him, considering that all of Europe was mourning the loss of its model, nearly ideal man. In England, the widespread mourning—both in the court and the city—lasted for months. Dr. Zouch believes this was the first time such mourning occurred for the death of a private individual. Renowned across the civilized world for everything a man could be famous for, Sir Philip's literary reputation likely played a large role in how his death affected someone like Shakespeare. Although none of his works were published until after he died, with the first coming out just a few months later, his reputation as a writer was already widely known in private circles, and news of it would have surely reached someone like Shakespeare, who, although he probably had no friends of high status yet, was keenly aware of everything happening around him. Whether or not he was aware of Sir Philip's literary greatness before his death, the “Arcadia,” which was first published four years after he died (in 1590), and which saw a third edition within eight years—along with another release in Scotland the following year—must have been of great interest to Shakespeare. This book is very different from the common perception most people have, shaped by the misguided judgments of last century's critics. Few books have been published that are as rich in thought, as imaginative, and that come from such a noble background as this “Arcadia” by Philip Sidney. The fact that Shakespeare read it is clear since he drew secondary but still significant plots from it for two of his plays.
Although we are anticipating, it is better to mention here another book, published in the same year, namely, 1590, when Shakspere was six-and-twenty: the first three books of Spenser’s “Faery Queen.” Of its reception and character it is needless here to say anything further than, of the latter, that nowadays the depths of its teaching, heartily prized as that was by no less a man than Milton, are seldom explored. But it would be a labour of months to set out the known and imagined sources of the knowledge and spiritual pabulum of the man who laid every mental region so under contribution, that he has been claimed by almost every profession as having been at one time or another a student of its peculiar science, so marvellously in him was the power of assimilation combined with that of reproduction.
Although we are looking forward, it’s worth mentioning another book published in the same year, 1590, when Shakespeare was 26: the first three books of Spenser’s “Faery Queen.” There’s no need to elaborate on how it was received or its character other than to say that, nowadays, the depth of its teachings, which were highly valued by no less a figure than Milton, is rarely examined. However, it would take months of work to outline the known and imagined sources of the knowledge and spiritual nourishment of the man who drew upon every area of thought so thoroughly that he has been regarded by nearly every profession as a student of its unique knowledge, so incredibly in him was the ability to absorb and reproduce.
To go back a little: in 1587, when he was three-and-twenty, Mary Queen of Scots was executed. In the following year came that mighty victory of England, and her allies the winds and the waters, over the towering pride of the Spanish Armada. Out from the coasts, like the birds from their cliffs to defend their young, flew the little navy, many of the vessels only able to carry a few guns; and fighting, fire-ships and tempest left this island,—
To go back a little: in 1587, when he was twenty-three, Mary Queen of Scots was executed. The next year brought the great victory of England, along with its allies, the winds and the waters, over the immense pride of the Spanish Armada. From the coasts, like birds from their cliffs to protect their young, the small navy launched, many of the ships only equipped with a few guns; and in the midst of fighting, fire-ships, and storms, this island became—
“This precious stone set in the silver sea,”
“This precious stone set in the silver sea,”
still a “blessed plot,” with an accumulated obligation to liberty which can only be paid by helping others to be free; and when she utterly forgets which, her doom is sealed, as surely as that of the old empires which passed away in their self-indulgence and wickedness.
still a “blessed plot,” with a responsibility to liberty that can only be fulfilled by helping others achieve freedom; and when she completely forgets this, her fate is sealed, just like the old empires that fell into decline through their self-indulgence and wickedness.
When Shakspere was about thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his glowing account of Guiana, which instantly provided the English mind with an earthly paradise or fairy-land. Raleigh himself seems to have been too full of his own reports for us to be able to suppose that he either invented or disbelieved them; especially when he represents the heavenly country to which, in expectation of his execution, he is looking forward, after the fashion of those regions of the wonderful West:—
When Shakespeare was around thirty-two, Sir Walter Raleigh published his glowing description of Guiana, which immediately gave the English people an image of an earthly paradise or fairyland. Raleigh himself seems to have been so caught up in his own stories that we can't believe he either made them up or doubted them; especially when he talks about the heavenly place he is looking forward to, in anticipation of his execution, in the style of those wondrous parts of the West:—
“Then the blessed Paths wee’l travel, Strow’d with Rubies thick as gravel; Sealings of Diamonds, Saphire floors, High walls of Coral, and Pearly Bowers.”
“Then we’ll travel the lovely paths, Lined with rubies as thick as gravel; Seals of diamonds, sapphire floors, Tall walls of coral, and pearly arbors.”
Such were some of the influences which widened the region of thought, and excited the productive power, in the minds of the time. After this period there were fewer of such in Shakspere’s life; and if there had been more of them they would have been of less import as to their operation on a mind more fully formed and more capable of choosing its own influences. Let us now give a backward glance at the history of the art which Shakspere chose as the means of easing his own mind of that wealth which, like the gold and the silver, has a moth and rust of its own, except it be kept in use by being sent out for the good of our neighbours.
These were some of the influences that expanded the realm of thought and sparked creativity in people's minds at the time. After this period, there were fewer such influences in Shakespeare’s life; and if there had been more, they would have mattered less because his mind was more fully developed and capable of selecting its own influences. Let’s now take a look back at the history of the art that Shakespeare chose to express the wealth of ideas in his mind, which, like gold and silver, tends to tarnish and decay unless it is shared and used for the benefit of others.
It was a mighty gain for the language and the people when, in the middle of the fourteenth century, by permission of the Pope, the miracle-plays, most probably hitherto represented in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier supposes, began to be represented in English. Most likely there had been dramatic representations of a sort from the very earliest period of the nation’s history; for, to begin with the lowest form, at what time would there not, for the delight of listeners, have been the imitation of animal sounds, such as the drama of the conversation between an attacking poodle and a fiercely repellent puss? Through innumerable gradations of childhood would the art grow before it attained the first formal embodiment in such plays as those, so-called, of miracles, consisting just of Scripture stories, both canonical and apocryphal, dramatized after the rudest fashion. Regarded from the height which the art had reached two hundred and fifty years after, “how dwarfed a growth of cold and night” do these miracle-plays show themselves! But at a time when there was no printing, little preaching, and Latin prayers, we cannot help thinking that, grotesque and ill-imagined as they are, they must have been of unspeakable value for the instruction of a people whose spiritual digestion was not of a sort to be injured by the presence of a quite abnormal quantity of husk and saw-dust in their food. And occasionally we find verses of true poetic feeling, such as the following, in “The Fall of Man:”—
It was a significant win for the language and the people when, in the middle of the 14th century, with the Pope's approval, the miracle plays, likely previously performed in Norman-French, as Mr. Collier suggests, began to be performed in English. There had probably been some form of dramatic representation since the earliest days of the nation's history; to start with the simplest example, when wouldn’t there have been, for the audience's enjoyment, the mimicry of animal sounds, like the play between an attacking poodle and a fiercely defensive cat? The art would develop through countless stages of childhood before it took on its first formal shape in plays known as miracle plays, which were made up of Scripture stories, both canonical and apocryphal, dramatized in a very rudimentary way. Viewed from the height that the art reached two hundred and fifty years later, “how dwarfed a growth of cold and night” these miracle plays seem! But at a time when there was no printing, little preaching, and Latin prayers, we can’t help but think that, despite being grotesque and poorly imagined, they must have been incredibly valuable for educating a people whose spiritual understanding wasn’t harmed by the presence of an unusual amount of rough material in their food. And occasionally we come across verses with true poetic sentiment, such as the following, in “The Fall of Man:”—
Deus. Adam, that with myn handys I made, Where art thou now? What hast thou wrought? Adam. A! lord, for synne oure floures do ffade, I here thi voys, but I se the nought;
God. Adam, whom I created with my hands, Where are you now? What have you done? Adam. Ah! Lord, because of sin our flowers fade, I hear your voice, but I do not see you;
implying that the separation between God and man, although it had destroyed the beatific vision, was not yet so complete as to make the creature deaf to the voice of his Maker. Nor are the words of Eve, with which she begs her husband, in her shame and remorse, to strangle her, odd and quaint as they are, without an almost overpowering pathos:—
implying that the gap between God and man, while it had shattered the perfect vision, was not so severe that the creature couldn't hear the voice of its Maker. Eve's words, in which she begs her husband, filled with shame and regret, to strangle her, though they seem strange and old-fashioned, carry an almost overwhelming sense of sadness:—
“Now stomble we on stalk and ston; My wyt awey is fro me gon: Wrythe on to my necke bon With, hardnesse of thin honde.”
“Now we stumble on stalk and stone; My wits are gone away from me: Twist on to my neck bone With the hardness of your hand.”
To this Adam commences his reply with the verses,—
To this, Adam starts his response with the verses,—
“Wyff, thi wytt is not wurthe a rosche. Leve woman, turn thi thought.”
“Wyff, your wit isn't worth a penny. Dear woman, change your mind.”
And this portion of the general representation ends with these verses, spoken by Eve:—
And this part of the overall narrative concludes with these lines, spoken by Eve:—
“Alas! that ever we wrought this synne. Oure bodely sustenauns for to wynne, Ye must delve and I xal spynne, In care to ledyn oure lyff.”
“Unfortunately! that we ever committed this sin. To earn our physical sustenance, You must dig and I shall spin, In the struggle to lead our lives.”
In connexion with these plays, one of the contemplations most interesting to us is, the contrast between them and the places in which they were occasionally represented. For though the scaffolds on which they were shown were usually erected in market-places or churchyards, sometimes they rose in the great churches, and the plays were represented with the aid of ecclesiastics. Here, then, we have the rude beginnings of the dramatic art, in which the devil is the unfortunate buffoon, giving occasion to the most exuberant laughter of the people—here is this rude boyhood, if we may so say, of the one art, roofed in with the perfection of another, of architecture; a perfection which now we can only imitate at our best: below, the clumsy contrivance and the vulgar jest; above, the solemn heaven of uplifted arches, their mysterious glooms ringing with the delight of the multitude: the play of children enclosed in the heart of prayer aspiring in stone. But it was not by any means all laughter; and so much, nearer than architecture is the drama to the ordinary human heart, that we cannot help thinking these grotesque representations did far more to arouse the inward life and conscience of the people than all the glory into which the out-working spirit of the monks had compelled the stubborn stone to bourgeon and blossom.
In connection with these plays, one of the most interesting thoughts for us is the contrast between them and the venues where they were sometimes performed. While the stages were usually set up in market squares or churchyards, they were occasionally erected inside grand churches, with the help of clergy. Here, we see the rough beginnings of dramatic art, where the devil plays the unfortunate fool, provoking the wild laughter of the crowd—this is the awkward childhood, if you will, of one art form, set beneath the perfection of another: architecture. A perfection that now we can only strive to replicate at our best: below, the clumsy setup and the crude jokes; above, the solemn beauty of soaring arches, their mysterious shadows filled with the joy of the crowd: the playful antics of children contained within a sacred space of stone and prayer. But it wasn't all about laughter; and drama connects more closely to the ordinary human experience than architecture, leading us to believe that these exaggerated performances did much more to awaken the inner life and conscience of the people than all the grandeur the spirit of the monks turned the stubborn stone into blooms and fruits.
But although, no doubt, there was some kind of growth going on in the drama even during the dreary fifteenth century, we must not suppose that it was by any regular and steady progression that it arrived at the grandeur of the Elizabethan perfection. It was rather as if a dry, knotty, uncouth, but vigorous plant suddenly opened out its inward life in a flower of surpassing splendour and loveliness. When the representation of real historical persons in the miracle-plays gave way before the introduction of unreal allegorical personages, and the miracle-play was almost driven from the stage by the “play of morals” as it was called, there was certainly no great advance made in dramatic representation. The chief advantage gained was room for more variety; while in some important respects these plays fell off from the merits of the preceding kind. Indeed, any attempt to teach morals allegorically must lack that vivifying fire of faith working in the poorest representations of a history which the people heartily believed and loved. Nor when we come to examine the favourite amusement of later royalty, do we find that the interludes brought forward in the pauses of the banquets of Henry VIII. have a claim to any refinement upon those old miracle-plays. They have gained in facility and wit; they have lost in poetry. They have lost pathos too, and have gathered grossness. In the comedies which soon appear, there is far more of fun than of art; and although the historical play had existed for some time, and the streams of learning from the inns of court had flowed in to swell that of the drama, it is not before the appearance of Shakspere that we find any whole of artistic or poetic value. And this brings us to another branch of the subject, of which it seems to us that the importance has never been duly acknowledged. We refer to the use, if not invention, of blank verse in England, and its application to the purposes of the drama. It seems to us that in any contemplation of Shakspere and his times, the consideration of these points ought not to be omitted.
But even though there was certainly some growth in drama during the dreary fifteenth century, we shouldn’t think it happened in a regular and steady way that led to the greatness of Elizabethan perfection. It was more like a dry, twisted, awkward but strong plant suddenly blossoming into an incredibly beautiful flower. When the portrayal of real historical figures in miracle plays gave way to the introduction of fictional allegorical characters, and the miracle play was largely pushed off the stage by the so-called “moral plays,” there wasn’t a significant advancement in dramatic representation. The main benefit was more variety, while in some important ways these plays actually fell short compared to the previous ones. Indeed, any attempt to teach morals through allegory lacks the vital energy of faith that energized even the simplest re-enactments of history that people genuinely believed in and cherished. Moreover, when we look at the favorite entertainment of later royalty, we see that the interludes presented during the banquets of Henry VIII don’t claim any refinement over those old miracle plays. They’ve become more clever and witty but less poetic. They have also lost emotional depth and taken on a coarse quality. In the comedies that soon emerged, there was much more humor than artistry; and although historical plays had been around for some time and the flow of learning from the inns of court contributed to the drama, it wasn’t until the arrival of Shakespeare that we found any cohesive artistic or poetic value. This leads us to another aspect of the topic that we believe hasn’t been given enough recognition. We’re talking about the use, if not the invention, of blank verse in England and its application in drama. We think that in any discussion of Shakespeare and his era, these points shouldn’t be overlooked.
We have in the present day one grand master of blank verse, the Poet Laureate. But where would he have been if Milton had not gone before him; or if the verse amidst which he works like an informing spirit had not existed at all? No doubt he might have invented it himself; but how different would the result have been from the verse which he will now leave behind him to lie side by side for comparison with that of the master of the epic! All thanks then to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey! who, if, dying on the scaffold at the early age of thirty, he has left no poetry in itself of much value, yet so wrote that he refined the poetic usages of the language, and, above all, was the first who ever made blank verse in English. He used it in translating the second and fourth books of Virgil’s “Aeneid.” This translation he probably wrote not long before his execution, which took place in 1547, seventeen years before the birth of Shakspere. There are passages of excellence in the work, and very rarely does a verse quite fail. But, as might be expected, it is somewhat stiff, and, as it were, stunted in sound; partly from the fact that the lines are too much divided, where distinction would have been sufficient. It would have been strange, indeed, if he had at once made a free use of a rhythm which every boy-poet now thinks he can do what he pleases with, but of which only a few ever learn the real scope and capabilities. Besides, the difficulty was increased by the fact that the nearest approach to it in measure was the heroic couplet, so well known in our language, although scarce one who has used it has come up to the variousness of its modelling in the hands of Chaucer, with whose writings Surrey was of course familiar. But various as is its melody in Chaucer, the fact of there being always an anticipation of the perfecting of a rhyme at the end of the couplet would make one accustomed to heroic verse ready to introduce a rhythmical fall and kind of close at the end of every blank verse in trying to write that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there is good verse in Surrey’s translation. Take the following lines for a specimen, in which the fault just mentioned is scarcely perceptible. Mercury is the subject of them.
We have today one great master of blank verse, the Poet Laureate. But where would he be if Milton hadn't paved the way for him, or if the verse he works with didn’t exist at all? No doubt he could have invented it himself; but how different would the outcome have been compared to the verse he will leave behind, side by side with that of the master of the epic! All credit goes to Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey! Who, even though he was executed at the young age of thirty and left behind little poetry of significant value, refined the poetic practices of the language and, above all, was the first to create blank verse in English. He used it when translating the second and fourth books of Virgil’s "Aeneid." This translation was likely written not long before his execution in 1547, seventeen years before Shakespeare was born. There are excellent passages in the work, and it rarely falters. However, as expected, it's somewhat rigid and stunted in sound, partly because the lines are too often broken when clarity would have sufficed. It would have been surprising if he had easily mastered a rhythm that every young poet thinks they can handle, yet only a few truly grasp its scope and potential. Furthermore, the challenge was heightened by the fact that the closest measure to it was the heroic couplet, which is well known in our language, although hardly anyone who has used it has matched its variety as handled by Chaucer—whose writings Surrey was undoubtedly familiar with. But while Chaucer's melody is varied, the expectation of a perfect rhyme at the end of each couplet would lead someone accustomed to heroic verse to create a rhythmic drop and a sort of closure at the end of every line of blank verse when trying to write in that measure for the first time. Still, as we say, there is good verse in Surrey’s translation. Take the following lines as an example, where the flaw just mentioned is hardly noticeable. Mercury is the subject of these lines.
“His golden wings he knits, which him transport, With a light wind above the earth and seas; And then with him his wand he took, whereby He calls from hell pale ghosts.
“He weaves his golden wings that carry him, On a gentle breeze above the land and seas; And then he takes his staff, by which He summons pale ghosts from the underworld.
“By power whereof he drives the winds away, And passeth eke amid the troubled clouds, Till in his flight he ‘gan descry the top And the steep flanks of rocky Atlas’ hill That with his crown sustains the welkin up; Whose head, forgrown with pine, circled alway With misty clouds, is beaten with wind and storm; His shoulders spread with snow; and from his chin The springs descend; his beard frozen with ice. Here Mercury with equal shining wings First touched.”
“With the power to push the winds away, He moves through the troubled clouds, Until he spots the peak And the steep sides of rocky Atlas’ mountain That holds up the sky; Its top, overgrown with pine, always surrounded By misty clouds, battered by wind and storm; Its shoulders covered in snow; and from its chin The springs flow down; its beard frozen with ice. Here, Mercury with gleaming wings First landed.”
In all comparative criticism justice demands that he who began any mode should not be compared with those who follow only on the ground of absolute merit in the productions themselves; for while he may be inferior in regard to quality, he stands on a height, as the inventor, to which they, as imitators, can never ascend, although they may climb other and loftier heights, through the example he has set them. It is doubtful, however, whether Surrey himself invented this verse, or only followed the lead of some poet of Italy or Spain; in both which countries it is said that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote English in that measure.
In all comparative criticism, fairness requires that the originator of a form shouldn't be compared to those who come later based solely on the intrinsic quality of their works. While he may fall short in quality, he occupies a unique position as the innovator, one that imitators can never reach, even if they achieve other, greater heights inspired by his example. However, it's unclear whether Surrey actually invented this verse or merely followed the example of a poet from Italy or Spain; in both countries, it's claimed that blank verse had been used before Surrey wrote in that style in English.
Here then we have the low beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly a hundred and twenty years before Milton took it up, and, while it served him well, glorified it; nor are we aware of any poem of worth written in that measure between. Here, of course, we speak of the epic form of the verse, which, as being uttered ore rotundo, is necessarily of considerable difference from the form it assumes in the drama.
Here we have the humble beginnings of blank verse. It was nearly one hundred and twenty years until Milton adopted it, and while it worked well for him, he elevated it; we aren't aware of any significant poem written in that style during that time. Here, of course, we are referring to the epic form of the verse, which, being delivered ore rotundo, is necessarily quite different from the form it takes in drama.
Let us now glance for a moment at the forms of composition in use for dramatic purposes before blank verse came into favour with play-writers. The nature of the verse employed in the miracle-plays will be sufficiently seen from the short specimens already given. These plays were made up of carefully measured and varied lines, with correct and superabundant rhymes, and no marked lack of melody or rhythm. But as far as we have made acquaintance with the moral and other rhymed plays which followed, there was a great falling off in these respects. They are in great measure composed of long, irregular lines, with a kind of rhythmical progress rather than rhythm in them. They are exceedingly difficult to read musically, at least to one of our day. Here are a few verses of the sort, from the dramatic poem, rather than drama, called somewhat improperly “The Moral Play of God’s Promises,” by John Bale, who died the year before Shakspere was born. It is the first in Dodsley’s collection. The verses have some poetic merit. The rhythm will be allowed to be difficult at least. The verses are arranged in stanzas, of which we give two. In most plays the verses are arranged in rhyming couplets only.
Let's take a moment to look at the types of composition used for dramatic purposes before blank verse became popular with playwrights. The nature of the verse in the miracle plays can be seen from the short examples already provided. These plays consisted of carefully measured and varied lines, featuring correct and abundant rhymes, with a good amount of melody and rhythm. However, in the moral and other rhymed plays that followed, there was a significant decline in these qualities. They are mostly made up of long, irregular lines, offering more of a rhythmic flow than actual rhythm. They are extremely challenging to read musically, especially for someone in our time. Here are a few lines from a dramatic poem, more so than a drama, inaccurately titled “The Moral Play of God’s Promises,” by John Bale, who passed away the year before Shakespeare was born. This is the first in Dodsley’s collection. The verses have some poetic quality, although the rhythm is certainly tough. The verses are arranged in stanzas, of which we present two. In most plays, the verses are arranged in rhyming couplets only.
Pater Coelestis. I have with fearcenesse mankynde oft tymes corrected, And agayne, I have allured hym by swete promes. I have sent sore plages, when he hath me neglected, And then by and by, most comfortable swetnes. To wynne hym to grace, bothe mercye and ryghteousnes I have exercysed, yet wyll he not amende. Shall I now lose hym, or shall I him defende? In hys most myschefe, most hygh grace will I sende, To overcome hym by favoure, if it may be. With hys abusyons no longar wyll I contende, But now accomplysh my first wyll and decre. My worde beynge flesh, from hens shall set hym fre, Hym teachynge a waye of perfyght ryhteousnesse, That he shall not nede to perysh in hys weaknesse.
Pater Coelestis. I have often corrected mankind with great severity, And also, I have drawn him in with sweet promises. I have sent severe plagues when he has ignored me, And then right after, most comforting sweetness. To win him to grace, I have shown both mercy and righteousness, Yet he still will not improve. Should I now lose him, or should I defend him? In his greatest misery, I will send the highest grace, To overcome him by favor, if that’s possible. I will no longer contend with his abuses, But now fulfill my first will and decree. My word becoming flesh will set him free, Teaching him a path of perfect righteousness, So he will not need to perish in his weakness.
To our ears, at least, the older miracle-plays were greatly superior. It is interesting to find, however, in this apparently popular mode of “building the rhyme”—certainly not the lofty rhyme, for no such crumbling foundation could carry any height of superstructure—the elements of the most popular rhythm of the present day; a rhythm admitting of any number of syllables in the line, from four up to twelve, or even more, and demanding only that there shall be not more than four accented syllables in the line. A song written with any spirit in this measure has, other things not being quite equal, yet almost a certainty of becoming more popular than one written in any other measure. Most of Barry Cornwall’s and Mrs. Heman’s songs are written in it. Scott’s “Lay of the Last Minstrel,” Coleridge’s “Christabel,” Byron’s “Siege of Corinth,” Shelley’s “Sensitive Plant,” are examples of the rhythm. Spenser is the first who has made good use of it. One of the months in the “Shepherd’s Calendar” is composed in it. We quote a few lines from this poem, to show at once the kind we mean:—
To us, the older miracle plays are clearly better. However, it’s interesting to see that in this seemingly popular way of “building the rhyme”—definitely not the lofty rhyme, since no weak foundation could support any tall structure—we find elements of the most common rhythm today; a rhythm that allows any number of syllables in a line, from four to twelve, or even more, and only requires that there be no more than four accented syllables. A song written with real energy in this measure is likely to be more popular than one in any other measure, assuming everything else is not quite equal. Most of Barry Cornwall’s and Mrs. Hemans’ songs are written in it. Scott’s “Lay of the Last Minstrel,” Coleridge’s “Christabel,” Byron’s “Siege of Corinth,” and Shelley’s “Sensitive Plant” are examples of this rhythm. Spenser is the first to really make good use of it. One of the months in the “Shepherd’s Calendar” is written in this style. We’ll quote a few lines from this poem to show you exactly what we mean:—
“No marvel, Thenot, if thou can bear Cheerfully the winter’s wrathful cheer; For age and winter accord full nigh; This chill, that cold; this crooked, that wry; And as the lowering weather looks down, So seemest thou like Good Friday to frown: But my flowering youth is foe to frost; My ship unwont in storms to be tost.”
“It's no surprise, Thenot, that you can handle Cheerfully the harshness of winter; For age and winter are almost the same; This chill, that cold; this crooked, that bent; And just as the gloomy weather brings us down, So do you seem to frown like Good Friday: But my blooming youth is an enemy to frost; My ship is not used to being tossed in storms.”
We can trace it slightly in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we think in others who preceded Spenser. There is no sign of it in Chaucer. But we judge it to be the essential rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which will quite harmonize with, if it cannot explain, the fact of its being the most popular measure still. Shakspere makes a little use of it in one, if not in more, of his plays, though it there partakes of the irregular character of that of the older plays which he is imitating. But we suspect the clowns of the authorship of some of the rhymes, “speaking more than was set down for them,” evidently no uncommon offence.
We can see it somewhat in Sir Thomas Wyatt, and we believe in others who came before Spenser. There’s no trace of it in Chaucer. However, we think it’s the fundamental rhythm of Anglo-Saxon poetry, which works well with, if it doesn’t quite explain, why it remains the most popular form even today. Shakespeare uses it a bit in one, if not more, of his plays, though it carries the irregular style of the older plays he’s mimicking. But we suspect that the clowns might have contributed to some of the rhymes, “saying more than was actually written for them,” which is clearly a common mistake.
Prose was likewise in use for the drama at an early period.
Prose was also used for drama early on.
But we must now regard the application of blank verse to the use of the drama. And in this part of our subject we owe most to the investigations of Mr. Collier, than whom no one has done more to merit our gratitude for such aids. It is universally acknowledged that “Ferrex and Porrex” was the first drama in blank verse. But it was never represented on the public stage. It was the joint production of Thomas Sackville, afterwards Lord Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both gentlemen of the Inner Temple, by the members of which it was played before the Queen at Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakspere was born. As to its merits, the impression left by it upon our minds is such that, although the verse is decent, and in some respects irreproachable, we think the time spent in reading it must be all but lost to any but those who must verify to themselves their literary profession; a profession which, like all other professions, involves a good deal of disagreeable duty. We spare our readers all quotation, there being no occasion to show what blank verse of the commonest description is. But we beg to be allowed to state that this drama by no means represents the poetic powers of Thomas Sackville. For although we cannot agree with Hallam’s general criticism, either for or against Sackville, and although we admire Spenser, we hope, as much as that writer could have admired him, we yet venture to say that not only may some of Sackville’s personifications “fairly be compared with some of the most poetical passages in Spenser,” but that there is in this kind in Sackville a strength and simplicity of representation which surpasses that of Spenser in passages in which the latter probably imitated the former. We refer to the allegorical personages in Sackville’s “Induction to the Mirrour of Magistrates,” and in Spenser’s description of the “House of Pride.”
But we should now consider how blank verse is used in drama. In this area, we owe a lot to Mr. Collier, who has done more than anyone to earn our appreciation for these insights. It's widely accepted that “Ferrex and Porrex” was the first play written in blank verse. However, it was never performed on a public stage. It was a collaboration between Thomas Sackville, who later became Lord Buckhurst and Earl of Dorset, and Thomas Norton, both members of the Inner Temple. They presented it before the Queen at Whitehall in 1561, three years before Shakespeare was born. Regarding its quality, while the verse is decent and in some respects commendable, we feel that reading it may not benefit anyone except those who need to affirm their literary credentials—a field that, like any other profession, often requires enduring some unpleasant tasks. We won't quote any passages since there's no need to demonstrate what basic blank verse looks like. However, we must point out that this play doesn’t truly reflect the poetic talent of Thomas Sackville. Although we don't fully agree with Hallam’s overall judgment of Sackville, whether positive or negative, and while we greatly admire Spenser, as much as he might have admired Sackville, we dare to say that some of Sackville’s characterizations can "fairly be compared with some of the most poetic lines in Spenser." Additionally, there’s a strength and straightforwardness in Sackville's representations that surpasses Spenser’s in instances where Spenser likely drew inspiration from Sackville. We are referring to the allegorical figures in Sackville’s “Induction to the Mirrour of Magistrates” and in Spenser’s description of the “House of Pride.”
Mr. Collier judges that the play in blank verse first represented on the public stage was the “Tamburlaine” of Christopher Marlowe, and that it was acted before 1587, at which date Shakspere would be twenty-three. This was followed by other and better plays by the same author. Although we cannot say much for the dramatic art of Marlowe, he has far surpassed every one that went before him in dramatic poetry. The passages that might worthily be quoted from Marlowe’s writings for the sake of their poetry are innumerable, notwithstanding that there are many others which occupy a border land between poetry and bombast, and are such that it is to us impossible to say to which class they rather belong. Of course it is easy for a critic to gain the credit of common-sense at the same time that he saves himself the trouble of doing what he too frequently shows himself incapable of doing to any good purpose—we mean thinking—by classing all such passages together as bombastical nonsense; but even in the matter of poetry and bombast, a wise reader will recognize that extremes so entirely meet, without being in the least identical, that they are capable of a sort of chemico-literary admixture, if not of combination. Goethe himself need not have been ashamed to have written one or two of the scenes in Marlowe’s “Faust;” not that we mean to imply that they in the least resemble Goethe’s handiwork. His verse is, for dramatic purposes, far inferior to Shakspere’s; but it was a great matter for Shakspere that Marlowe preceded him, and helped to prepare to his hand the tools and fashions he needed. The provision of blank verse for Shakspere’s use seems to us worthy of being called providential, even in a system in which we cannot believe that there is any chance. For as the stage itself is elevated a few feet above the ordinary level, because it is the scene of a representation, just so the speech of the drama, dealing not with unreal but with ideal persons, the fool being a worthy fool, and the villain a worthy villain, needs to be elevated some tones above that of ordinary life, which is generally flavoured with so much of the commonplace. Now the commonplace has no place at all in the drama of Shakspere, which fact at once elevates it above the tone of ordinary life. And so the mode of the speech must be elevated as well; therefore from prose into blank verse. If we go beyond this, we cease to be natural for the stage as well as life; and the result is that kind of composition well enough known in Shakspere’s time, which he ridicules in the recitations of the player in “Hamlet,” about Priam and Hecuba. We could show the very passages of the play-writer Nash which Shakspere imitates in these. To use another figure, Shakspere, in the same play, instructs the players “to hold, as ‘twere, the mirror up to nature.” Now every one must have felt that somehow there is a difference between the appearance of any object or group of objects immediately presented to the eye, and the appearance of the same object or objects in a mirror. Nature herself is not the same in the mirror held up to her. Everything changes sides in this representation; and the room which is an ordinary, well-known, homely room, gains something of the strange and poetic when regarded in the mirror over the fire. Now for this representation, for this mirror-reflection on the stage, blank verse is just the suitable glass to receive the silvering of the genius-mind behind it.
Mr. Collier believes that the first play in blank verse performed on the public stage was Christopher Marlowe's "Tamburlaine," which likely took place before 1587, when Shakespeare would have been twenty-three. This was followed by other, better plays from the same writer. Although we can’t commend Marlowe's dramatic skills too highly, he surpasses everyone before him in dramatic poetry. There are countless passages from Marlowe's works that are worth quoting for their poetic quality, despite many others straddling the line between poetry and bombast, making it hard to categorize them. It’s easy for a critic to gain a reputation for common sense without doing the hard thinking they often seem incapable of by dismissing such passages as bombastic nonsense. However, a wise reader will recognize that the extremes of poetry and bombast can intersect without being identical, allowing for a kind of chemical-literary blend, if not an outright combination. Goethe himself wouldn't have been embarrassed to write a scene or two in Marlowe’s “Faust,” though we don't mean to suggest they resemble Goethe’s work. For dramatic purposes, Marlowe’s verse is significantly less effective than Shakespeare’s, but it mattered greatly to Shakespeare that Marlowe paved the way and provided the tools and styles he needed. The introduction of blank verse for Shakespeare seems almost providential in a system where we don’t believe in chance. Just as the stage is set a few feet above ordinary ground because it is a place of representation, the dialogue of the drama, which involves ideal rather than fictional characters—the fool being a proper fool and the villain a real villain—needs to be elevated above the ordinary, which is often tinged with commonplace. The commonplace has no place in Shakespeare's drama, which immediately raises it above the tone of everyday life. Hence, the style of speech must also be elevated, shifting from prose to blank verse. Going beyond that would make it unnatural for both the stage and real life, resulting in a style familiar in Shakespeare's time, which he mocks in “Hamlet” during the player’s recitation about Priam and Hecuba. We could identify the specific passages from the playwright Nash that Shakespeare imitates in these. Using another analogy, Shakespeare, in the same play, tells the actors “to hold, as it were, the mirror up to nature.” Everyone has sensed that there’s a difference between how something appears to the eye and how it looks in a mirror. Nature itself is not the same when reflected in a mirror. Everything flips in this representation; a familiar room takes on an element of the strange and poetic when seen in the mirror over the fireplace. For this representation, this mirror-like reflection on stage, blank verse is the perfect medium to showcase the genius behind it.
But if Shakspere had had to sit down and make his tools first, and then quarry his stone and fell his timber for the building of his house, instead of finding everything ready to his hand for dressing his stone already hewn, for sawing and carving the timber already in logs and planks beside him, no doubt his house would have been built; but can we with any reason suppose that it would have proved such “a lordly pleasure-house”? Not even Shakspere could do without his poor little brothers who preceded him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the drama, got everything out of the bowels of the dark earth, ready for the master, whom it would have been a shame to see working in the gloom and the dust instead of in the open eye of the day. Nor is anything so helpful to the true development of power as the possibility of free action for as much of the power as is already operative. This room for free action was provided by blank verse.
But if Shakespeare had to sit down and make his tools first, then quarry his stone and cut down his timber for building his house, instead of finding everything ready at hand for shaping stone that was already cut, for sawing and carving timber that was already in logs and planks beside him, there's no doubt his house would have been built; but can we reasonably think it would have been such “a grand pleasure-house”? Not even Shakespeare could manage without his little predecessors who came before him, and, like the goblins and gnomes of the play, got everything out of the dark earth, ready for the master, whom it would have been a shame to see working in the gloom and dust instead of in the bright light of day. Also, nothing is more helpful to the genuine development of power than the opportunity for free action with the power that is already in play. This space for free action was provided by blank verse.
Yet when Shakspere came first upon the scene of dramatic labour, he had to serve his private apprenticeship, to which the apprenticeship of the age in the drama, had led up. He had to act first of all. Driven to London and the drama by an irresistible impulse, when the choice of some profession was necessary to make him independent of his father, seeing he was himself, though very young, a married man, the first form in which the impulse to the drama would naturally show itself in him would be the desire to act; for the outside relations would first operate. As to the degree of merit he possessed as an actor we have but scanty means of judging; for afterwards, in his own plays, he never took the best characters, having written them for his friend Richard Burbage. Possibly the dramatic impulse was sufficiently appeased by the writing of the play, and he desired no further satisfaction from personal representation; although the amount of study spent upon the higher department of the art might have been more than sufficient to render him unrivalled as well in the presentation of his own conceptions. But the dramatic spring, having once broken the upper surface, would scoop out a deeper and deeper well for itself to play in, and the actor would soon begin to work upon the parts he had himself to study for presentation. It being found that he greatly bettered his own parts, those of others would be submitted to him, and at length whole plays committed to his revision, of which kind there may be several in the collection of his works. If the feather-end of his pen is just traceable in “Titus Andronicus,” the point of it is much more evident, and to as good purpose as Beaumont or Fletcher could have used his to, at the best, in “Pericles, Prince of Tyre.” Nor would it be long before he would submit one of his own plays for approbation; and then the whole of his dramatic career lies open before him, with every possible advantage for perfecting the work, for the undertaking of which he was better qualified by nature than probably any other man whosoever; for he knew everything about acting, practically—about the play-house and its capabilities, about stage necessities, about the personal endowments and individual qualifications of each of the company—so that, when he was writing a play, he could distribute the parts before they even appeared upon paper, and write for each actor with the very living form of the ideal person present “in his mind’s eye,” and often to his bodily sight; so that the actual came in aid of the ideal, as it always does if the ideal be genuine, and the loftiest conceptions proved the truest to visible nature.
Yet when Shakespeare first came on the scene of dramatic work, he had to serve his own apprenticeship, which the standards of the time in drama had led up to. He needed to act first and foremost. Drawn to London and the theater by an irresistible urge, he had to choose a profession to become independent from his father, especially since he was a young married man. The first way this urge for drama would naturally manifest in him would be a desire to act, as his external circumstances would take precedence. We have limited means to assess how talented he was as an actor; later, in his own plays, he never took on the best roles, as he wrote them for his friend Richard Burbage. Perhaps the desire for dramatic expression was satisfied enough through writing plays, and he sought no further fulfillment from acting himself; though he may have studied the higher aspects of the craft enough to excel in presenting his own ideas. However, once the creative spark was ignited, it would deepen and expand, leading the actor to begin working on the roles he had to study for performance. As it turned out, he significantly improved his own parts, leading others’ roles to be given to him, and eventually whole plays were entrusted to him for revision, several of which may be found in his collected works. If the tip of his pen is faintly visible in “Titus Andronicus,” the impact of it is much clearer and just as effective as Beaumont or Fletcher could have utilized in “Pericles, Prince of Tyre.” It wouldn’t be long before he submitted one of his own plays for approval, and then the entirety of his dramatic career was laid out before him, with every possible advantage for perfecting his work, for which he was likely more qualified by nature than anyone else; he understood everything about acting in practice—about the theater and its possibilities, about stage needs, about the talents and individual skills of each performer—so that when he wrote a play, he could assign roles even before they were on paper, crafting parts for each actor with the living image of the ideal character present “in his mind’s eye,” often to his actual sight; thus, the real supported the ideal, as it always does when the ideal is authentic, with the highest visions proving the truest to reality.
This close relation of Shakspere to the actual leads us to a general and remarkable fact, which again will lead us back to Shakspere. All the great writers of Queen Elizabeth’s time were men of affairs; they were not literary men merely, in the general acceptation of the word at present. Hooker was a hard-working, sheep-keeping, cradle-rocking pastor of a country parish. Bacon’s legal duties were innumerable before he became Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was soldier, sailor, adventurer, courtier, politician, discoverer: indeed, it is to his imprisonment that we are indebted for much the most ambitious of his literary undertakings, “The History of the World,” a work which for simple majesty of subject and style is hardly to be surpassed in prose. Sidney, at the age of three-and-twenty, received the highest praise for the management of a secret embassy to the Emperor of Germany; took the deepest and most active interest in the political affairs of his country; would have sailed with Sir Francis Drake for South American discovery; and might probably have been king of poor Poland, if the queen had not been too selfish or wise to spare him. The whole of his literary productions was the work of his spare hours. Spenser himself, who was, except Shakspere, the most purely a literary man of them all, was at one time Secretary to the Lord Deputy of Ireland, and, later in life, Sheriff of Cork. Nor is the remark true only of the writers of Elizabeth’s period, or of the country of England.
This close connection of Shakespeare to reality brings us to a general and notable fact that ultimately leads us back to him. All the major writers of Queen Elizabeth's era were involved in real-world affairs; they weren’t just literary figures in the way we think of them today. Hooker was a hardworking, sheep-raising, cradle-rocking pastor in a rural parish. Bacon had countless legal responsibilities before he became Lord Keeper and Lord Chancellor. Raleigh was a soldier, sailor, adventurer, courtier, politician, and discoverer; indeed, we owe much of his most ambitious literary work, "The History of the World," to his imprisonment—a piece that, for its simple grandeur in subject and style, is hard to surpass in prose. At just twenty-three, Sidney received high praise for managing a secret mission to the Emperor of Germany; he took a deep and active interest in his country's politics, would have sailed with Sir Francis Drake for exploration in South America, and might have even become king of Poland if the queen hadn’t been too selfish or wise to let him go. All of his literary creations were done in his spare time. Spenser, who, aside from Shakespeare, was the most purely literary of all, was once Secretary to the Lord Deputy of Ireland, and later served as Sheriff of Cork. This observation isn't only true for the writers of Elizabeth's time or for England.
It seems to us one of the greatest advantages that can befall a poet, to be drawn out of his study, and still more out of the chamber of imagery in his own thoughts, to behold and speculate upon the embodiment of Divine thoughts and purposes in men and their affairs around him. Now Shakspere had no public appointment, but he reaped all the advantage which such could have given him, and more, from the perfection of his dramatic position. It was not with making plays alone that he had to do; but, himself an actor, himself in a great measure the owner of more than one theatre, with a little realm far more difficult to rule than many a kingdom—a company, namely, of actors—although possibly less difficult from the fact that they were only men and boys; with the pecuniary affairs of the management likewise under his supervision—he must have found, in the relations and necessities of his own profession, not merely enough of the actual to keep him real in his representations, but almost sufficient opportunity for his one great study, that of mankind, independently of social and friendly relations, which in his case were of the widest and deepest.
One of the greatest advantages for a poet is to be pulled out of their study and, even more so, out of the imagery in their own mind, to observe and reflect on the embodiment of divine thoughts and purposes in people and their lives around them. Shakespeare didn't have a public position, but he gained all the benefits that such a role could offer and more, thanks to the excellence of his dramatic work. He wasn't just focused on writing plays; as an actor himself and one of the owners of more than one theater, he had a little kingdom that was likely more challenging to manage than many kingdoms—a troupe of actors—though perhaps easier because they were just men and boys. With the financial aspects of managing everything also under his control, he must have found, in the dynamics and demands of his profession, not just enough reality to keep him grounded in his portrayals, but also ample opportunity for his primary interest: the study of humanity, independent of social and personal relationships, which in his case were extensive and profound.
But Shakspere had not business relations merely: he was a man of business. There is a common blunder manifested, both in theory on the one side, and in practice on the other, which the life of Shakspere sets full in the light. The theory is, that genius is a sort of abnormal development of the imagination, to the detriment and loss of the practical powers, and that a genius is therefore a kind of incapable, incompetent being, as far as worldly matters are concerned. The most complete refutation of this notion lies in the fact that the greatest genius the world has known was a successful man in common affairs. While his genius grew in strength, fervour, and executive power, his worldly condition rose as well; he became a man of importance in the eyes of his townspeople, by whom he would not have been honoured if he had not made money; and he purchased landed property in his native place with the results of his management of his theatres.
But Shakespeare had more than just business dealings; he was a savvy businessman. There’s a common mistake shown in theory on one side and in practice on the other that Shakespeare’s life clearly illustrates. The theory is that genius is an unusual development of the imagination, which harms practical skills, leading to the idea that a genius is therefore somewhat incapable or incompetent when it comes to worldly affairs. The best way to disprove this idea is the fact that the greatest genius the world has ever known was also successful in everyday matters. As his genius grew stronger, more passionate, and more effective, his worldly situation improved as well; he became a respected figure among his townspeople, who wouldn’t have honored him without his financial success, and he bought land in his hometown with the profits from managing his theaters.
The practical blunder lies in the notion cherished occasionally by young people ambitious of literary distinction, that in the pursuit of such things they must be content with the poverty to which the world dooms its greatest men; accepting their very poverty as an additional proof of their own genius. If this means that the poet is not to make money his object, it means well: no man should. But if it means either that the world is unkind, or that the poet is not to “gather up the fragments, that nothing be lost,” it means ill. Shakspere did not make haste to be rich. He neither blamed, courted, nor neglected the world: he was friendly with it. He could not have pinched and scraped; but neither did he waste or neglect his worldly substance, which is God’s gift too. Many immense fortunes have been made, not by absolute dishonesty, but in ways to which a man of genius ought to be yet more ashamed than another to condescend; but it does not therefore follow that if a man of genius will do honest work he will not make a fair livelihood by it, which for all good results of intellect and heart is better than a great fortune. But then Shakspere began with doing what he could. He did not consent to starve until the world should recognize his genius, or grumble against the blindness of the nation in not seeing what it was impossible it should see before it was fairly set forth. He began at once to supply something which the world wanted; for it wants many an honest thing. He went on the stage and acted, and so gained power to reveal the genius which he possessed; and the world, in its possible measure, was not slow to recognize it. Many a young fellow who has entered life with the one ambition of being a poet, has failed because he did not perceive that it is better to be a man than to be a poet, that it is his first duty to get an honest living by doing some honest work that he can do, and for which there is a demand, although it may not be the most pleasant employment. Time would have shown whether he was meant to be a poet or not; and if he had been no poet he would have been no beggar; and if he had turned out a poet, it would have been partly in virtue of that experience of life and truth, gained in his case in the struggle for bread, without which, gained somehow, a man may be a sweet dreamer, but can be no strong maker, no poet. In a word, here is the Englishman of genius, beginning life with nothing, and dying, not rich, but easy and honoured; and this by doing what no one else could do, writing dramas in which the outward grandeur or beauty is but an exponent of the inward worth; hiding pearls for the wise even within the jewelled play of the variegated bubbles of fancy, which he blew while he wrought, for the innocent delight of his thoughtless brothers and sisters. Wherever the rainbow of Shakspere’s genius stands, there lies, indeed, at the foot of its glorious arch, a golden key, which will open the secret doors of truth, and admit the humble seeker into the presence of Wisdom, who, having cried in the streets in vain, sits at home and waits for him who will come to find her. And Shakspere had cakes and ale, although he was virtuous.
The practical mistake comes from the idea sometimes held by young people seeking literary fame that, in chasing these dreams, they should accept the poverty that the world assigns to its greatest figures; they see their own poverty as proof of their genius. If this means that poets shouldn't prioritize money, then that’s a good point: no one should. But if it suggests that the world is cruel or that poets shouldn't "gather up the fragments, that nothing be lost," then that's a problem. Shakespeare didn’t rush to get rich. He neither complained about, sought after, nor ignored the world; he engaged with it. He couldn’t have pinched and saved, but he also didn’t squander or neglect the resources he had, which are gifts from God too. Many huge fortunes have been made not through outright dishonesty, but in ways that a talented person should feel even more ashamed to resort to than others; still, that doesn’t mean a person of talent can’t earn a decent living through honest work, which is much more fulfilling than being wealthy. Shakespeare started by doing what he could. He didn’t wait until the world acknowledged his genius or complain about the nation’s inability to see what was impossible to recognize before it was properly presented. He immediately provided something the world needed because it craves many honest things. He went on stage and acted, which gave him the opportunity to show his talent; and the world was quick to notice it, in its own way. Many young people who begin life with the sole dream of being a poet fail because they don't realize it's better to be a person than just a poet, that their first duty is to earn a living through honest work they can do and that there’s a demand for, even if it isn’t the most enjoyable job. Time would have revealed if he was meant to be a poet; and if he weren’t a poet, he wouldn’t be a beggar; and if he did become a poet, it would have been partly due to the life lessons and truths gained struggles for basic needs, which, without some form of experience, could allow a person to be a nice dreamer but not a strong creator, not a poet. In short, here is the English genius, starting life with nothing and dying not rich, but comfortable and respected; and he achieved this by doing what nobody else could, writing plays where the outward grandeur or beauty is a reflection of the inner worth; hiding gems for the wise even in the glittering play of colorful bubbles of imagination, which he crafted for the innocent enjoyment of his oblivious peers. Wherever the rainbow of Shakespeare’s genius appears, there lies at the base of its glorious arch a golden key that can unlock the hidden doors of truth, letting the humble seeker enter the presence of Wisdom, who, having called out in vain, waits at home for those willing to seek her. And Shakespeare enjoyed life’s pleasures, even while virtuous.
But what do we know about the character of Shakspere? How can we tell the inner life of a man who has uttered himself in dramas, in which of course it is impossible that he should ever speak in his own person? No doubt he may speak his own sentiments through the mouths of many of his persons; but how are we to know in what cases he does so?—At least we may assert, as a self-evident negative, that a passage treating of a wide question put into the mouth of a person despised and rebuked by the best characters in the play, is not likely to contain any cautiously formed and cherished opinion of the dramatist. At first sight this may seem almost a truism; but we have only to remind our readers that one of the passages oftenest quoted with admiration, and indeed separately printed and illuminated, is “The Seven Ages of Man,” a passage full of inhuman contempt for humanity and unbelief in its destiny, in which not one of the seven ages is allowed to pass over its poor sad stage without a sneer; and that this passage is given by Shakspere to the blasé sensualist Jaques in “As You Like it,” a man who, the good and wise Duke says, has been as vile as it is possible for man to be, so vile that it would be an additional sin in him to rebuke sin; a man who never was capable of seeing what is good in any man, and hates men’s vices because he hates themselves, seeing in them only the reflex of his own disgust. Shakspere knew better than to say that all the world is a stage, and all the men and women merely players. He had been a player himself, but only on the stage: Jaques had been a player where he ought to have been a true man. The whole of his account of human life is contradicted and exposed at once by the entrance, the very moment when he has finished his wicked burlesque, of Orlando, the young master, carrying Adam, the old servant, upon his back. The song that immediately follows, sings true: “Most friendship is feigning, most loving mere folly.” But between the all of Jaques and the most of the song, there is just the difference between earth and hell.—Of course, both from a literary and dramatic point of view, “The Seven Ages” is perfect.
But what do we actually know about Shakespeare's character? How can we understand the inner life of a man who expressed himself through dramas in which he can never speak in his own voice? Sure, he might convey his thoughts through the voices of many of his characters, but how can we know when that happens? We can at least state, as a clear negative, that a passage discussing a broad question, spoken by a character who is despised and criticized by the best characters in the play, is unlikely to reflect any well-considered and valued opinion of the playwright. At first glance, this may seem obvious, but we need to remind our readers that one often-quoted passage held in high regard, and even printed separately and highlighted, is “The Seven Ages of Man.” This passage is filled with a cruel contempt for humanity and a disbelief in its destiny, where not a single one of the seven ages is allowed to go through its sad progression without a sneer. And this passage is given by Shakespeare to the jaded sensualist Jaques in “As You Like It,” a man who, as the good and wise Duke says, has been as vile as possible—so vile that it would be an additional sin for him to rebuke sin; a man incapable of seeing anything good in anyone, who despises men's vices simply because he despises himself, seeing them only as a reflection of his own disgust. Shakespeare knew better than to claim that the whole world is a stage and all men and women merely actors. He had been an actor himself, but only on the stage; Jaques had played a part where he should have been a genuine human being. The entire account of human life he provides is immediately contradicted and exposed by the entrance, just as he finishes his vile mockery, of Orlando, the young master, carrying Adam, the old servant, on his back. The song that follows rings true: “Most friendship is feigning, most loving mere folly.” But between all of Jaques' statements and the essence of the song, there is the vast difference between earth and hell. Naturally, both from a literary and dramatic perspective, “The Seven Ages” is flawless.
Now let us make one positive statement to balance the other: that wherever we find, in the mouth of a noble character, not stock sentiments of stage virtue, but appreciation of a truth which it needs deep thought and experience united with love of truth, to discover or verify for one’s self, especially if the truth be of a sort which most men will fail not merely to recognize as a truth, but to understand at all, because the understanding of it depends on the foregoing spiritual perception—then we think we may receive the passage as an expression of the inner soul of the writer. He must have seen it before he could have said it; and to see such a truth is to love it; or rather, love of truth in the general must have preceded and enabled to the discovery of it. Such a passage is the speech of the Duke, opening the second act of the play just referred to, “As You Like it.” The lesson it contains is, that the well-being of a man cannot be secured except he partakes of the ills of life, “the penalty of Adam.” And it seems to us strange that the excellent editors of the Cambridge edition, now in the course of publication—a great boon to all students of Shakspere—should not have perceived that the original reading, that of the folios, is the right one,—
Now let’s make one positive statement to balance the other: wherever we find, in the words of a noble character, not just clichéd sentiments of staged virtue, but a genuine appreciation of a truth that requires deep thought and experience combined with a love of truth to discover or verify for oneself—especially if the truth is the kind that most people will not only fail to recognize as true but also fail to understand at all, because understanding it depends on prior spiritual perception—then we believe we can accept the passage as an expression of the writer's inner soul. He must have seen it before he could express it; to see such a truth is to love it; or rather, a love of truth in general must have come first, enabling the discovery of that truth. Such a passage is the speech of the Duke, opening the second act of the play just mentioned, “As You Like It.” The lesson it conveys is that a man's well-being cannot be secured unless he experiences the hardships of life, “the penalty of Adam.” It seems odd to us that the excellent editors of the Cambridge edition, currently being published—a great benefit to all Shakespearean students—should not have recognized that the original reading, that of the folios, is the correct one,—
“Here feel we not the penalty of Adam?”
“Do we not feel the penalty of Adam here?”
which, with the point of interrogation supplied, furnishes the true meaning of the whole passage; namely, that the penalty of Adam is just what makes the “wood more free from peril than the envious court,” teaching each “not to think of himself more highly than he ought to think.”
which, with the question mark added, provides the true meaning of the entire passage; specifically, that Adam's punishment is exactly what makes the “wood less dangerous than the jealous court,” teaching each person “not to think of himself more highly than he should.”
But Shakspere, although everywhere felt, is nowhere seen in his plays. He is too true an artist to show his own face from behind the play of life with which he fills his stage. What we can find of him there we must find by regarding the whole, and allowing the spiritual essence of the whole to find its way to our brain, and thence to our heart. The student of Shakspere becomes imbued with the idea of his character. It exhales from his writings. And when we have found the main drift of any play—the grand rounding of the whole—then by that we may interpret individual passages. It is alone in their relation to the whole that we can do them full justice, and in their relation to the whole that we discover the mind of the master.
But Shakespeare, although felt everywhere, is never seen in his plays. He is too much of an artist to reveal his own face behind the performance of life that fills his stage. What we find of him there, we must discover by looking at the whole and allowing its spiritual essence to reach our minds and then our hearts. A student of Shakespeare becomes filled with the idea of his character. It emanates from his writings. And when we grasp the main theme of any play—the grand arc of the entire piece—then we can interpret individual passages. It is only in their connection to the whole that we can fully appreciate them, and through that connection, we uncover the mind of the master.
But we have another source of more direct enlightenment as to Shakspere himself. We only say more direct, not more certain or extended enlightenment. We have one collection of poems in which he speaks in his own person and of himself. Of course we refer to his sonnets. Though these occupy, with their presentation of himself, such a small relative space, they yet admirably round and complete, to our eyes, the circle of his individuality. In them and the plays the common saying—one of the truest—that extremes meet, is verified. No man is complete in whom there are no extremes, or in whom those extremes do not meet. Now the very individuality of Shakspere, judged by his dramas alone, has been declared nonexistent; while in the sonnets he manifests some of the deepest phases of a healthy self-consciousness. We do not intend to enter into the still unsettled question as to whether these sonnets were addressed to a man or a woman. We have scarcely a doubt left on the question ourselves, as will be seen from the argument we found on our conviction. We cannot say we feel much interest in the other question, If a man, what man? A few placed at the end, arranged as they have come down to us, are beyond doubt addressed to a woman. But the difference in tone between these and the others we think very remarkable. Possibly at the time they were written—most of them early in his life, as it appears to us, although they were not published till the year 1609, when he was forty-five years of age, Meres referring to them in the year 1598, eleven years before, as known “among his private friends”—he had not known such women as he knew afterwards, and hence the true devotion of his soul is given to a friend of his own sex. Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakspere, profound and lofty to a degree unattempted by any other interpreter, we are glad to find have been done into a suitable English translation, under the superintendence of the author himself—Gervinus says somewhere in them that, as Shakspere lived and wrote, his ideal of womanhood grew nobler and purer. Certainly the woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed was neither noble nor pure. We think, in this matter at least, they record one of his early experiences.
But we have another source of more direct insight into Shakespeare himself. We only say more direct, not more certain or extensive insight. We have a collection of poems where he speaks in his own voice and about himself. Of course, we’re talking about his sonnets. Although these take up a relatively small amount of space, they brilliantly complete the picture of his individuality. In both the sonnets and the plays, the common saying—that extremes meet—is proven true. No one is complete if they lack extremes, or if those extremes don’t intersect. Now, the very nature of Shakespeare, judged only by his dramas, has been claimed to be nonexistent; meanwhile, in the sonnets, he reveals some of the deepest aspects of a healthy self-awareness. We don't intend to dive into the still-debated issue of whether these sonnets were written to a man or a woman. We hardly have any doubt on the matter ourselves, as will be clear from the argument we present based on our conviction. We can't say we're particularly interested in the other question, If a man, what man? A few sonnets placed at the end, as they’ve come down to us, are undoubtedly addressed to a woman. However, we find the difference in tone between these and the others quite striking. It’s possible that at the time they were written—most of them early in his life, as we see it, even though they weren’t published until 1609, when he was forty-five—Meres mentioned them back in 1598, eleven years earlier, as being known “among his private friends”—he hadn't met the kinds of women he would later encounter, and so his true devotion was expressed to a friend of his own gender. Gervinus, whose lectures on Shakespeare are profound and lofty in a way that no other interpreter has attempted, which we’re glad to see have been translated into suitable English with the author’s involvement—Gervinus mentions somewhere in them that, as Shakespeare lived and wrote, his ideal of womanhood became nobler and purer. Certainly, the woman to whom the last few of these sonnets are addressed was neither noble nor pure. We believe, in this matter at least, they capture one of his early experiences.
We shall briefly indicate what we find in these sonnets about the man himself, and shall commence with what is least pleasing and of least value.
We will briefly point out what we discover in these sonnets about the man himself, starting with what is least appealing and of the least value.
We must confess, then, that, probably soon after he came first to London, he, then a married man, had an intrigue with a married woman, of which there are indications that he was afterwards deeply ashamed. One little incident seems curiously traceable: that he had given her a set of tablets which his friend had given him; and the sonnet in which he excuses himself to his friend for having done so, seems to us the only piece of special pleading, and therefore ungenuine expression, in the whole. This friend, to whom the rest of the sonnets are addressed, made the acquaintance of this woman, and both were false to Shakspere. Even Shakspere could not keep the love of a worthless woman. So much the better for him; but it is a sad story at best. Yet even in this environment of evil we see the nobility of the man, and his real self. The sonnets in which he mourns his friend’s falsehood, forgives him, and even finds excuses for him, that he may not lose his own love of him, are, to our minds, amongst the most beautiful, as they are the most profound. Of these are the 33rd and 34th. Nor does he stop here, but proceeds in the following, the 35th, to comfort his friend in his grief for his offence, even accusing himself of offence in having made more excuse for his fault than the fault needed! But to leave this part of his history, which, as far as we know, stands alone, and yet cannot with truth be passed by, any more than the story of the crime of David, though in this case there is no comparison to be made between the two further than the primary fact, let us look at the one reality which, from a spiritual point of view, independently of the literary beauties of these poems, causes them to stand all but alone in literature. We mean what has been unavoidably touched upon already, the devotion of his friendship. We have said this makes the poems stand all but alone; for we ought to be better able to understand these poems of Shakspere, from the fact that in our day has appeared the only other poem which is like these, and which casts back a light upon them.
We have to admit that, probably soon after he first arrived in London, he, then a married man, had an affair with a married woman, and there are signs that he later felt a lot of shame about it. One small incident stands out: he had given her a set of tablets that a friend had given him, and the sonnet where he explains himself to his friend for doing this seems to be the only instance of him making excuses, and therefore feels insincere, in the entire work. This friend, to whom the other sonnets are directed, met this woman, and both betrayed Shakspere. Even Shakspere couldn't hold on to the love of a worthless woman. That's probably a good thing for him, but it’s still a sad story overall. Yet even in this harmful environment, we can see the nobility of the man and his true character. The sonnets where he laments his friend's betrayal, forgives him, and even makes excuses for him so he doesn’t lose his love for him, are, in our opinion, among the most beautiful and profound. These include the 33rd and 34th. He doesn't stop there; in the following sonnet, the 35th, he comforts his friend in his grief over his wrongdoing, even blaming himself for making more excuses for his friend's fault than the fault warranted! But let's move on from this part of his story, which, as far as we know, is unique, yet cannot be ignored, just like the story of David’s wrongdoing, though in this case, there’s no real comparison between the two except for the basic fact. Let’s focus on the one reality that, from a spiritual perspective, beyond the literary beauty of these poems, makes them nearly stand alone in literature. We mean the unwavering devotion of his friendship. We’ve said this makes the poems stand almost alone; for we should be better able to understand Shakspere’s poems due to the fact that in our time, the only other poem similar to these has emerged, shedding light on them.
“Yet turn thee to the doubtful shore, Where thy first form was made a man: I loved thee, spirit, and love; nor can The soul of Shakspeare love thee more.”
“Yet look towards the uncertain shore, Where your first form became a man: I loved you, spirit, and I still love; nor can Shakespeare's soul love you more.”
So sings the Poet of our day, in the loftiest of his poems—“In Memoriam”—addressing the spirit of his vanished friend. In the midst of his song arises the thought of the Poet of all time, who loved his friend too, and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, had not his love been too strong even for that death, alone ghastly, which threatened to cut the golden chain that bound them, and part them by the gulf impassable. Tennyson’s friend had never wronged him; and to the divineness of Shakspere’s love is added that of forgiveness. Such love as this between man and man is rare, and therefore to the mind which is in itself no way rare, incredible, because unintelligible. But though all the commonest things are very divine, yet divine individuality is and will be a rare thing at any given period on the earth. Faith, in its ideal sense, will always be hard to find on the earth. But perhaps this kind of affection between man and man may, as Coleridge indicates in his “Table Talk,” have been more common in the reigns of Elizabeth and James than it is now. There is a certain dread of the demonstrative in the present day, which may, perhaps, be carried into regions where it is out of place, and hinder the development of a devotion which must be real, and grand, and divine, if one man such as Shakspere or Tennyson has ever felt it. If one has felt it, humanity may claim it. And surely He who is the Son of man has verified the claim. We believe there are indeed few of us who know what to love our neighbour as ourselves means; but when we find a man here and there in the course of centuries who does, we may take this man as the prophet of coming good for his race, his prophecy being himself.
So sings the poet of our time in the highest of his poems—“In Memoriam”—speaking to the spirit of his lost friend. In the middle of his song, he thinks of the poet of all time, who also loved his friend and would have lost him in a way far worse than death, if not for a love that was stronger than that ghastly death, which threatened to sever the golden bond between them and separate them across an unbridgeable gap. Tennyson’s friend never wronged him, while Shakspere's love includes forgiveness. Such love between men is rare, making it incredible to those whose minds are not exceptional, because it is hard to understand. Yet, even the most ordinary things can be very divine, but true individuality is and will be rare at any point in history. Faith, in its ideal form, will always be difficult to find on earth. However, this type of affection between men may, as Coleridge suggests in his “Table Talk,” have been more common during the reigns of Elizabeth and James than it is today. There is a certain fear of being open in our feelings nowadays, which might lead to holding back in situations where it is inappropriate and could prevent the growth of a devotion that must be real, grand, and divine if one man, like Shakspere or Tennyson, has ever experienced it. If one person has felt that, humanity can claim it. And surely, He who is the Son of man has confirmed that claim. We believe that few of us truly understand what it means to love our neighbor as ourselves; but when we come across a man here and there over the centuries who does, we can regard him as a prophet of future goodness for his kind, with his life serving as his prophecy.
But next to the interest of knowing that a man could love so well, comes the association of this fact with his art. He who could look abroad upon men, and understand them all—who stood, as it were, in the wide-open gates of his palace, and admitted with welcome every one who came in sight—had in the inner places of that palace one chamber in which he met his friend, and in which his whole soul went forth to understand the soul of his friend. The man to whom nothing in humanity was common or unclean; in whom the most remarkable of his artistic morals is fair-play; who fills our hearts with a saintly love for Cordelia and an admiration of Sir John Falstaff the lost gentleman, mournful even in the height of our laughter; who could make an Autolycus and a Macbeth both human, and an Ariel and a Puck neither human—this is the man who loved best. And we believe that this depth of capacity for loving lay at the root of all his knowledge of men and women, and all his dramatic pre-eminence. The heart is more intelligent than the intellect. Well says the poet Matthew Raydon, who has hardly left anything behind him but the lamentation over Sir Philip Sidney in which the lines occur,—
But alongside the interest in knowing that a man could love so deeply, there's the connection of this fact to his art. He who could look out at people and understand them all—who stood, so to speak, at the wide-open gates of his palace, welcoming everyone who came into view—had in the inner parts of that palace one room where he met his friend, and in which his whole soul extended to grasp the soul of his friend. The man for whom nothing in humanity was off-limits or unclean; in whom the most notable aspect of his artistic morals is fairness; who fills our hearts with saintly love for Cordelia and admiration for Sir John Falstaff, the lost gentleman, sorrowful even in the height of our laughter; who could make Autolycus and Macbeth both relatable, and Ariel and Puck entirely magical—this is the man who loved the most. We believe that this profound capacity for love was at the core of all his understanding of men and women, and of his dramatic mastery. The heart is smarter than the intellect. As the poet Matthew Raydon rightly says, who has mostly left us with nothing but the lament for Sir Philip Sidney, in which these lines appear,—
“He that hath love and judgment too Sees more than any other do.”
“He who has both love and judgment sees more than anyone else.”
Simply, we believe that this, not this only, but this more than any other endowment, made Shakspere the artist he was, in providing him all the material of humanity to work upon, and keeping him to the true spirit of its use. Love looking forth upon strife, understood it all. Love is the true revealer of secrets, because it makes one with the object regarded.
Simply put, we believe that this, not just this alone, but this more than any other gift, made Shakespeare the artist he was by giving him all the material of humanity to work with and keeping him true to the spirit of its use. Love, observing conflict, understood everything. Love is the real revealer of secrets because it unites with the object of its focus.
“But,” say some impatient readers, “when shall we have done with Shakspere? There is no end to this writing about him.” It will be a bad day for England when we have done with Shakspere; for that will imply, along with the loss of him, that we are no longer capable of understanding him. Should that time ever come, Heaven grant the generation which does not understand him at least the grace to keep its pens off him, which will by no means follow as a necessary consequence of the non-intelligence! But the writing about Shakspere which has been hitherto so plentiful must do good just in proportion as it directs attention to him and gives aid to the understanding of him. And while the utterances of to-day pass away, the children of to-morrow are born, and require a new utterance for their fresh need from those who, having gone before, have already tasted life and Shakspere, and can give some little help to further progress than their own, by telling the following generation what they have found. Suppose that this cry had been raised last century, after good Dr. Johnson had ceased to produce to the eyes of men the facts about his own incapacity which he presumed to be criticisms of Shakspere, where would our aids be now to the understanding of the dramatist? Our own conviction is, when we reflect with how much labour we have deepened our knowledge of him, and thereby found in him the best—for the best lies not on the surface for the careless reader—our own conviction is, that not half has been done that ought to be done to help young people at least to understand the master mind of their country. Few among them can ever give the attention or work to it that we have given; but much may be done with judicious aid. And a profound knowledge of their greatest writer would do more than almost anything else to bind together as Englishmen, in a true and unselfish way, the hearts of the coming generations; for his works are our country in a convex magic mirror.
“But,” say some impatient readers, “when will we be done with Shakespeare? There seems to be no end to all this writing about him.” It will be a bad day for England when we’re finished with Shakespeare because that will mean, along with losing him, that we can no longer understand him. If that day ever comes, may heaven grant the generation that doesn’t understand him at least the grace to keep their pens away from him, which certainly won’t happen as a natural consequence of their lack of comprehension! But all the writing about Shakespeare that has been so abundant until now must be beneficial in proportion to how it focuses attention on him and helps us understand him. And while today’s thoughts fade away, tomorrow’s children are born and need new expressions for their fresh needs from those who have come before, experienced life and Shakespeare, and can provide some guidance to future progress by sharing what they have discovered. Imagine if this outcry had been made last century after good Dr. Johnson stopped revealing the facts about his own limitations, which he mistook for critiques of Shakespeare; where would our understanding of the playwright be now? Our belief, when we consider how much effort we’ve put into deepening our knowledge of him and in turn discovered in him the best—since the best doesn’t lie on the surface for the careless reader—is that not nearly enough has been done to help young people at least grasp the genius of their country’s greatest writer. Few among them will ever give the attention or effort that we have, but much can be accomplished with thoughtful support. And a deep understanding of their greatest writer would do more than almost anything else to unite the hearts of future generations as true Englishmen in a genuine and selfless way, for his works reflect our country in a convex magic mirror.
When a man finds that every time he reads a book not only does some obscurity melt away, but deeper depths, which he had not before seen, dawn upon him, he is not likely to think that the time for ceasing to write about the book has come. And certainly in Shakspere, as in all true artistic work, as in nature herself, the depths are not to be revealed utterly; while every new generation needs a new aid towards discovering itself and its own thoughts in these forms of the past. And of all that read about Shakspere there are few whom more than one or two utterances have reached. The speech or the writing must go forth to find the soil for the growth of its kernel of truth. We shall, therefore, with the full consciousness that perhaps more has been already said and written about Shakspere than about any other writer, yet venture to add to the mass by a few general remarks.
When a person realizes that every time they read a book, not only does some confusion clear up, but they also discover deeper insights they hadn’t noticed before, they’re unlikely to believe that it’s time to stop discussing the book. And certainly with Shakespeare, as with all genuine art and nature itself, the deeper meanings are never completely revealed; each new generation needs fresh ways to understand itself and its thoughts through these works from the past. Of all the discussions about Shakespeare, few have connected with more than one or two of his ideas. The expression or writing needs to reach the right audience to cultivate the growth of its core truth. Therefore, with the awareness that perhaps more has already been said and written about Shakespeare than any other author, we will still attempt to contribute to the conversation with a few general observations.
And first we would remind our readers of the marvel of the combination in Shakspere of such a high degree of two faculties, one of which is generally altogether inferior to the other: the faculties of reception and production. Rarely do we find that great receptive power, brought into operation either by reading or by observation, is combined with originality of thought. Some hungers are quite satisfied by taking in what others have thought and felt and done. By the assimilation of this food many minds grow and prosper; but other minds feed far more upon what rises from their own depths; in the answers they are compelled to provide to the questions that come unsought; in the theories they cannot help constructing for the inclusion in one whole of the various facts around them, which seem at first sight to strive with each other like the atoms of a chaos; in the examination of those impulses of hidden origin which at one time indicate a height of being far above the thinker’s present condition, at another a gulf of evil into which he may possibly fall. But in Shakspere the two powers of beholding and originating meet like the rejoining halves of a sphere. A man who thinks his own thoughts much, will often walk through London streets and see nothing. In the man who observes only, every passing object mirrors itself in its prominent peculiarities, having a kind of harmony with all the rest, but arouses no magician from the inner chamber to charm and chain its image to his purpose. In Shakspere, on the contrary, every outer form of humanity and nature spoke to that ever-moving, self-vindicating—we had almost said, and in a sense it would be true, self-generating—humanity within him. The sound of any action without him, struck in him just the chord which, in motion in him, would have produced a similar action. When anything was done, he felt as if he were doing it—perception and origination conjoining in one consciousness.
And first, we want to remind our readers of the amazing combination in Shakespeare of such a high degree of two abilities, one of which is usually much weaker than the other: the abilities of reception and production. It's rare to find a strong ability to take in information, whether through reading or observation, combined with original thinking. Some people are fully satisfied by absorbing what others have thought, felt, and done. Many minds grow and thrive by processing this information; however, other minds feed more on what comes from their own depths. They find answers to questions that come to them unexpectedly and construct theories to bring together the various facts around them, which at first seem to clash like chaotic atoms. They also explore those hidden urges that sometimes point to an elevated state of being far beyond their current condition, and at other times, to a dark pit of evil they might fall into. But in Shakespeare, the two powers of observing and creating meet like two halves of a sphere coming together. A person who thinks deeply about their own thoughts might walk through the streets of London and see nothing. Meanwhile, someone who only observes finds every passing object reflecting its striking features, creating a kind of harmony with everything else, but doesn't awaken any inner magician to capture and bind its image to a purpose. In contrast, in Shakespeare, every external aspect of humanity and nature spoke to the ever-changing, self-affirming—we might almost say, and in a sense it would be accurate, self-generating—humanity within him. The sound of any action outside struck the exact chord in him that would have produced a similar action if it had been within him. When something happened, he felt as if he were doing it himself—perception and creation merging into one consciousness.
But to this gift was united the gift of utterance, or representation. Many a man both receives and generates who, somehow, cannot represent. Nothing is more disappointing sometimes than our first experience of the artistic attempts of a man who has roused our expectations by a social display of familiarity with, and command over, the subjects of conversation. Have we not sometimes found that when such a one sought to give vital or artistic form to these thoughts, so that they might not be born and die in the same moment upon his lips, but might exist, a poor, weak, faded simulacrum alone was the result? Now Shakspere was a great talker, who enraptured the listeners, and was himself so rapt in his speech that he could scarcely come to a close; but when he was alone with his art, then and then only did he rise to the height of his great argument, and all the talk was but as the fallen mortar and stony chips lying about the walls of the great temple of his drama.
But along with this talent came the gift of expression or representation. Many people can both receive and generate ideas, yet somehow struggle to express them. It’s often disappointing to experience someone’s artistic efforts after they’ve built up our expectations with their social confidence and command over topics. Haven't we found that when such a person tries to convey their vital or artistic thoughts, so they don’t just come and go in an instant, but actually exist, the result is often a pale, weak imitation? Shakespeare was a great conversationalist who captivated listeners, so absorbed in his words that he could hardly stop; but it was only when he was alone with his craft that he truly reached the peak of his great work, and all that conversation was just like the fallen mortar and stone fragments scattered around the walls of the grand temple of his drama.
But, along with all this wealth of artistic speech, an artistic virtue of an opposite nature becomes remarkable: his reticence. How often might he not say fine things, particularly poetic things, when he does not, because it would not suit the character or the time! How many delicate points are there not in his plays which we only discover after many readings, because he will not put a single tone of success into the flow of natural utterance, to draw our attention to the triumph of the author, and jar with the all-important reality of his production! Wherever an author obtrudes his own self-importance, an unreality is the consequence, of a nature similar to that which we feel in the old moral plays, when historical and allegorical personages, such as Julius Caesar and Charity, for instance, are introduced at the same time on the same stage, acting in the same story. Shakspere never points to any stroke of his own wit or art. We may find it or not: there it is, and no matter if no one see it!
But, alongside all this rich artistic expression, a contrasting artistic quality stands out: his restraint. How often could he express beautiful thoughts, especially poetic ones, yet chooses not to because it wouldn’t fit the character or the moment! There are so many subtle details in his plays that we only notice after multiple readings, because he won’t inject any hint of his own success into the natural flow of speech, to draw our attention to the author’s achievement and disrupt the essential reality of his work! Whenever an author draws attention to their own importance, it creates a sense of unreality, similar to what we feel in the old morality plays when historical and allegorical figures, like Julius Caesar and Charity, are present together on the same stage, acting within the same story. Shakespeare never highlights any cleverness or skill of his own. We might discover it or not: it’s there, and it doesn’t matter if no one recognizes it!
Much has been disputed about the degree of consciousness of his own art possessed by Shakspere: whether he did it by a grand yet blind impulse, or whether he knew what he wanted to do, and knowingly used the means to arrive at that end. Now we cannot here enter upon the question; but we would recommend any of our readers who are interested in it not to attempt to make up their minds upon it before considering a passage in another of his poems, which may throw some light on the subject for them. It is the description of a painting, contained in “The Rape of Lucrece,” towards the end of the poem. Its very minuteness involves the expression of principles, and reveals that, in relation to an art not his own, he could hold principles of execution, and indicate perfection of finish, which, to say the least, must proceed from a general capacity for art, and therefore might find an equally conscious operation in his own peculiar province of it. For our own part, we think that his results are a perfect combination of the results of consciousness and unconsciousness; consciousness where the arrangements of the play, outside the region of inspiration, required the care of the wakeful intellect; unconsciousness where the subject itself bore him aloft on the wings of its own creative delight.
There has been a lot of debate about how aware Shakspere was of his own art: whether he created through a grand but blind instinct, or if he had a clear vision of what he wanted and intentionally used the tools to achieve that. We won't dive into that debate here, but we suggest that anyone curious about it should not form an opinion until they consider a passage from another of his poems that might shed light on the topic. It’s the description of a painting found in “The Rape of Lucrece,” near the end of the poem. The detail he provides reflects underlying principles and shows that, regarding an art form that wasn’t his own, he could hold standards of execution and demonstrate a high level of finish, which, at the very least, suggests a general artistic ability. This implies he might have had a similarly conscious approach in his own unique domain. Personally, we believe his work is an ideal blend of conscious and unconscious creation: conscious in the way the play is arranged, requiring a mindful intellect outside of inspiration; and unconscious when the subject lifted him up on the wings of its own creative joy.
There is another manifestation of his power which will astonish those who consider it. It is this: that, while he was able to go down to the simple and grand realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and while, therefore, he must rejoice most in such contemplations of human nature as find fit outlet in a “Hamlet,” a “Lear,” a “Timon,” or an “Othello,” the tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can yet, when he chooses, float on the very surface of human nature, as in “Love’s Labour’s Lost,” “The Merry Wives of Windsor,” “The Comedy of Errors,” “The Taming of the Shrew;” or he can descend half way as it were, and there remain suspended in the characters and feelings of ordinary nice people, who, interesting enough to meet in society, have neither received that development, nor are placed in those circumstances, which admit of the highest and simplest poetic treatment. In these he will bring out the ordinary noble or the ordinary vicious. Of this nature are most of his comedies, in which he gives an ideal representation of common social life, and steers perfectly clear of what in such relations and surroundings would be heroics. Look how steadily he keeps the noble-minded youth Orlando in this middle region; and look how the best comes out at last in the wayward and recalcitrant and bizarre, but honest and true natures of Beatrice and Benedick; and this without any untruth to the nature of comedy, although the circumstances border on the tragic. When he wants to give the deeper affairs of the heart, he throws the whole at once out of the social circle with its multiform restraints. As in “Hamlet” the stage on which the whole is acted is really the heart of Hamlet, so he makes his visible stage as it were, slope off into the misty infinite, with a grey, starless heaven overhead, and Hades open beneath his feet. Hence young people brought up in the country understand the tragedies far sooner than they can comprehend the comedies. It needs acquaintance with society and social ways to clear up the latter.
There’s another display of his power that will surprise those who think about it. It’s this: while he could delve into the simple and profound realities of human nature, which are all tragic; and since he must find the greatest joy in his reflections on human nature that find expression in a “Hamlet,” a “Lear,” a “Timon,” or an “Othello,” the tragedies of Doubt, Ingratitude, and Love, he can also, when he wants, skim the surface of human nature, as seen in “Love’s Labour’s Lost,” “The Merry Wives of Windsor,” “The Comedy of Errors,” and “The Taming of the Shrew.” Alternatively, he can go halfway down, so to speak, and remain suspended in the characters and feelings of ordinary nice people who, while interesting to encounter in society, have not undergone the development or found themselves in situations that allow for the highest and simplest poetic treatment. In these cases, he exposes the everyday noble or ordinary vicious traits. Most of his comedies fall into this category, where he offers an ideal depiction of common social life, completely avoiding what would typically be considered heroics in such contexts. Notice how consistently he keeps the noble-minded youth Orlando in this middle ground; and see how the best traits emerge in the wayward, recalcitrant, and bizarre, yet honest and true personalities of Beatrice and Benedick; and he does this without betraying the nature of comedy, even though the circumstances veer towards the tragic. When he wants to explore the deeper matters of the heart, he immediately takes the action out of the social sphere with its many restrictions. Just as in “Hamlet,” where the entire drama unfolds in the heart of Hamlet, he makes his visible stage slope away into the misty unknown, with a gray, starless sky above and Hades open beneath. This is why young people raised in the countryside grasp the tragedies much sooner than they can understand the comedies. It takes familiarity with society and social norms to make sense of the latter.
The remarks we have made on “Hamlet” by way of illustration, lead us to point out how Shakspere prepares, in some of his plays, a stage suitable for all the representation. In “A Midsummer Night’s Dream” the place which gives tone to the whole is a midnight wood in the first flush and youthful delight of summer. In “As You Like it” it is a daylight wood in spring, full of morning freshness, with a cold wind now and then blowing through the half-clothed boughs. In “The Tempest” it is a solitary island, circled by the mysterious sea-horizon, over which what may come who can tell?—a place where the magician may work his will, and have all nature at the beck of his superior knowledge.
The comments we've made about "Hamlet" exemplify how Shakespeare sets the stage in some of his plays. In "A Midsummer Night’s Dream," the setting is a midnight forest radiating the fresh and youthful joy of summer. In "As You Like It," it’s a sunlit forest in spring, bursting with morning freshness, occasionally disturbed by a chilly breeze weaving through the partly clad branches. In "The Tempest," it’s a deserted island, surrounded by a mysterious sea horizon, filled with possibilities— a place where the magician can exercise his power and command all of nature with his superior knowledge.
The only writer who would have had a chance of rivalling Shakspere in his own walk, if he had been born in the same period of English history, is Chaucer. He has the same gift of individualizing the general, and idealizing the portrait. But the best of the dramatic writers of Shakspere’s time, in their desire of dramatic individualization, forget the modifying multiformity belonging to individual humanity. In their anxiety to present a character, they take, as it were, a human mould, label it with a certain peculiarity, and then fill in speeches and forms according to the label. Thus the indications of character, of peculiarity, so predominate, the whole is so much of one colour, that the result resembles one of those allegorical personifications in which, as much as possible, everything human is eliminated except what belongs to the peculiarity, the personification. How different is it with Shakspere’s representations! He knows that no human being ever was like that. He makes his most peculiar characters speak very much like other people; and it is only over the whole that their peculiarities manifest themselves with indubitable plainness. The one apparent exception is Jaques, in “As You Like it.” But there we must remember that Shakspere is representing a man who so chooses to represent himself. He is a man in his humour, or his own peculiar and chosen affectation. Jaques is the writer of his own part; for with him “all the world’s a stage, and all the men and women,” himself first, “merely players.” We have his own presentation of himself, not, first of all, as he is, but as he chooses to be taken. Of course his real self does come out in it, for no man can seem altogether other than he is; and besides, the Duke, who sees quite through him, rebukes him in the manner already referred to; but it is his affectation that gives him the unnatural peculiarity of his modes and speeches. He wishes them to be such.
The only writer who could have competed with Shakespeare in his field, if he had been born in the same era of English history, is Chaucer. He shares the same ability to personalize the general and idealize a character. However, many of the best playwrights of Shakespeare's time, in their quest for dramatic individuality, lose sight of the complex nature of real human beings. In their eagerness to create a character, they essentially take a human template, label it with a specific trait, and then fill in lines and roles based on that label. As a result, the indicators of character and uniqueness dominate so much that the entire depiction resembles one of those allegorical figures where all human qualities are minimized except for the particular trait being represented. In contrast, Shakespeare’s portrayals are vastly different! He understands that no person is like that. He has his most distinctive characters speak in ways that are very similar to everyday people; only in the overall context do their uniquenesses clearly emerge. The one notable exception is Jaques in "As You Like It." But we must remember here that Shakespeare depicts a man who deliberately chooses to present himself that way. He is a man in his humour, or his own specific and chosen affectation. Jaques is the author of his own role; for him, “all the world’s a stage, and all the men and women,” starting with himself, “merely players.” We see his own portrayal of himself, not primarily as he truly is, but as he wants to be perceived. Of course, his true self does emerge in it, because no one can seem entirely different from who they are; besides, the Duke, who sees right through him, criticizes him as previously mentioned. However, it is his affectation that gives him the unnatural distinctiveness of his mannerisms and dialogue. He desires them to be that way.
There is, then, for every one of Shakspere’s characters the firm ground of humanity, upon which the weeds, as well as the flowers, glorious or fantastic, as the case may be, show themselves. His more heroic persons are the most profoundly human. Nor are his villains unhuman, although inhuman enough. Compared with Marlowe’s Jew, Shylock is a terrible man beside a dreary monster, and, as far as logic and the lex talionis go, has the best of the argument. It is the strength of human nature itself that makes crime strong. Wickedness could have no power of itself: it lives by the perverted powers of good. And so great is Shakspere’s sympathy with Shylock even, in the hard and unjust doom that overtakes him, that he dismisses him with some of the spare sympathies of the more tender-hearted of his spectators. Nowhere is the justice of genius more plain than in Shakspere’s utter freedom from party-spirit, even with regard to his own creations. Each character shall set itself forth from its own point of view, and only in the choice and scope of the whole shall the judgment of the poet be beheld. He never allows his opinion to come out to the damaging of the individual’s own self-presentation. He knows well that for the worst something can be said, and that a feeling of justice and his own right will be strong in the mind of a man who is yet swayed by perfect selfishness. Therefore the false man is not discoverable in his speech, not merely because the villain will talk as like a true man as he may, but because seldom is the villainy clear to the villain’s own mind. It is impossible for us to determine whether, in their fierce bandying of the lie, Bolingbroke or Norfolk spoke the truth. Doubtless each believed the other to be the villain that he called him. And Shakspere has no desire or need to act the historian in the decision of that question. He leaves his reader in full sympathy with the perplexity of Richard; as puzzled, in fact, as if he had been present at the interrupted combat.
Every one of Shakespeare’s characters stands firmly on the ground of humanity, where both the weeds and the flowers, whether glorious or bizarre, make their appearance. His more heroic figures are deeply human. His villains aren't devoid of humanity, though they can be quite inhuman. Compared to Marlowe’s Jew, Shylock is a strikingly tragic man next to a dreary monster, and regarding logic and the lex talionis, he holds the stronger argument. It's the force of human nature itself that gives crime its power. Wickedness has no strength on its own; it thrives on the twisted qualities of good. Shakespeare’s empathy for Shylock is so profound, even in the harsh and unjust fate that befalls him, that he leaves him with some of the scant sympathies of the more tender-hearted audience members. Shakespeare's genius shines most clearly in his complete lack of bias, even toward his own characters. Each character presents themselves from their own perspective, and the poet's judgment is revealed only through the overall choices and scope. He never lets his opinion undermine the individual’s own portrayal. He understands that for the worst of people, something can be said, and that a sense of justice and self-righteousness can be strong in someone who is also driven by pure selfishness. That’s why true villainy isn’t always clear in a villain’s speech—not just because they will try to sound like good people, but because villains often lack clarity about their own villainy. It’s impossible for us to tell if, in their heated exchange of lies, Bolingbroke or Norfolk spoke the truth. Each of them likely believed the other was the villain they accused him of being. Shakespeare isn’t interested in acting as a historian in figuring that out. He leaves his readers fully engaged in Richard's confusion, as puzzled as if they had witnessed the interrupted fight.
If every writer could write up to his own best, we should have far less to marvel at in Shakspere. It is in great measure the wealth of Shakspere’s suggestions, giving him abundance of the best to choose from, that lifts him so high above those who, having felt the inspiration of a good idea, are forced to go on writing, constructing, carpentering, with dreary handicraft, before the exhausted faculty has recovered sufficiently to generate another. And then comes in the unerring choice of the best of those suggestions. Yet if any one wishes to see what variety of the same kind of thoughts he could produce, let him examine the treatment of the same business in different plays; as, for instance, the way in which instigation to a crime is managed in “Macbeth,” where Macbeth tempts the two murderers to kill Banquo; in “King John,” when the King tempts Hubert to kill Arthur; in “The Tempest,” when Antonio tempts Sebastian to kill Alonzo; in “As You Like it,” when Oliver instigates Charles to kill Orlando; and in “Hamlet,” where Claudius urges Laertes to the murder of Hamlet.
If every writer could write to the best of their ability, we would find much less to admire in Shakespeare. It's largely the richness of Shakespeare’s ideas, giving him plenty of the best options to choose from, that elevates him far above those who, having been inspired by a good idea, must continue writing, piecing things together with tedious labor, until their creative energy is replenished enough to come up with another. And then there’s the flawless selection of the finest among those ideas. However, if someone wants to see the range of similar thoughts he could produce, they should look at how the same situation is handled in different plays; for example, the way instigation to commit a crime is portrayed in “Macbeth,” where Macbeth encourages the two murderers to kill Banquo; in “King John,” when the King persuades Hubert to kill Arthur; in “The Tempest,” when Antonio coaxes Sebastian to murder Alonzo; in “As You Like It,” when Oliver incites Charles to kill Orlando; and in “Hamlet,” where Claudius pushes Laertes toward the murder of Hamlet.
He shows no anxiety about being original. When a man is full of his work he forgets himself. In his desire to produce a good play he lays hold upon any material that offers itself. He will even take a bad play and make a good one of it. One of the most remarkable discoveries to the student of Shakspere is the hide-bound poverty of some of the stories, which, informed by his life-power; become forms of strength, richness, and grace. He does what the Spirit in “Comus” says the music he heard might do,—
He doesn't worry about being original. When someone is deeply engaged in their work, they lose track of themselves. In the pursuit of creating a great play, they grab onto any material that comes their way. They can even take a mediocre play and turn it into something good. One of the most astonishing insights for students of Shakespeare is how limited some of the stories are, which, through his creative vigor, transform into expressions of strength, richness, and beauty. He accomplishes what the Spirit in “Comus” suggests the music he heard might do,—
“create a soul Under the ribs of death;”
“create a soul Under the ribs of death;”
and then death is straightway “clothed upon.” And nowhere is the refining operation of his genius more evident than in the purification of these stories. Characters and incidents which would have been honey and nuts to Beaumont and Fletcher are, notwithstanding their dramatic recommendations, entirely remodelled by him. The fair Ophelia is, in the old tale, a common woman, and Hamlet’s mistress; while the policy of the Lady of Belmont, who in the old story occupies the place for which he invented the lovely Portia, upon which policy the whole story turns, is such that it is as unfit to set forth in our pages as it was unfit for Shakspere’s purposes of art. His noble art refuses to work upon base matter. He sees at once the capabilities of a tale, but he will not use it except he may do with it what he pleases.
and then death is immediately “clothed upon.” And nowhere is his genius’s refining process more evident than in the purification of these stories. Characters and events that would have been appealing to Beaumont and Fletcher are, despite their dramatic merits, completely reimagined by him. The beautiful Ophelia is, in the original tale, just a common woman and Hamlet’s lover; while the strategy of the Lady of Belmont, who in the original story takes the place that he created for the lovely Portia, which is the foundation of the entire narrative, is such that it is as inappropriate to present in our pages as it was unfit for Shakespeare’s artistic aims. His noble art refuses to work with low-quality material. He instantly recognizes the potential of a story, but he will not use it unless he can shape it as he wishes.
If we might here offer some assistance to the young student who wants to help himself, we would suggest that to follow, in a measure, Plutarch’s fashion of comparison, will be the most helpful guide to the understanding of the poet. Let the reader take any two characters, and putting them side by side, look first for differences, and then for resemblances between them, with the causes of each; or let him make a wider attempt, and setting two plays one over against the other, compare or contrast them, and see what will be the result. Let him, for instance, take the two characters Hamlet and Brutus, and compare their beginnings and endings, the resemblances in their characters, the differences in their conduct, the likeness and unlikeness of what was required of them, the circumstances in which action was demanded of each, the helps or hindrances each had to the working out of the problem of his life, the way in which each encounters the supernatural, or any other question that may suggest itself in reading either of the plays, ending off with the main lesson taught in each; and he will be astonished to find, if he has not already discovered it, what a rich mine of intellectual and spiritual wealth is laid open to his delighted eyes. Perhaps not the least valuable end to be so gained is, that the young Englishman, who wants to be delivered from any temptation to think himself the centre around which the universe revolves, will be aided in his endeavours after honourable humility by looking up to the man who towers, like Saul, head and shoulders above his brethren, and seeing that he is humble, may learn to leave it to the pismire to be angry, to the earwig to be conceited, and to the spider to insist on his own importance.
If we can offer some help to the young student who wants to improve himself, we suggest that following, to some extent, Plutarch's method of comparison will be the most useful guide to understanding the poet. The reader should take any two characters and, putting them side by side, first look for differences and then for similarities between them, along with the reasons for each. Alternatively, he could try a broader approach by placing two plays next to each other to compare or contrast them and see what results. For example, he might take the two characters Hamlet and Brutus and compare their beginnings and endings, the similarities in their personalities, the differences in their actions, what was expected of them, the situations in which they were required to act, the supports or obstacles each faced in solving their life’s challenges, how each interacts with the supernatural, or any other questions that come to mind while reading either play, wrapping up with the main lesson learned from each. He will be surprised to discover, if he hasn’t already realized it, what a treasure trove of intellectual and spiritual knowledge is revealed to him. Perhaps one of the most valuable outcomes is that the young Englishman, seeking to avoid thinking of himself as the center of the universe, will be motivated towards honorable humility by looking up to the man who stands out, like Saul, head and shoulders above his peers, and by seeing his humility, he may learn to let the ant be angry, the earwig be proud, and the spider insist on his own importance.
But to return to the main course of our observations. The dramas of Shakspere are so natural, that this, the greatest praise that can be given them, is the ground of one of the difficulties felt by the young student in estimating them. The very simplicity of Shakspere’s art seems to throw him out of any known groove of judgment. When he hears one say, “Look at this, and admire,” he feels inclined to rejoin, “Why, he only says in the simplest way what the thing must have been. It is as plain as daylight.” Yes, to the reader; and because Shakspere wrote it. But there were a thousand wrong ways of doing it: Shakspere took the one right way. It is he who has made it plain in art, whatever it was before in nature; and most likely the very simplicity of it in nature was scarcely observed before he saw it and represented it. And is it not the glory of art to attain this simplicity? for simplicity is the end of all things—all manners, all morals, all religion. To say that the thing could not have been done otherwise, is just to say that you forget the art in beholding its object, that you forget the mirror because you see nature reflected in the mirror. Any one can see the moon in Lord Rosse’s telescope; but who made the reflector? And let the student try to express anything in prose or in verse, in painting or in modelling, just as it is. No man knows till he has made many attempts, how hard to reach is this simplicity of art. And the greater the success, the fewer are the signs of the labour expended. Simplicity is art’s perfection.
But let's get back to the main point of our discussion. Shakespeare's plays are so natural that this, the highest praise you can give them, is also one of the challenges faced by a young student trying to assess them. The very simplicity of Shakespeare’s craft seems to pull them out of any familiar way of judging. When someone says, “Look at this, and admire,” they might feel tempted to respond, “But he’s just saying in the simplest way what it must have been like. It’s as clear as day.” Yes, it is clear to the reader, and that’s because Shakespeare wrote it. But there were a thousand wrong ways to do it: Shakespeare chose the one right way. He made it clear in art, no matter what it was like in nature before; and most likely, the very simplicity of it in nature was barely noticed until he saw it and depicted it. And isn’t the brilliance of art to achieve this simplicity? Because simplicity is the goal of everything—of all manners, all morals, all religion. To say that something couldn’t have been done differently is just to say that you’re overlooking the artistry when looking at its object, that you’re forgetting the mirror because you see nature reflected in it. Anyone can see the moon through Lord Rosse’s telescope; but who created the reflector? And let the student try to express anything in prose or verse, in painting or modeling, just as it is. No one realizes how difficult this simplicity of art is until they’ve made many attempts. And the greater the success, the fewer the signs of the effort involved. Simplicity is the perfection of art.
But so natural are all his plays, and the great tragedies to which we would now refer in particular, amongst the rest, that it may appear to some, at first sight, that Shakspere could not have constructed them after any moral plan, could have had no lesson of his own to teach in them, seeing they bear no marks of individual intent, in that they depart nowhere from, nature, the construction of the play itself going straight on like a history. The directness of his plays springs in part from the fact that it is humanity and not circumstance that Shakspere respects. Circumstance he uses only for the setting forth of humanity; and for the plot of circumstance, so much in favour with Ben Jonson, and others of his contemporaries, he cares nothing. As to their looking too natural to have any design in them, we are not of those who believe that it is unlike nature to have a design and a result. If the proof of a high aim is to be what the critics used to call poetic justice, a kind of justice that one would gladly find more of in grocers’ and linen-drapers’ shops, but can as well spare from a poem, then we must say that he has not always a high end: the wicked man is not tortured, nor is the good man smothered in bank-notes and rose-leaves. Even when he shows the outward ruin and death that comes upon Macbeth at last, it is only as an unavoidable little consequence, following in the wake of the mighty vengeance of nature, even of God, that Macbeth cannot say Amen; that Macbeth can sleep no more; that Macbeth is “cabined cribbed, confined, bound in to saucy doubts and fears;” that his very brain is a charnel-house, whence arise the ghosts of his own murders, till he envies the very dead the rest to which his hand has sent them. That immediate and eternal vengeance upon crime, and that inner reward of well-doing, never fail in nature or in Shakspere, appear as such a matter of course that they hardly look like design either in nature or in the mirror which he holds up to her. The secret is that, in the ideal, habit and design are one.
But all of his plays, especially the great tragedies we’re focusing on, feel so genuine that it might seem at first that Shakespeare couldn’t have constructed them with any moral agenda, that he had no lesson to teach, since they don’t show signs of individual intention and follow the flow of events like a historical account. The straightforwardness of his plays comes partly from the fact that he respects humanity rather than just circumstances. He only uses circumstances to highlight humanity, and he doesn’t care for the plot devices favored by Ben Jonson and other contemporaries. As for the idea that his work seems too natural to have any design, we don’t agree with those who think it’s unnatural for there to be a design and a result. If the mark of a high purpose is what critics referred to as poetic justice—a kind of justice that would be nice to see more of in everyday life but might be better off excluded from poetry—then we must say he doesn’t always aim high: the villain isn't punished, nor does the good person drown in wealth and luxury. Even when he depicts the downfall and death of Macbeth, it’s portrayed merely as an unavoidable consequence that follows the inevitable justice of nature, or even of God, where Macbeth cannot say Amen; where he can no longer sleep; where he feels trapped by doubts and fears; where his mind becomes a graveyard, haunted by the ghosts of his own killings, to the point where he envies the dead for the peace that his actions have denied him. That immediate and everlasting retribution for crime and the inner reward for doing good never fail in nature or in Shakespeare; they come across so naturally that they hardly seem like intentional design in either. The truth is, in the ideal, habit and design are one.
Most authors seem anxious to round off and finish everything in full sight. Most of Shakspere’s tragedies compel our thoughts to follow their persons across the bourn. They need, as Jean Paul says, a piece of the next world painted in to complete the picture, And this is surely nature: but it need not therefore be no design. What could be done with Hamlet, but send him into a region where he has some chance of finding his difficulties solved; where he will know that his reverence for God, which was the sole stay left him in the flood of human worthlessness, has not been in vain; that the skies are not “a foul and pestilent congregation of vapours;” that there are noble women, though his mother was false and Ophelia weak; and that there are noble men, although his uncle and Laertes were villains and his old companions traitors? If Hamlet is not to die, the whole of the play must perish under the accusation that the hero of it is left at last with only a superadded misery, a fresh demand for action, namely, to rule a worthless people, as they seem to him, when action has for him become impossible; that he has to live on, forsaken even of death, which will not come though the cup of misery is at the brim.
Most authors seem eager to wrap everything up in clear view. Most of Shakespeare’s tragedies lead us to follow their characters across the divide. They need, as Jean Paul says, a hint of the next world included to complete the picture. And this is surely natural; but it doesn’t have to mean there’s no design behind it. What could be done with Hamlet, but send him to a place where he might have a chance of resolving his struggles? Where he will know that his faith in God, which was his only support in a sea of human worthlessness, hasn’t been wasted; that the skies aren’t “a foul and pestilent congregation of vapours;” that there are noble women, even though his mother was deceitful and Ophelia fragile; and that there are noble men, despite his uncle and Laertes being villains and his old friends betraying him? If Hamlet is not meant to die, the entire play must fall under the charge that its hero is left with only a new layer of misery, a fresh demand for action—specifically, to lead a worthless people, as they appear to him, at a time when action has become impossible for him; that he has to keep living, abandoned even by death, which won’t come even though the cup of misery is overflowing.
But a high end may be gained in this world, and the vision into the world beyond so justified, as in King Lear. The passionate, impulsive, unreasoning old king certainly must have given his wicked daughters occasion enough of making the charges to which their avarice urged them. He had learned very little by his life of kingship. He was but a boy with grey hair. He had had no inner experiences. And so all the development of manhood and age has to be crowded into the few remaining weeks of his life. His own folly and blindness supply the occasion. And before the few weeks are gone, he has passed through all the stages of a fever of indignation and wrath, ending in a madness from which love redeems him; he has learned that a king is nothing if the man is nothing; that a king ought to care for those who cannot help themselves; that love has not its origin or grounds in favours flowing from royal resource and munificence, and yet that love is the one thing worth living for, which gained, it is time to die. And now that he has the experience that life can give, has become a child in simplicity of heart and judgment, he cannot lose his daughter again; who, likewise, has learned the one thing she needed, as far as her father was concerned, a little more excusing tenderness. In the same play it cannot be by chance that at its commencement Gloucester speaks with the utmost carelessness and off-hand wit about the parentage of his natural son Edmund, but finds at last that this son is his ruin.
But a high point can be reached in this world, and the insight into the world beyond is so justified, as in *King Lear*. The passionate, impulsive, unreasoning old king certainly gave his wicked daughters enough reason to act on their greed. He had learned very little from his life as a king. He was just a boy with gray hair. He had no inner experiences. So, all the growth of manhood and aging has to be crammed into the few weeks left of his life. His own foolishness and blindness create the opportunity. And before those few weeks are over, he goes through all the stages of an intense anger and rage, ending in a madness from which love saves him; he learns that a king is nothing if the man is nothing; that a king should care for those who can’t help themselves; that love doesn’t come from royal wealth and generosity, yet love is the only thing worth living for, and once gained, it’s time to die. And now that he has the experience that life can provide, he has become a child in the simplicity of heart and judgment, and he cannot lose his daughter again; she, too, has learned the one thing she needed regarding her father—a little more forgiving tenderness. In the same play, it cannot be a coincidence that at the beginning, Gloucester speaks with complete carelessness and casual wit about the parentage of his illegitimate son Edmund, but ultimately finds that this son is his downfall.
Edgar, the true son, says to Edmund, after having righteously dealt him his death-wound,—
Edgar, the real son, says to Edmund, after having just dealt him his fatal blow,—
“The gods are just, and of our pleasant vices Make instruments to scourge us: The dark and vicious place where thee he got Cost him his eyes.”
“The gods are fair, and from our enjoyable faults Create tools to punish us: The dark and wicked place where he conceived you Cost him his sight.”
To which the dying and convicted villain replies,—
To which the dying and guilty villain responds,—
“Thou hast spoken right; ‘tis true: The wheel is come full circle; I am here.”
“You’ve spoken correctly; it’s true: The wheel has completed its circle; I’m here.”
Could anything be put more plainly than the moral lesson in this?
Could anything be stated more clearly than the moral lesson in this?
It would be easy to produce examples of fine design from his comedies as well; as for instance, from “Much Ado about Nothing:” the two who are made to fall in love with each other, by being each severally assured of possessing the love of the other, Beatrice and Benedick, are shown beforehand to have a strong inclination towards each other, manifested in their continual squabbling after a good-humoured fashion; but not all this is sufficient to make them heartily in love, until they find out the nobility of each other’s character in their behaviour about the calumniated Hero; and the author takes care they shall not be married without a previous acquaintance with the trick that has been played upon them. Indeed we think the remark, that Shakspere never leaves any of his characters the same at the end of a play as he took them up at the beginning, will be found to be true. They are better or worse, wiser or more irretrievably foolish. The historical plays would illustrate the remark as well as any.
It would be easy to provide examples of great design from his comedies too; for instance, in “Much Ado about Nothing,” Beatrice and Benedick are led to fall in love with each other because they are both convinced they have the other’s love. They’re shown to have a real attraction toward each other, which is clear in their constant, good-natured bickering. However, this isn’t enough to make them truly in love until they recognize the nobility in each other's character through their actions regarding the wronged Hero. The author ensures they don’t get married without first understanding the deception that has been played on them. In fact, the observation that Shakespeare never leaves any of his characters unchanged by the end of a play, compared to how they were at the beginning, seems to hold true. They are either better or worse, wiser or more hopelessly foolish. The historical plays could illustrate this point just as well.
But of all the terrible plays we are inclined to think “Timon” the most terrible, and to doubt whether justice has been done to the finish and completeness of it. At the same time we are inclined to think that it was printed (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after Shakspere’s death) from a copy, corrected by the author, but not written fair, and containing consequent mistakes. The same account might belong to others of the plays, but more evidently perhaps belongs to the “Timon.” The idea of making the generous spendthrift, whose old idolaters had forsaken him because the idol had no more to give, into the high-priest of the Temple of Mammon, dispensing the gold which he hated and despised, that it might be a curse to the race which he had learned to hate and despise as well; and the way in which Shakspere discloses the depths of Timon’s wound, by bringing him into comparison with one who hates men by profession and humour—are as powerful as anything to be found even in Shakspere.
But out of all the awful plays, we tend to think “Timon” is the worst and question whether it has been given proper credit for its finish and completeness. At the same time, we believe it was published (first in the first folio, 1623, seven years after Shakespeare’s death) from a copy corrected by the author, but not neatly written, which led to some mistakes. This same description could apply to other plays, but it seems to fit “Timon” more clearly. The idea of turning the generous spender, whose former supporters abandoned him when he had nothing left to offer, into the high priest of the Temple of Mammon, handing out the gold he despised, so it could be a curse to the people he learned to hate as well; and the way Shakespeare reveals the depths of Timon’s wounds by comparing him to someone who hates humanity by nature—are among the most powerful elements found in Shakespeare’s works.
We are very willing to believe that “Julius Caesar” was one of his latest plays; for certainly it is the play in which he has represented a hero in the high and true sense. Brutus is this hero, of course; a hero because he will do what he sees to be right, independently of personal feeling or personal advantage. Nor does his attempt fail from any overweening or blindness, in himself. Had he known that the various papers thrown in his way, were the concoctions of Cassius, he would not have made the mistake of supposing that the Romans longed for freedom, and therefore would be ready to defend it. As it was, he attempted to liberate a people which did not feel its slavery. He failed for others, but not for himself; for his truth was such that everybody was true to him. Unlike Jaques with his seven acts of the burlesque of human life, Brutus says at the last,—
We are very willing to believe that “Julius Caesar” was one of his last plays; for it certainly showcases a hero in the true sense. Brutus is this hero, of course; a hero because he will do what he believes is right, regardless of personal feelings or benefits. His attempt doesn’t fail due to arrogance or ignorance on his part. If he had known that the various documents presented to him were created by Cassius, he wouldn’t have mistakenly thought that the Romans yearned for freedom and would be eager to defend it. Instead, he tried to free a people who didn’t even realize they were enslaved. He failed for others, but not for himself; his honesty was such that everyone was true to him. Unlike Jaques with his seven acts poking fun at human life, Brutus says at the end,—
“Countrymen, My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life, I found no man but he was true to me.”
“Countrymen, I’m so glad that throughout my life, I haven’t found anyone who wasn’t true to me.”
Of course all this is in Plutarch. But it is easy to see with what relish Shakspere takes it up, setting forth all the aids in himself and in others which Brutus had to being a hero, and thus making the representation as credible as possible.
Of course, all this is in Plutarch. But it's easy to see how much pleasure Shakespeare takes in it, showcasing all the qualities in himself and in others that Brutus had to be a hero, and thus making the portrayal as believable as possible.
We must heartily confess that no amount of genius alone will make a man a good man; that genius only shows the right way—drives no man to walk in it. But there is surely some moral scent in us to let us know whether a man only cares for good from an artistic point of view, or whether he admires and loves good. This admiration and love cannot be prominently set forth by any dramatist true to his art; but it must come out over the whole. His predilections must show themselves in the scope of his artistic life, in the things and subjects he chooses, and the way in which he represents them. Notwithstanding Uncle Toby and Maria, who will venture to say that Sterne was noble or virtuous, when he looks over the whole that he has written? But in Shakspere there is no suspicion of a cloven foot. Everywhere he is on the side of virtue and of truth. Many small arguments, with great cumulative force, might be adduced to this effect.
We must honestly admit that no amount of talent alone will make someone a good person; talent only indicates the right path— it doesn’t compel anyone to follow it. But there’s definitely some moral sense in us that helps us tell whether someone only appreciates goodness from an artistic perspective, or whether they genuinely admire and love it. This admiration and love can’t be overtly highlighted by any playwright who is true to their craft; instead, it must emerge throughout their work. Their preferences must be evident in the breadth of their artistic life, in the themes and subjects they choose, and in the way they portray them. Despite Uncle Toby and Maria, who would dare to claim that Sterne was noble or virtuous when considering all that he has written? But in Shakespeare, there’s no hint of duplicity. He consistently stands on the side of virtue and truth. Many small points, taken together, could support this idea.
For ourselves we cannot easily believe that the calmness of his art could be so unvarying except he exercised it with a good conscience; that he could have kept looking out upon the world around him with the untroubled regard necessary for seeing all things as they are, except there had been peace in his house at home; that he could have known all men as he did, and failed to know himself. We can understand the co-existence of any degree of partial or excited genius with evil ways, but we cannot understand the existence of such calm and universal genius, wrought out in his works, except in association with all that is noblest in human nature. Nor is it other than on the side of the argument for his rectitude that he never forces rectitude upon the attention of others. The strong impression left upon our minds is, that however Shakspere may have strayed in the early portion of his life in London, he was not only an upright and noble man for the main part, but a repentant man, and a man whose life was influenced by the truths of Christianity.
We find it hard to believe that the calmness in his art could be so consistent unless he practiced it with a clear conscience; that he could have kept viewing the world around him with the untroubled perspective needed to see things as they truly are, unless there was peace in his home; that he could have understood all people as he did and yet failed to understand himself. We can grasp how any level of partial or passionate genius can coexist with immoral behavior, but we struggle to comprehend the existence of such calm and universal genius, evident in his works, without it being linked to the best qualities of human nature. Moreover, it strengthens the case for his integrity that he never imposes his sense of rightness on others. The strong impression we have is that, regardless of how Shakspere may have wandered during the early years of his life in London, he was not just an upright and noble man for the most part, but also a remorseful man whose life was shaped by Christian truths.
Much is now said about a memorial to Shakspere. The best and only true memorial is no doubt that described in Milton’s poem on this very subject: the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration, expressed in the faces and forms of those absorbed in the reading of his works. But if the external monument might be such as to foster the constant reproduction of the inward monument of love and admiration, then, indeed, it might be well to raise one; and with this object in view let us venture to propose one mode which we think would favour the attainment of it.
A lot is being said now about a memorial for Shakespeare. The best and only true memorial is definitely the one described in Milton’s poem on this very topic: the living and ever-changing monument of human admiration, shown in the faces and forms of those immersed in reading his works. However, if an external monument could help promote the ongoing creation of this internal monument of love and admiration, then it might be worthwhile to build one; with this goal in mind, let's propose a way we think would help achieve it.
Let a Gothic hall of the fourteenth century be built; such a hall as would be more in the imagination of Shakspere than any of the architecture of his own time. Let all the copies that can be procured of every early edition of his works, singly or collectively, be stored in this hall. Let a copy of every other edition ever printed be procured and deposited. Let every book or treatise that can be found, good, bad, or indifferent, written about Shakspere or any of his works, be likewise collected for the Shakspere library. Let a special place be allotted to the shameless corruptions of his plays that have been produced as improvements upon them, some of which, to the disgrace of England, still partially occupy the stage instead of what Shakspere wrote. Let one department contain every work of whatever sort that tends to direct elucidation of his meaning, chiefly those of the dramatic writers who preceded him and closely followed him. Let the windows be filled with stained glass, representing the popular sports of his own time and the times of his English histories. Let a small museum be attached, containing all procurable antiquities that are referred to in his plays, along with first editions, if possible, of the best books that came out in his time, and were probably read by him. Let the whole thus as much as possible represent his time. Let a marble statue in the midst do the best that English art can accomplish for the representation of the vanished man; and let copies, if not the originals, of the several portraits be safely shrined for the occasional beholding of the multitude. Let the perpetuity of care necessary for this monument be secured by endowment; and let it be for the use of the public, by means of a reading-room fitted for the comfort of all who choose to avail themselves of these facilities for a true acquaintance with our greatest artist. Let there likewise be a simple and moderately-sized theatre attached, not for regular, but occasional use; to be employed for the representation of Shakspere’s plays only, and allowed free of expense for amateur or other representations of them for charitable purposes. But within a certain cycle of years—if, indeed, it would be too much to expect that out of the London play-goers a sufficient number would be found to justify the representation of all the plays of Shakspere once in the season—let the whole of Shakspere’s plays be acted in the best manner possible to the managers for the time being.
Let’s build a Gothic hall from the fourteenth century; a space more like what Shakespeare imagined than any architecture of his time. We should gather all available copies of every early edition of his works, whether individually or collectively, and store them in this hall. We need to acquire a copy of every other edition ever printed and deposit those as well. Let’s collect any book or article, good, bad, or mediocre, written about Shakespeare or any of his works for the Shakespeare library. We should have a designated section for the shameless distortions of his plays presented as improvements, some of which, shamefully, still occupy the stage instead of his original writings. One area should house every work that sheds light on his meaning, especially those by the playwrights who came before and after him. The windows should be filled with stained glass depicting the popular sports of his era and the times of his English histories. A small museum should be attached, containing all available artifacts mentioned in his plays, along with first editions, if possible, of the best books published during his time that he likely read. The entire place should reflect his era as much as possible. In the center, a marble statue should capture what English art can achieve to represent the remarkable man he was; and we should safely display copies, if originals aren't available, of various portraits for the public to occasionally view. We need to ensure ongoing care for this monument through an endowment, making it available for public use, with a reading room that provides comfort for anyone eager to get to know our greatest artist. Additionally, there should be a simple, moderately sized theater attached, used not regularly, but occasionally, specifically for the performance of Shakespeare’s plays only, and offered at no cost for amateur or other charitable productions. Over a certain number of years—if it's not too much to expect that a sufficient number of London theatergoers can be found to justify staging all of Shakespeare's plays once per season—we should ensure that every play of Shakespeare is performed in the best manner possible by the managers at that time.
The very existence of such a theatre would be a noble protest of the highest kind against the sort of play, chiefly translated and adapted from the French, which infests our boards, the low tone of which, even where it is not decidedly immoral, does more harm than any amount of the rough, honest plain-spokenness of Shakspere, as judged by our more fastidious, if not always purer manners. The representation of such plays forms the real ground of objection to theatre-going. We believe that other objections, which may be equally urged against large assemblies of any sort, are not really grounded upon such an amount of objectionable fact as good people often suppose. At all events it is not against the drama itself, but its concomitants, its avoidable concomitants, that such objections are, or ought to be, felt and directed. The dramatic impulse, as well as all other impulses of our nature, are from the Maker.
The existence of such a theater would be a powerful protest against the kind of plays, mostly translated and adapted from the French, that fill our stages. Even when these plays aren't explicitly immoral, their low quality does more damage than the straightforward honesty of Shakespeare, as judged by our more selective, if not always purer, tastes. The performance of these plays is the main reason people object to going to the theater. We think other objections, which could also be raised against large gatherings of any kind, aren't actually based on as many problematic facts as good people often believe. In any case, it's not against drama itself but its unnecessary aspects that these objections should be aimed. The urge to create and perform, like all other impulses in our nature, comes from our Creator.
A monument like this would help to change a blind enthusiasm and a dilettante-talk into knowledge, reverence, and study; and surely this would be the true way to honour the memory of the man who appeals to posterity by no mighty deeds of worldly prowess, but has left behind him food for heart, brain, and conscience, on which the generations will feed till the end of time. It would be the one true and natural mode of perpetuating his fame in kind; helping him to do more of that for which he was born, and because of which we humbly desire to do him honour, as the years flow farther away from the time when, at the age of fifty-two, he left the world a richer legacy of the results of intellectual labour than any other labourer in literature has ever done. It would be to raise a monument to his mind more than to his person.
A monument like this would help turn blind enthusiasm and casual chatter into knowledge, respect, and study; and surely this would be the best way to honor the memory of a man who connects with future generations not through great acts of worldly success, but by leaving behind insights for the heart, mind, and conscience, which generations will draw from until the end of time. It would be the only true and natural way to preserve his legacy in spirit, allowing him to continue doing what he was meant to do, and for which we humbly want to pay tribute, as the years drift further from the time when, at the age of fifty-two, he left the world a richer legacy of intellectual contributions than any other writer has ever achieved. It would celebrate his mind more than his person.
But to honour Shakspere in the best way we must not gaze upon some grand memorial of his fame, we must not talk largely of his wonderful doings, we must not even behold the representation of his works on the stage, invaluable aid as that is to the right understanding of what he has written; but we must, by close, silent, patient study, enter into an understanding with the spirit of the departed poet-sage, and thus let his own words be the necromantic spell that raises the dead, and brings us into communion with that man who knew what was in men more than any other mere man ever did. Well was it for Shakspere that he was humble; else on what a desolate pinnacle of companionless solitude must he have stood! Where was he to find his peers? To most thoughtful minds it is a terrible fancy to suppose that there were no greater human being than themselves. From the terror of such a truth Shakspere’s love for men preserved him. He did not think about himself so much as he thought about them. Had he been a self-student alone, or chiefly, could he ever have written those dramas? We close with the repetition of this truth: that the love of our kind is the one key to the knowledge of humanity and of ourselves. And have we not sacred authority for concluding that he who loves his brother is the more able and the more likely to love Him who made him and his brother also, and then told them that love is the fulfilling of the law?
But to honor Shakespeare in the best way, we shouldn't just look at some grand memorial of his fame, we shouldn't talk a lot about his amazing achievements, and we shouldn't even just see his works performed on stage, valuable as that is for truly understanding what he wrote. Instead, we should take the time for close, quiet, and patient study to connect with the spirit of the great poet, allowing his own words to be the magical incantation that brings us closer to him and helps us connect with a man who understood people better than anyone else ever could. It was fortunate for Shakespeare that he was humble; otherwise, he might have found himself standing on a lonely peak without any companions. Where would he find his equals? For thoughtful minds, it’s a daunting thought to believe that there are no greater humans than themselves. Shakespeare’s love for people protected him from the fear of such a truth. He didn't focus so much on himself as he did on others. If he had only studied himself, could he have ever written those plays? We end by repeating this truth: that love for our fellow humans is the key to understanding humanity and ourselves. And don't we have a sacred reason to believe that those who love their neighbors are more likely to love the one who created them both, and who told them that love is the fulfillment of the law?
THE ART OF SHAKSPERE, AS REVEALED BY HIMSELF.
[Footnote: 1863.]
[Footnote: 1863.]
Who taught you this? I learn’d it out of women’s faces.
Who taught you this? I learned it from women's faces.
Winter’s Tale, Act ii. scene 1.
Winter’s Tale, Act 2, Scene 1.
One occasionally hears the remark, that the commentators upon Shakspere find far more in Shakspere than Shakspere ever intended to express. Taking this assertion as it stands, it may be freely granted, not only of Shakspere, but of every writer of genius. But if it be intended by it, that nothing can exist in any work of art beyond what the writer was conscious of while in the act of producing it, so much of its scope is false.
One sometimes hears the comment that the commentators on Shakespeare find much more in his work than he ever meant to express. If we take this claim at face value, it can be accepted, not just for Shakespeare, but for every talented writer. However, if it suggests that nothing can exist in any piece of art beyond what the writer was aware of while creating it, that idea is fundamentally incorrect.
No artist can have such a claim to the high title of creator, as that he invents for himself the forms, by means of which he produces his new result; and all the forms of man and nature which he modifies and combines to make a new region in his world of art, have their own original life and meaning. The laws likewise of their various combinations are natural laws, harmonious with each other. While, therefore, the artist employs many or few of their original aspects for his immediate purpose, he does not and cannot thereby deprive them of the many more which are essential to their vitality, and the vitality likewise of his presentation of them, although they form only the background from which his peculiar use of them stands out. The objects presented must therefore fall, to the eye of the observant reader, into many different combinations and harmonies of operation and result, which are indubitably there, whether the writer saw them or not. These latent combinations and relations will be numerous and true, in proportion to the scope and the truth of the representation; and the greater the number of meanings, harmonious with each other, which any work of art presents, the greater claim it has to be considered a work of genius. It must, therefore, be granted, and that joyfully, that there may be meanings in Shakspere’s writings which Shakspere himself did not see, and to which therefore his art, as art, does not point.
No artist can truly claim the high title of creator simply by inventing the forms through which they produce something new; all the forms of man and nature that they alter and combine to create a new realm in their art have their own original life and significance. The laws governing their various combinations are also natural laws that work harmoniously together. Thus, while the artist may use many or just a few of their original aspects for their immediate purpose, they do not and cannot strip them of the many other aspects essential to their vitality, nor to the vitality of the artist’s presentation of them, even if these aspects only serve as the backdrop against which the artist's specific use stands out. The objects presented must, therefore, appear to the observant reader in numerous different combinations and harmonies of operation and result, which undeniably exist, whether the writer recognized them or not. These hidden combinations and relationships will be abundant and accurate, depending on the breadth and truth of the representation; and the more meanings that are harmonious with each other that any artwork presents, the stronger its claim to be considered a work of genius. It must, therefore, be acknowledged—and joyfully so—that there may be meanings in Shakespeare’s writings that he himself did not perceive, and to which his art, as art, does not point.
But the probability, notwithstanding, must surely be allowed as well, that, in great artists, the amount of conscious art will bear some proportion to the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic light will bear a true relation to the hidden fire of the globe; so that it will not seem likely that, in such a writer as Shakspere, we should find many indications of present and operative art, of which he was himself unaware. Some truths may be revealed through him, which he himself knew only potentially; but it is not likely that marks of work, bearing upon the results of the play, should be fortuitous, or that the work thus indicated should be unconscious work. A stroke of the mallet may be more effective than the sculptor had hoped; but it was intended. In the drama it is easier to discover individual marks of the chisel, than in the marble whence all signs of such are removed: in the drama the lines themselves fall into the general finish, without necessary obliteration as lines: Still, the reader cannot help being fearful, lest, not as regards truth only, but as regards art as well, he be sometimes clothing the idol of his intellect with the weavings of his fancy. My conviction is, that it is the very consummateness of Shakspere’s art, that exposes his work to the doubt that springs from loving anxiety for his honour; the dramatist, like the sculptor, avoiding every avoidable hint of the process, in order to render the result a vital whole. But, fortunately, we are not left to argue entirely from probabilities. He has himself given us a peep into his studio—let me call it workshop, as more comprehensive.
But we must recognize that there’s a chance that, in great artists, the level of conscious craftsmanship correlates with the amount of unconscious truth: the visible volcanic light reflects the hidden fire of the earth; so it seems unlikely that, in a writer like Shakespeare, we would find many signs of present and active art that he was unaware of. Some truths may come through him that he only knew in potential; however, it’s improbable that the efforts reflected in the results of the play should be random, or that the work indicated should be unconscious. A blow from the mallet may be more effective than the sculptor intended; but it was intentional. In drama, it’s easier to identify individual touches than in the marble where all such signs are erased: in drama, the lines naturally integrate into the overall finish without needing to be obscured as lines. Still, the reader might worry that, concerning both truth and art, they might sometimes be dressing the idol of their intellect with their own imagination. I believe that the perfection of Shakespeare’s art makes his work susceptible to doubt that arises from a loving concern for his reputation; the dramatist, like the sculptor, avoids any unnecessary signs of the process to make the result a cohesive whole. Fortunately, we aren't left to speculate entirely based on probabilities. He has given us a glimpse into his studio—let me call it workshop, as it is more inclusive.
It is not, of course, in the shape of literary criticism, that we should expect to meet such a revelation; for to use art even consciously, and to regard it as an object of contemplation, or to theorize about it, are two very different mental operations. The productive and critical faculties are rarely found in equal combination; and even where they are, they cannot operate equally in regard to the same object. There is a perfect satisfaction in producing, which does not demand a re-presentation to the critical faculty. In other words, the criticism which a great writer brings to bear upon his own work, is from within, regarding it upon the hidden side, namely, in relation to his own idea; whereas criticism, commonly understood, has reference to the side turned to the public gaze. Neither could we expect one so prolific as Shakspere to find time for the criticism of the works of other men, except in such moments of relaxation as those in which the friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat silent beneath the flow of his wisdom and humour, or made the street ring with the overflow of their own enjoyment.
It’s not, of course, in the form of literary criticism that we should expect to encounter such a revelation; using art, even consciously, and viewing it as something to contemplate, or thinking about it theoretically, are two very different mental processes. The creative and critical abilities are rarely found in equal measure; and even when they are, they can't function equally when it comes to the same subject. There’s a complete satisfaction in creating that doesn’t require re-examining it from a critical perspective. In other words, the critique a great writer applies to their own work comes from within, looking at it from the unseen side, specifically in relation to their own idea; whereas criticism, as it’s commonly understood, focuses on the side that is presented to the public. We also shouldn’t expect someone as prolific as Shakespeare to find time to critique the works of others, except during those moments of leisure when friends at the Mermaid Tavern sat quietly, soaking in his wisdom and humor, or when they filled the street with the laughter of their own enjoyment.
But if the artist proceed to speculate upon the nature or productions of another art than his own, we may then expect the principles upon which he operates in his own, to take outward and visible form—a form modified by the difference of the art to which he now applies them. In one of Shakspere’s poems, we have the description of an imagined production of a sister-art—that of Painting—a description so brilliant that the light reflected from the poet-picture illumines the art of the Poet himself, revealing the principles which he held with regard to representative art generally, and suggesting many thoughts with regard to detail and harmony, finish, pregnancy, and scope. This description is found in “The Rape of Lucrece.” Apology will hardly be necessary for making a long quotation, seeing that, besides the convenience it will afford of easy reference to the ground of my argument, one of the greatest helps which even the artist can give to us, is to isolate peculiar beauties, and so compel us to perceive them.
But if the artist starts to think about the nature or creations of a different art than their own, we can expect the principles they use in their own work to take a visible form—one that is shaped by the different art they're now exploring. In one of Shakespeare’s poems, there’s a description of an imagined work from a sister art—that of painting—a description so vivid that the light reflected from the poet’s picture shines a light on the art of the poet himself, revealing the principles he believed in regarding representative art in general, and suggesting many ideas about detail, harmony, completeness, richness, and scope. This description can be found in “The Rape of Lucrece.” I don’t think it's necessary to apologize for including a long quote, since it will make it easier to refer back to the basis of my argument. One of the greatest services an artist can provide us is to highlight unique beauties, compelling us to notice them.
Lucrece has sent a messenger to beg the immediate presence of her husband. Awaiting his return, and worn out with weeping, she looks about for some variation of her misery.
Lucrece has sent a messenger to urgently summon her husband. While waiting for his return and exhausted from crying, she searches for some change in her suffering.
1. At last she calls to mind where hangs a piece Of skilful painting, made for Priam’s Troy; Before the which is drawn the power of Greece, For Helen’s rape the city to destroy, Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with annoy; Which the conceited painter drew so proud, As heaven, it seemed, to kiss the turrets, bowed. 2. A thousand lamentable objects there, In scorn of Nature, Art gave lifeless life: Many a dry drop seemed a weeping tear, Shed for the slaughtered husband by the wife; The red blood reeked, to show the painter’s strife. And dying eyes gleamed forth their ashy lights, Like dying coals burnt out in tedious nights. 3. There might you see the labouring pioneer Begrimed with sweat, and smeared all with dust; And, from the towers of Troy there would appear The very eyes of men through loopholes thrust, Gazing upon the Greeks with little lust: Such sweet observance in this work was had, That one might see those far-off eyes look sad. 4. In great commanders, grace and majesty You might behold, triumphing in their faces; In youth, quick bearing and dexterity; And here and there the painter interlaces Pale cowards, marching on with trembling paces, Which heartless peasants did so well resemble, That one would swear he saw them quake and tremble. 5. In Ajax and Ulysses, O what art Of physiognomy might one behold! The face of either ciphered either’s heart; Their face their manners most expressly told: In Ajax’ eyes blunt rage and rigour rolled; But the mild glance that sly Ulysses lent Showed deep regard, and smiling government. 6. There pleading might you see grave Nestor stand, As ‘twere encouraging the Greeks to fight; Making such sober action with his hand, That it beguiled attention, charmed the sight; In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white, Wagged up and down, and from his lips did fly Thin winding breath, which purled up to the sky. 7. About him were a press of gaping faces, Which seemed to swallow up his sound advice; All jointly listening, but with several graces, As if some mermaid did their ears entice; Some high, some low, the painter was so nice. The scalps of many, almost hid behind, To jump up higher seemed, to mock the mind. 8. Here one man’s hand leaned on another’s head, His nose being shadowed by his neighbour’s ear; Here one, being thronged, bears back, all bollen and red; Another, smothered, seems to pelt and swear; And in their rage such signs of rage they bear, As, but for loss of Nestor’s golden words, It seemed they would debate with angry swords. 9. For much imaginary work was there; Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind, That for Achilles’ image stood his spear, Griped in an armed hand; himself behind Was left unseen, save to the eye of mind: A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head, Stood for the whole to be imagined. 10. And, from the walls of strong-besieged Troy, When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched to field, Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy To see their youthful sons bright weapons wield, And to their hope they such odd action yield; That through their light joy seemed to appear, Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear. 11. And from the strond of Dardan, where they fought, To Simois’ reedy banks, the red blood ran; Whose waves to imitate the battle sought, With swelling ridges; and their ranks began To break upon the galled shore, and then Retire again, till, meeting greater ranks, They join, and shoot their foam at Simois’ banks.
1. At last she remembers where a piece hangs Of skillful painting, made for Priam’s Troy; Before which the power of Greece is drawn, To destroy the city for Helen’s abduction, Threatening cloud-kissing Ilion with trouble; Which the arrogant painter crafted so proudly, As if heaven itself, bowed low, kissed the towers. 2. There were a thousand sorrowful sights, In mockery of Nature, Art gave lifeless life: Many a dry drop looked like a weeping tear, Shed for the husband slaughtered by his wife; The red blood steamed to show the painter’s struggle. And dying eyes glimmered with ashy light, Like dying coals burnt out in endless nights. 3. There you could see the hardworking laborer, Covered in sweat and smeared with dust; And from the towers of Troy, there appeared The very eyes of men peering through loopholes, Gazing at the Greeks with little desire: Such sweet detail was in this work, That one could see those distant eyes looking sad. 4. In great commanders, you could see grace and majesty Triumphing on their faces; In youth, quick movement and skill; And here and there the painter wove in Pale cowards, marching with trembling steps, Which heartless peasants resembled so well, That one might swear they looked like they were quaking. 5. In Ajax and Ulysses, oh, what artistry Of expression could one see! The face of each revealed the heart of the other; Their faces expressed their manners so clearly: In Ajax’s eyes, blunt rage and strictness rolled; But the gentle look that sly Ulysses showed Revealed deep thought and a charming demeanor. 6. There you might see wise Nestor standing, As if encouraging the Greeks to fight; Making such serious gestures with his hand, That it captivated attention, charmed the eye; In speech, it seemed his beard, all silver-white, Waved up and down, and from his lips flew Thin winding breaths that spiraled up to the sky. 7. Around him was a crowd of gaping faces, Seeming to absorb his wise advice; All listening together, but with different expressions, As if a mermaid had enchanted their ears; Some high, some low, the painter was so skilled. The heads of many almost hid behind, As if to jump higher was to mock the mind. 8. Here one man’s hand rested on another’s head, His nose overshadowed by his neighbor’s ear; Here someone, feeling crowded, looks red and swollen; Another, smothered, seems to shout and curse; And in their rage, such signs of anger they show, That, but for Nestor’s golden words, It seemed they would argue with angry swords. 9. For much imagined work was here; Deceptive conceit was so compact and kind, That for Achilles’ likeness stood his spear, Gripped in an armed hand; he himself was left unseen, Save to the eye of the mind: A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head, Stood for the whole to be imagined. 10. And from the walls of besieged Troy, When their brave hope, bold Hector, marched out, Stood many Trojan mothers, sharing joy To see their young sons wield bright weapons, And to their hope they offered such odd actions, That through their joyful light seemed to show, Like bright things stained, a kind of heavy fear. 11. And from the shore of Dardan, where they fought, To Simois’ grassy banks, the red blood ran; Whose waves tried to imitate the battle, With swelling waves; and their lines began To crash upon the battered shore, and then Retreat again, till, meeting greater lines, They joined, and shot their foam at Simois’ banks.
The oftener I read these verses, amongst the very earliest compositions of Shakspere, I am the more impressed with the carefulness with which he represents the work of the picture—“shows the strife of the painter.” The most natural thought to follow in sequence is: How like his own art!
The more I read these lines, some of Shakespeare's earliest works, the more I appreciate how carefully he portrays the work of the painter—"shows the struggle of the artist." The most obvious thought that comes to mind is: How similar it is to his own craft!
The scope and variety of the whole picture, in which mass is effected by the accumulation of individuality; in which, on the one hand, Troy stands as the impersonation of the aim and object of the whole; and on the other, the Simois flows in foaming rivalry of the strife of men,—the pictorial form of that sympathy of nature with human effort and passion, which he so often introduces in his plays,—is like nothing else so much as one of the works of his own art. But to take a portion as a more condensed representation of his art in combining all varieties into one harmonious whole: his genius is like the oratory of Nestor as described by its effects in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every variety of attitude and countenance and action is harmonized by the influence which is at once the occasion of debate, and the charm which restrains by the fear of its own loss: the eloquence and the listening form the one bond of the unruly mass. So the dramatic genius that harmonizes his play, is visible only in its effects; so ethereal in its own essence that it refuses to be submitted to the analysis of the ruder intellect, it is like the words of Nestor, for which in the picture there stands but “thin winding breath which purled up to the sky.” Take, for an instance of this, the reconciling power by which, in the mysterious midnight of the summer-wood, he brings together in one harmony the graceful passions of childish elves, and the fierce passions of men and women, with the ludicrous reflection of those passions in the little convex mirror of the artisan’s drama; while the mischievous Puck revels in things that fall out preposterously, and the Elf-Queen is in love with ass-headed Bottom, from the hollows of whose long hairy ears—strange bouquet-holders—bloom and breathe the musk-roses, the characteristic odour-founts of the play; and the philosophy of the unbelieving Theseus, with the candour of Hippolyta, lifts the whole into relation with the realities of human life. Or take, as another instance, the pretended madman Edgar, the court-fool, and the rugged old king going grandly mad, sheltered in one hut, and lapped in the roar of a thunderstorm.
The scope and variety of the entire picture, where mass comes from the buildup of individuality; where, on one hand, Troy symbolizes the goal and purpose of the whole story; and on the other, the Simois flows in fierce competition with the struggles of people—this visual representation of nature's connection to human effort and emotion, which he frequently incorporates in his plays, is unlike anything else, resembling one of his own artistic creations. But to take a part as a more compact representation of his skill in combining different elements into one cohesive whole: his talent is reminiscent of Nestor's oratory as described by its impact in the seventh and eighth stanzas. Every variety of stance, expression, and action is unified by the influence that both sparks debate and charms through the fear of losing it: the eloquence and receptive nature create the single bond of the unruly crowd. Likewise, the dramatic genius that unifies his play is only evident through its effects; so ethereal in its essence that it resists the scrutiny of the coarser intellect, it mirrors the words of Nestor, which in the depiction stand as nothing more than “thin winding breath that curled up to the sky.” For instance, consider the reconciling power by which, in the mysterious twilight of a summer forest, he brings together the graceful emotions of playful elves and the intense emotions of men and women, along with the amusing reflection of those emotions in the small convex mirror of the artisan’s drama; while the mischievous Puck revels in absurd occurrences, and the Elf-Queen falls in love with the ass-headed Bottom, from the depths of whose long, hairy ears—strange bouquet-holders—bloom and release the musk-roses, the distinctive fragrance sources of the play; and the skepticism of Theseus, coupled with Hippolyta’s honesty, connects the whole with the realities of human life. Or consider, as another example, the feigned madman Edgar, the court-jester, and the rugged old king descending into madness, sheltered in one hut, enveloped in the thunderstorm's roar.
My object, then, in respect to this poem, is to produce, from many instances, a few examples of the metamorphosis of such excellences as he describes in the picture, into the corresponding forms of the drama; in the hope that it will not then be necessary to urge the probability that the presence of those artistic virtues in his own practice, upon which he expatiates in his representation of another man’s art, were accompanied by the corresponding consciousness—that, namely, of the artist as differing from that of the critic, its objects being regarded from the concave side of the hammered relief. If this probability be granted, I would, from it, advance to a higher and far more important conclusion—how unlikely it is that if the writer was conscious of such fitnesses, he should be unconscious of those grand embodiments of truth, which are indubitably present in his plays, whether he knew it or not. This portion of my argument will be strengthened by an instance to show that Shakspere was himself quite at home in the contemplation of such truths.
My goal with this poem is to take several examples and illustrate how the qualities he describes in the picture transform into the corresponding elements of drama. I hope to show that it’s unnecessary to argue that the artistic virtues he highlights in another person's work were also present in his own practice, alongside the awareness that the artist's perspective differs from that of the critic, viewing their subjects from the concave side of the hammered relief. If we accept this possibility, I want to move towards a more significant conclusion—how unlikely it is that if the writer was aware of such appropriateness, he would also be unaware of the profound representations of truth that undoubtedly exist in his plays, regardless of whether he recognized them or not. This part of my argument will be backed up by an example demonstrating that Shakespeare was indeed very comfortable in considering such truths.
Let me adduce, then, some of those corresponding embodiments in words instead of in forms; in which colours yield to tones, lines to phrases. I will begin with the lowest kind, in which the art has to do with matters so small, that it is difficult to believe that unconscious art could have any relation to them. They can hardly have proceeded directly from the great inspiration of the whole. Their very minuteness is an argument for their presence to the poet’s consciousness; while belonging, as they do, only to the construction of the play, no such independent existence can be accorded to them, as to truths, which, being in themselves realities, are there, whether Shakspere saw them or not. If he did not intend them, the most that can be said for them is, that such is the naturalness of Shakspere’s representations, that there is room in his plays, as in life, for those wonderful coincidences which are reducible to no law.
Let me present some of those corresponding expressions in words instead of forms; where colors become tones and lines turn into phrases. I'll start with the simplest kind, where the art deals with details so small that it’s hard to believe that unconscious art could be related to them. They probably didn’t come directly from the grand inspiration of the whole. Their very smallness suggests they are present in the poet’s awareness; while they only belong to the construction of the play, they can’t have an independent existence like truths, which, being real on their own, exist whether Shakespeare noticed them or not. If he didn’t intend them, then the most that can be said is that the naturalness of Shakespeare’s representations allows for those remarkable coincidences in his plays, just like in life, that can’t be explained by any rule.
Perhaps every one of the examples I adduce will be found open to dispute. This is a kind in which direct proof can have no share; nor should I have dared thus to combine them in argument, but for the ninth stanza of those quoted above, to which I beg my readers to revert. Its imaginary work means—work hinted at, and then left to the imagination of the reader. Of course, in dramatic representation, such work must exist on a great scale; but the minute particularization of the “conceit deceitful” in the rest of the stanza, will surely justify us in thinking it possible that Shakspere intended many, if not all, of the little fitnesses which a careful reader discovers in his plays. That such are not oftener discovered comes from this: that, like life itself, he so blends into vital beauty, that there are no salient points. To use a homely simile: he is not like the barn-door fowl, that always runs out cackling when she has laid an egg; and often when she has not. In the tone of an ordinary drama, you may know when something is coming; and the tone itself declares—I have done it. But Shakspere will not spoil his art to show his art. It is there, and does its part: that is enough. If you can discover it, good and well; if not, pass on, and take what you can find. He can afford not to be fathomed for every little pearl that lies at the bottom of his ocean. If I succeed in showing that such art may exist where it is not readily discovered, this may give some additional probability to its existence in places where it is harder to isolate and define.
Maybe every one of the examples I mention will be open to debate. This is a kind where direct proof doesn’t apply; I wouldn’t have dared to combine them in my argument if not for the ninth stanza of those quoted above, which I ask my readers to revisit. Its imaginary work refers to work that is suggested and then left to the reader's imagination. Of course, in a dramatic representation, such work must exist on a grand scale; but the detailed reference to the “conceit deceitful” in the rest of the stanza surely justifies the belief that Shakespeare intended many, if not all, of the little nuances that a careful reader finds in his plays. The fact that they aren’t discovered more often is because, like life itself, he blends them into vital beauty, leaving no standout points. To use a simple comparison: he is not like a barnyard hen that always runs out cackling after laying an egg; and often even when she hasn’t. In the tone of a typical drama, you can usually tell when something is about to happen; that tone itself announces—I have done it. But Shakespeare won’t compromise his art to showcase his art. It exists and fulfills its role: that’s enough. If you can notice it, great; if not, move on and take what you can find. He doesn’t need to be understood for every little gem that lies at the bottom of his ocean. If I can show that such art can exist even when it isn’t easily found, this might add some extra credibility to its presence in places where it’s even harder to isolate and define.
To produce a few instances, then:
To give a few examples, then:
In “Much Ado about Nothing,” seeing the very nature of the play is expressed in its name, is it not likely that Shakspere named the two constables, Dogberry (a poisonous berry) and Verjuice (the juice of crab-apples); those names having absolutely nothing to do with the stupid innocuousness of their characters, and so corresponding to their way of turning things upside down, and saying the very opposite of what they mean?
In “Much Ado about Nothing,” the title itself reflects the essence of the play, so isn't it probable that Shakespeare named the two constables, Dogberry (a poisonous berry) and Verjuice (the juice of crab-apples); those names have nothing to do with the harmless foolishness of their characters, which matches their tendency to mix things up and say the exact opposite of what they really mean?
In the same play we find Margaret objecting to her mistress’s wearing a certain rebato (a large plaited ruff), on the morning of her wedding: may not this be intended to relate to the fact that Margaret had dressed in her mistress’s clothes the night before? She might have rumpled or soiled it, and so feared discovery.
In the same play, we see Margaret complaining about her mistress wearing a particular rebato (a large plaited ruff) on the morning of her wedding. Could this be connected to the fact that Margaret wore her mistress’s clothes the night before? She might have wrinkled or dirtied it and was worried about being found out.
In “King Henry IV.,” Part I., we find, in the last scene, that the Prince kills Hotspur. This is not recorded in history: the conqueror of Percy is unknown. Had it been a fact, history would certainly have recorded it; and the silence of history in regard to a deed of such mark, is equivalent to its contradiction. But Shakspere requires, for his play’s sake, to identify the slayer of Hotspur with his rival the Prince. Yet Shakspere will not contradict history, even in its silence. What is he to do? He will account for history not knowing the fact.—Falstaff claiming the honour, the Prince says to him:
In “King Henry IV, Part I,” we see in the last scene that the Prince kills Hotspur. This isn’t recorded in history; the victor over Percy remains unknown. If it had actually happened, history would definitely have noted it; the absence of it in historical records regarding such a significant event is as good as a denial. However, Shakespeare needs to link the killer of Hotspur to the Prince for the sake of his play. Still, he doesn’t want to contradict history, even through its silence. So, what should he do? He will explain why history doesn’t recognize this fact. When Falstaff claims the honor, the Prince says to him:
“For my part, if a lie may do thee grace, I’ll gild it with the happiest terms I have;”
“For me, if a lie could make you look good, I'll dress it up with the best words I've got;”
revealing thus the magnificence of his own character, in his readiness, for the sake of his friend, to part with his chief renown. But the Historic Muse could not believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed Hotspur, and therefore she would not record the claim.
revealing the greatness of his character in his willingness, for his friend's sake, to give up his own glory. But the Historical Muse couldn't believe that fat Jack Falstaff had killed Hotspur, so she wouldn't acknowledge the claim.
In the second part of the same play, act i. scene 2, we find Falstaff toweringly indignant with Mr. Dombledon, the silk mercer, that he will stand upon security with a gentleman for a short cloak and slops of satin. In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that Sir John is going to dine with Master Smooth, the silkman. Foiled with Mr. Dombledon, he has already made himself so agreeable to Master Smooth, that he is “indited to dinner” with him. This is, by the bye, as to the action of the play; but as to the character of Sir John, is it not
In the second part of the same play, act i, scene 2, we see Falstaff extremely angry with Mr. Dombledon, the silk merchant, because he insists on securing a gentleman for a short cloak and satin pants. In the first scene of the second act, the hostess mentions that Sir John is set to have dinner with Master Smooth, the silk dealer. After being turned down by Mr. Dombledon, he has made himself so charming to Master Smooth that he is “invited to dinner” with him. This is, by the way, regarding the action of the play; but as for Sir John’s character, isn't it
“Conceit deceitful, so compact, so kind”—kinned—natural?
“Conceit is deceptive, so close-knit, so gentle”—skin-deep—natural?
The conceit deceitful in the painting, is the imagination that means more than its says. So the words of the speakers in the play, stand for more than the speakers mean. They are Shakspere’s in their relation to his whole. To Achilles, his spear is but his spear: to the painter and his company, the spear of Achilles stands for Achilles himself.
The deceptive idea in the painting is the concept that it represents more than it literally states. Similarly, the words of the characters in the play convey more than what the characters intend. They are Shakespeare’s in relation to his entire work. For Achilles, his spear is just a spear; for the painter and his audience, Achilles's spear symbolizes Achilles himself.
Coleridge remarks upon James Gurney, in “King John:” “How individual and comical he is with the four words allowed to his dramatic life!” These words are those with which he answers the Bastard’s request to leave the room. He has been lingering with all the inquisitiveness and privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge says: “James Gurney, wilt thou give us leave a while?” with strained politeness. With marked condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and served from infancy, James Gurney replies: “Good leave, good Philip;” giving occasion to Faulconbridge to show his ambition, and scorn of his present standing, in the contempt with which he treats even the Christian name he is so soon to exchange with his surname for Sir Richard and Plantagenet; Philip being the name for a sparrow in those days, when ladies made pets of them. Surely in these words of the serving-man, we have an outcome of the same art by which
Coleridge comments on James Gurney in “King John”: “How unique and humorous he is with the four words given to his dramatic existence!” These words are his response to the Bastard’s request to leave the room. He has been hanging around with the curiosity and privilege of an old servant; when Faulconbridge asks politely, “James Gurney, will you give us some time?” With noticeable condescension to the request of the second son, whom he has known and served since childhood, James Gurney replies: “Good leave, good Philip;” which allows Faulconbridge to reveal his ambition and disdain for his current position, evident in the way he dismissively regards even the Christian name he is about to replace with Sir Richard and Plantagenet; Philip being the term for a sparrow in those times when women kept them as pets. Surely in these words of the servant, we see an expression of the same craft by which
“A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head, Stood for the whole to be imagined.”
“A hand, a foot, a face, a leg, a head, Represented the whole to be envisioned.”
In the “Winter’s Tale,” act iv. scene 3, Perdita, dressed with unwonted gaiety at the festival of the sheep-shearing, is astonished at finding herself talking in full strains of poetic verse. She says, half-ashamed:
In the “Winter’s Tale,” act iv. scene 3, Perdita, wearing an unusual cheerfulness at the sheep-shearing festival, is surprised to find herself speaking in complete poetic verse. She says, partly embarrassed:
“Methinks I play as I have seen them do In Whitsun pastorals: sure, this robe of mine Does change my disposition!”
“I think I play like I've seen them do in Whitsun pastorals: surely, this robe of mine changes my mood!”
She does not mean this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it than she thinks. Her passion for Florizel is the warmth that sets the springs of her thoughts free, and they flow with the grace belonging to a princess-nature; but it is the robe that opens the door of her speech, and, by elevating her consciousness of herself, betrays her into what is only natural to her, but seems to her, on reflection, inconsistent with her low birth and poor education. This instance, however, involves far higher elements than any of the examples I have given before, and naturally leads to a much more important class of illustrations.
She doesn't take this seriously. But the robe has more to do with it than she realizes. Her feelings for Florizel are the warmth that frees her thoughts, allowing them to flow with the grace of a princess; but it's the robe that unlocks her speech and, by boosting her self-awareness, leads her to act in ways that feel natural but also seem inconsistent with her humble background and limited education. This situation, however, involves much deeper elements than any of the examples I've mentioned before and naturally points to a much more significant set of illustrations.
In “Macbeth,” act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do with the conduct of the play, introduced?—That, in conversation with Rosse, he may, as an old man, bear testimony to the exceptionally terrific nature of that storm, which, we find—from the words of Banquo:
In “Macbeth,” act ii. scene 4, why is the old man, who has nothing to do with the events of the play, introduced?—So that, in his conversation with Rosse, he can, as an elderly witness, testify to the incredibly frightening nature of that storm, which we find from Banquo's words:
“There’s husbandry in heaven: Their candles are all out,”—
“There’s farming in heaven: Their lights are all out,”—
had begun to gather, before supper was over in the castle. This storm is the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord’s anointed temple—horror in which the animal creation partakes, for the horses of Duncan, “the minions of their race,” and therefore the most sensitive of their sensitive race, tear each other to pieces in the wildness of their horror. Consider along with this a foregoing portion of the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife after the murder, says:
had begun to gather, before dinner was over in the castle. This storm is the sympathetic horror of Nature at the breaking open of the Lord’s anointed temple—horror that the animal kingdom also feels, as the horses of Duncan, “the favorites of their kind,” and therefore the most sensitive of their sensitive kind, tear each other apart in the chaos of their fear. Consider along with this a previous part of the second scene in the same act. Macbeth, having joined his wife after the murder, says:
“Who lies i’ the second chamber? “Lady M. Donalbain.
“Who’s in the second chamber? “Lady M. Donalbain.
“There are two lodged together.”
“They're stuck together.”
These two, Macbeth says, woke each other—the one laughing, the other crying murder. Then they said their prayers and went to sleep again.—I used to think that the natural companion of Donalbain would be Malcolm, his brother; and that the two brothers woke in horror from the proximity of their father’s murderer who was just passing the door. A friend objected to this, that, had they been together, Malcolm, being the elder, would have been mentioned rather than Donalbain. Accept this objection, and we find a yet more delicate significance: the presence operated differently on the two, one bursting out in a laugh, the other crying murder; but both were in terror when they awoke, and dared not sleep till they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the elements themselves, are shaken by one unconscious sympathy with the murdered king.
Macbeth says that these two woke each other—one laughing, the other crying "murder." Then they said their prayers and went back to sleep. I used to think that Donalbain's natural companion would be his brother Malcolm; that the two brothers woke up in terror from the closeness of their father’s killer who was just passing by. A friend pointed out that, if they were together, Malcolm, being the older one, would have been mentioned instead of Donalbain. If we accept this point, we find an even deeper meaning: the presence affected the two differently, with one bursting out laughing and the other crying "murder"; but both were terrified when they woke up and wouldn't sleep until they had said their prayers. His sons, his horses, the very elements are shaken by an unconscious connection with the murdered king.
Associate with this the end of the third scene of the fourth act of “Julius Caesar;” where we find that the attendants of Brutus all cry out in their sleep, as the ghost of Caesar leaves their master’s tent. This outcry is not given in Plutarch.
Associate this with the end of the third scene of the fourth act of “Julius Caesar;” where we see that Brutus's attendants all shout in their sleep as Caesar's ghost leaves their master's tent. This outcry isn't mentioned in Plutarch.
To return to “Macbeth:” Why is the doctor of medicine introduced in the scene at the English court? He has nothing to do with the progress of the play itself, any more than the old man already alluded to.—He is introduced for a precisely similar reason.—As a doctor, he is the best testimony that could be adduced to the fact, that the English King Edward the Confessor, is a fountain of health to his people, gifted for his goodness with the sacred privilege of curing The King’s Evil, by the touch of his holy hands. The English King himself is thus introduced, for the sake of contrast with the Scotch King, who is a raging bear amongst his subjects.
To get back to “Macbeth”: Why is the doctor introduced in the scene at the English court? He doesn't really contribute to the story, just like the old man mentioned earlier. He’s included for a similar reason. As a doctor, he represents the idea that King Edward the Confessor of England is a source of health for his people, blessed with the special ability to heal The King’s Evil with the touch of his holy hands. The English King is highlighted to contrast with the Scottish King, who is a wild force among his subjects.
In the “Winter’s Tale,” to which he gives the name because of the altogether extraordinary character of the occurrences (referring to it in the play itself, in the words: “a sad tale’s best for winter: I have one of sprites and goblins”) Antigonus has a remarkable dream or vision, in which Hermione appears to him, and commands the exposure of her child in a place to all appearance the most unsuitable and dangerous. Convinced of the reality of the vision, Antigonus obeys; and the whole marvellous result depends upon this obedience. Therefore the vision must be intended for a genuine one. But how could it be such, if Hermione was not dead, as, from her appearance to him, Antigonus firmly believed she was? I should feel this to be an objection to the art of the play, but for the following answer:—At the time she appeared to him, she was still lying in that deathlike swoon, into which she fell when the news of the loss of her son reached her as she stood before the judgment-seat of her husband, at a time when she ought not to have been out of her chamber.
In “Winter’s Tale,” which gets its title from the truly extraordinary nature of the events (as mentioned in the play with the line: “a sad tale’s best for winter: I have one of sprites and goblins”), Antigonus experiences a notable dream or vision, where Hermione appears to him and instructs him to abandon her child in a place that seems completely unsuitable and dangerous. Believing the vision to be real, Antigonus follows her command; the entire remarkable outcome hinges on his obedience. Therefore, the vision must be genuine. But how could it be real if Hermione wasn’t dead, which is what Antigonus was convinced of when he saw her? I would find this to be a flaw in the play's craft, if not for the following explanation: When she appeared to him, she was still in that deathlike stupor into which she fell upon hearing about the loss of her son while she was standing before her husband’s judgment seat, at a time when she shouldn't have been out of her chamber.
Note likewise, in the first scene of the second act of the same play, the changefulness of Hermione’s mood with regard to her boy, as indicative of her condition at the time. If we do not regard this fact, we shall think the words introduced only for the sake of filling up the business of the play.
Note also, in the first scene of the second act of the same play, how Hermione's changing mood about her son reflects her state of mind at that moment. If we overlook this fact, we'll assume the words were just added to fill in the storyline.
In “Twelfth Night,” both ladies make the first advances in love. Is it not worthy of notice that one of them has lost her brother, and that the other believes she has lost hers? In this respect, they may be placed with Phoebe, in “As You Like It,” who, having suddenly lost her love by the discovery that its object was a woman, immediately and heartily accepts the devotion of her rejected lover, Silvius. Along with these may be classed Romeo, who, rejected and, as he believes, inconsolable, falls in love with Juliet the moment he sees her. That his love for Rosaline, however, was but a kind of calf-love compared with his love for Juliet, may be found indicated in the differing tones of his speech under the differing conditions. Compare what he says in his conversation with Benvolio, in the first scene of the first act, with any of his many speeches afterwards, and, while conceit will be found prominent enough in both, the one will be found to be ruled by the fancy, the other by the imagination.
In "Twelfth Night," both women take the first steps in love. Isn't it interesting that one has lost her brother and the other thinks she has lost hers? In this way, they can be compared to Phoebe in "As You Like It," who, after suddenly losing her love upon discovering that it was a woman, quickly and wholeheartedly accepts the devotion of her rejected suitor, Silvius. Similarly, we can include Romeo, who, after being rejected and thinking he is heartbroken, falls in love with Juliet the moment he sees her. However, his love for Rosaline was more like a kind of puppy love compared to his love for Juliet, as shown by the different tones in his speech under different circumstances. If you look at what he says in his conversation with Benvolio in the first scene of the first act and compare it to any of his many speeches later on, you'll notice that while fancy is evident in both, one is driven by mere infatuation, while the other is fueled by genuine imagination.
In this same play, there is another similar point which I should like to notice. In Arthur Brook’s story, from which Shakspere took his, there is no mention of any communication from Lady Capulet to Juliet of their intention of marrying her to Count Paris. Why does Shakspere insert this?—to explain her falling in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother has set her mind moving in that direction. She has never seen Paris. She is looking about her, wondering which may be he, and whether she shall be able to like him, when she meets the love-filled eyes of Romeo fixed upon her, and is at once overcome. What a significant speech is that given to Paulina in the “Winter’s Tale,” act v. scene 1: “How? Not women?” Paulina is a thorough partisan, siding with women against men, and strengthened in this by the treatment her mistress has received from her husband. One has just said to her, that, if Perdita would begin a sect, she might “make proselytes of who she bid but follow.” “How? Not women?” Paulina rejoins. Having received assurance that “women will love her,” she has no more to say.
In this same play, there's another similar point I want to mention. In Arthur Brook’s story, which Shakespeare adapted, there's no mention of Lady Capulet telling Juliet about their plan to marry her off to Count Paris. So why does Shakespeare include this?—to explain why she falls in love with Romeo so suddenly. Her mother has already planted that idea in her mind. Juliet has never met Paris. She’s looking around, wondering who he might be and if she'll be able to like him, when she suddenly locks eyes with Romeo, and she’s instantly captivated. There’s a significant line given to Paulina in “The Winter’s Tale,” act v. scene 1: “How? Not women?” Paulina is a strong supporter of women against men, fueled by the poor treatment her mistress has received from her husband. Someone just told her that if Perdita started a movement, she could easily win followers. “How? Not women?” Paulina responds. After being assured that “women will love her,” she has nothing more to say.
I had the following explanation of a line in “Twelfth Night” from a stranger I met in an old book-shop:—Malvolio, having built his castle in the air, proceeds to inhabit it. Describing his own behaviour in a supposed case, he says (act ii. scene 5): “I frown the while; and perchance, wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel”—A dash ought to come after my. Malvolio was about to say chain; but remembering that his chain was the badge of his office of steward, and therefore of his servitude, he alters the word to “some rich jewel” uttered with pretended carelessness.
I got this explanation about a line from “Twelfth Night” from a stranger I met in an old bookstore:—Malvolio, having built his dreams, starts to live in them. Describing his own behavior in a hypothetical situation, he says (act ii. scene 5): “I frown the while; and maybe wind up my watch, or play with my some rich jewel”—There should be a dash after my. Malvolio was about to say chain; but remembering that his chain was a symbol of his position as steward, and thus of his servitude, he changes the word to “some rich jewel,” said with fake nonchalance.
In “Hamlet,” act iii. scene 1, did not Shakspere intend the passionate soliloquy of Ophelia—a soliloquy which no maiden knowing that she was overheard would have uttered,—coupled with the words of her father:
In “Hamlet,” act iii. scene 1, didn’t Shakespeare mean for Ophelia's heartfelt soliloquy—a speech that no young woman would have said if she knew she was being listened to—combined with her father’s words:
“How now, Ophelia? You need not tell us what lord Hamlet said, We heard it all;”—
“Hey, Ophelia? You don’t have to tell us what Prince Hamlet said, We heard everything;”—
to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not false enough to be accomplice in any plot for betraying Hamlet to her father and the King? They had remained behind the arras, and had not gone out as she must have supposed.
to indicate that, weak as Ophelia was, she was not untrustworthy enough to be involved in any scheme to betray Hamlet to her father and the King? They had stayed hidden behind the tapestry and hadn’t left as she must have thought.
Next, let me request my reader to refer once more to the poem; and having considered the physiognomy of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in the fifth stanza, to turn then to the play of “Troilus and Cressida,” and there contemplate that description as metamorphosed into the higher form of revelation in speech. Then, if he will associate the general principles in that stanza with the third, especially the last two lines, I will apply this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
Next, I ask my reader to take another look at the poem; and after considering the appearance of Ajax and Ulysses, as described in the fifth stanza, turn to the play “Troilus and Cressida” and view that description transformed into a deeper expression through dialogue. Then, if you connect the general ideas in that stanza with the third, particularly the last two lines, I will relate this to the character of Lady Macbeth.
Of course, Shakspere does not mean that one regarding that portion of the picture alone, could see the eyes looking sad; but that the sweet observance of the whole so roused the imagination that it supplied what distance had concealed, keeping the far-off likewise in sweet observance with the whole: the rest pointed that way.—In a manner something like this are we conducted to a right understanding of the character of Lady Macbeth. First put together these her utterances:
Of course, Shakespeare doesn’t mean that someone looking at just that part of the picture could see the sad eyes; rather, the sweet observation of the whole scene stirs the imagination to fill in what distance has hidden, keeping the distant parts subtly connected to the whole: the rest points in that direction.—In a way similar to this, we are guided toward a proper understanding of Lady Macbeth’s character. First, let’s consider her words:
“You do unbend your noble strength, to think So brainsickly of things.” “Get some water, And wash this filthy witness from your hands.” “The sleeping and the dead Are but as pictures.” “A little water clears us of this deed.” “When all’s done, You look but on a stool.” “You lack the season of all natures, sleep.”—
“You lower your noble strength to think so foolishly about things.” “Get some water, and wash this dirty proof off your hands.” “The sleeping and the dead are just like pictures.” “A little water washes away this deed.” “When it’s all said and done, you just see a stool.” “You're missing the one thing all living beings need—sleep.”
Had these passages stood in the play unmodified by others, we might have judged from them that Shakspere intended to represent Lady Macbeth as an utter materialist, believing in nothing beyond the immediate communications of the senses. But when we find them associated with such passages as these—
Had these passages stood in the play unchanged by others, we might have thought that Shakespeare intended to portray Lady Macbeth as a complete materialist, believing in nothing beyond what she could immediately perceive through her senses. But when we see them connected with passages like these—
“Memory, the warder of the brain, Shall be a fume, and the receipt of reason A limbeck only;” “Had he not resembled My father as he slept, I had done’t; “These deeds must not be thought After these ways; so, it will make us mad;”—
“Memory, the keeper of the mind, Will just be smoke, and the acceptance of logic A distillation only;” “If he hadn’t looked Like my father while he was asleep, I would have done it; “We must not think about these actions In this way; it will drive us insane;”—
then we find that our former theory will not do, for here are deeper and broader foundations to build upon. We discover that Lady Macbeth was an unbeliever morally, and so found it necessary to keep down all imagination, which is the upheaving of that inward world whose very being she would have annihilated. Yet out of this world arose at last the phantom of her slain self, and possessing her sleeping frame, sent it out to wander in the night, and rub its distressed and blood-stained hands in vain. For, as in this same “Rape of Lucrece,”
then we realize that our previous theory doesn't hold up, because there are deeper and broader foundations to build on. We find that Lady Macbeth was a moral skeptic, which made her feel it necessary to suppress all imagination, the very force that challenges the inner world she wanted to destroy. Yet from this world ultimately emerged the ghost of her killed self, which took over her sleeping body and sent it out to roam in the night, rubbing its troubled and blood-stained hands in futility. Because, as in this same “Rape of Lucrece,”
“the soul’s fair temple is defaced; To whose weak ruins muster troops of cares, To ask the spotted princess how she fares.”
“the soul’s beautiful temple is damaged; To whose fragile ruins gather troops of worries, To ask the marked princess how she’s doing.”
But when so many lines of delineation meet, and run into, and correct one another, assuming such a natural and vital form, that there is no making of a point anywhere; and the woman is shown after no theory, but according to the natural laws of human declension, we feel that the only way to account for the perfection of the representation is to say that, given a shadow, Shakspere had the power to place himself so, that that shadow became his own—was the correct representation as shadow, of his form coming between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest dramatic gift that a man can possess. But we feel at the same time, that this is, in the main, not so much art as inspiration. There would be, in all probability, a great mingling of conscious art with the inspiration; but the lines of the former being lost in the general glow of the latter, we may be left where we were as to any certainty about the artistic consciousness of Shakspere. I will now therefore attempt to give a few plainer instances of such sweet observance in his own work as he would have admired in a painting.
But when so many lines come together, intersect, and adjust each other, taking on such a natural and dynamic form that there's no clear point of focus; and the woman is portrayed not according to any theory, but following the natural laws of human decline, we realize that the only way to explain the perfection of the depiction is to say that, given a shadow, Shakespeare had the ability to position himself in such a way that the shadow became his own—was the accurate representation of his form between it and the sunlight. And this is the highest dramatic talent a person can have. At the same time, we sense that this is primarily not just art, but inspiration. There would likely be a significant mix of conscious artistry and inspiration; however, the lines of the former being obscured by the overall brilliance of the latter, we might still find ourselves uncertain about Shakespeare's artistic awareness. Therefore, I will now try to provide a few clearer examples of such sweet observance in his own work that he would have appreciated in a painting.
First, then, I would request my reader to think how comparatively seldom Shakspere uses poetry in his plays. The whole play is a poem in the highest sense; but truth forbids him to make it the rule for his characters to speak poetically. Their speech is poetic in relation to the whole and the end, not in relation to the speaker, or in the immediate utterance. And even although their speech is immediately poetic, in this sense, that every character is idealized; yet it is idealized after its kind; and poetry certainly would not be the ideal speech of most of the characters. This granted, let us look at the exceptions: we shall find that such passages not only glow with poetic loveliness and fervour, but are very jewels of sweet observance, whose setting allows them their force as lawful, and their prominence as natural. I will mention a few of such.
First, I ask my reader to consider how rarely Shakespeare uses poetry in his plays. The entire play is a poem in the truest sense; however, it would be unrealistic for his characters to speak poetically all the time. Their dialogue is poetic in relation to the overall piece and its purpose, not in relation to the speaker or in the moment of speaking. Even when their words are poetic, meaning that every character is idealized, it is idealized in its own way; poetry certainly wouldn’t be the ideal mode of speech for most of the characters. With this in mind, let’s examine the exceptions: we will discover that these passages not only shine with poetic beauty and passion but are also true gems of sweet expression, where their context gives them their impact as legitimate and their prominence as fitting. I will highlight a few of these.
In “Julius Caesar,” act i. scene 3, we are inclined to think the way Casca speaks, quite inconsistent with the “sour fashion” which Cassius very justly attributes to him; till we remember that he is speaking in the midst of an almost supernatural thunder-storm: the hidden electricity of the man’s nature comes out in poetic forms and words, in response to the wild outburst of the overcharged heavens and earth.
In “Julius Caesar,” act i. scene 3, it may seem that the way Casca talks doesn’t match the “sour fashion” that Cassius accurately points out about him; but then we remember he’s speaking during an intense thunderstorm: the hidden energy of his character emerges in poetic expressions and words, reacting to the wild display of the overwhelmed sky and ground.
Shakspere invariably makes the dying speak poetically, and generally prophetically, recognizing the identity of the poetic and prophetic moods, in their highest development, and the justice that gives them the same name. Even Sir John, poor ruined gentleman, babbles of green fields. Every one knows that the passage is disputed: I believe that if this be not the restoration of the original reading, Shakspere himself would justify it, and wish that he had so written it.
Shakespeare always has dying characters speak in a poetic and often prophetic way, acknowledging the connection between these poetic and prophetic moods at their highest levels, and the fairness that makes them share the same name. Even Sir John, the unfortunate ruined gentleman, babbles of green fields. Everyone knows that this passage is debated: I believe that if this isn't the original wording, Shakespeare himself would support it and wish he had written it this way.
Romeo and Juliet talk poetry as a matter of course.
Romeo and Juliet chat about poetry like it's no big deal.
In “King John,” act v. scenes 4 and 5, see how differently the dying Melun and the living and victorious Lewis regard the same sunset:
In “King John,” act v. scenes 4 and 5, notice how differently the dying Melun and the living, victorious Lewis view the same sunset:
Melun. . . . . . this night, whose black contagious breath Already smokes about the burning crest Of the old, feeble, and day-wearied sun. Lewis. The sun in heaven, methought, was loath to set; But stayed, and made the western welkin blush, When the English measured backward their own ground.
Melun. . . . . . this night, whose dark, infectious breath Already hovers around the burning peak Of the old, weak, and tired sun. Lewis. The sun in the sky, it seemed to me, was reluctant to set; But lingered, and made the western sky blush, When the English retreated from their own territory.
The exquisite duet between Lorenzo and Jessica, in the opening of the fifth act of “The Merchant of Venice,” finds for its subject the circumstances that produce the mood—the lovely night and the crescent moon—which first make them talk poetry, then call for music, and next speculate upon its nature.
The beautiful duet between Lorenzo and Jessica in the opening of the fifth act of “The Merchant of Venice” centers on the circumstances that create the mood—the lovely night and the crescent moon—which first inspire them to speak in poetry, then prompt them to ask for music, and finally lead them to reflect on its nature.
Let us turn now to some instances of sweet observance in other kinds.
Let’s now look at some examples of kind attentiveness in other ways.
There is observance, more true than sweet, in the character of Jacques, in “As You Like It:” the fault-finder in age was the fault-doer in youth and manhood. Jacques patronizing the fool, is one of the rarest shows of self-ignorance.
There is a reality, more harsh than pleasant, in the character of Jacques in “As You Like It:” the critic in old age was the wrongdoer in his youth and adulthood. Jacques looking down on the fool is one of the rarest displays of self-awareness.
In the same play, when Rosalind hears that Orlando is in the wood, she cries out, “Alas the day! what shall I do with my doublet and hose?” And when Orlando asks her, “Where dwell you, pretty youth?” she answers, tripping in her rôle, “Here in the skirts of the forest, like fringe upon a petticoat.”
In the same play, when Rosalind hears that Orlando is in the woods, she exclaims, “Oh no! What am I going to do with my outfit?” And when Orlando asks her, “Where do you live, pretty boy?” she replies, playing her part, “Here on the edges of the forest, like the fringe on a skirt.”
In the second part of “King Henry IV.,” act iv. scene 3, Falstaff says of Prince John: “Good faith, this same young sober-blooded boy doth not love me; nor a man cannot make him laugh;—but that’s no marvel: he drinks no wine.” This is the Prince John who betrays the insurgents afterwards by the falsest of quibbles, and gains his revenge through their good faith.
In the second part of “King Henry IV,” act iv, scene 3, Falstaff says of Prince John: “Honestly, this young, serious kid doesn’t like me; no one can make him laugh;—but that’s no surprise: he doesn’t drink wine.” This is the Prince John who later betrays the rebels with the most questionable arguments and gets his revenge by exploiting their trust.
In “King Henry IV,” act i. scene 2, Poins does not say Falstaff is a coward like the other two; but only—“If he fight longer than he sees reason, I’ll forswear arms.” Associate this with Falstaff’s soliloquy about honour in the same play, act v. scene 1, and the true character of his courage or cowardice—for it may bear either name—comes out.
In “King Henry IV,” act i. scene 2, Poins doesn’t call Falstaff a coward like the other two; he just says, “If he fights longer than it makes sense, I’ll give up fighting.” Connect this with Falstaff’s speech about honour in the same play, act v. scene 1, and you’ll see the real nature of his bravery or cowardice—whichever you call it—revealed.
Is there not conscious art in representing the hospitable face of the castle of Macbeth, bearing on it a homely welcome in the multitude of the nests of the temple-haunting martlet (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just as Lady Macbeth, the fiend-soul of the house, steps from the door, like the speech of the building, with her falsely smiled welcome? Is there not observance in it?
Isn't there a deliberate artistry in showing the welcoming face of the castle of Macbeth, adorned with a cozy invitation in the numerous nests of the temple-haunting martlet (Psalm lxxxiv. 3), just as Lady Macbeth, the dark spirit of the home, emerges from the door, like the voice of the structure, with her insincere smile of welcome? Isn't there awareness in this?
But the production of such instances might be endless, as the work of Shakspere is infinite. I confine myself to two more, taken from “The Merchant of Venice.”
But the number of examples could go on forever, just like Shakspere's work is limitless. I’ll focus on just two more, taken from “The Merchant of Venice.”
Shakspere requires a character capable of the magnificent devotion of friendship which the old story attributes to Antonio. He therefore introduces us to a man sober even to sadness, thoughtful even to melancholy. The first words of the play unveil this characteristic. He holds “the world but as the world,”—
Shakespeare needs a character who can show the great loyalty of friendship that the old tale gives to Antonio. So, he presents us with a man who is serious to the point of sadness and reflective to the point of melancholy. The opening lines of the play reveal this trait. He sees "the world just as the world,"—
“A stage where every man must play a part, And mine a sad one.”
“A stage where everyone has to play a role, And mine is a sorrowful one.”
The cause of this sadness we are left to conjecture. Antonio himself professes not to know. But such a disposition, even if it be not occasioned by any definite event or object, will generally associate itself with one; and when Antonio is accused of being in love, he repels the accusation with only a sad “Fie! fie!” This, and his whole character, seem to me to point to an old but ever cherished grief.
The reason for this sadness is left up to us to guess. Antonio claims he doesn’t know either. However, such a mood, even if it’s not triggered by any specific event or thing, usually connects to one. When Antonio is accused of being in love, he rejects the claim with a simple, mournful “No! No!” This, along with his entire personality, makes me think of an old but deeply held sorrow.
Into the original story upon which this play is founded, Shakspere has, among other variations, introduced the story of Jessica and Lorenzo, apparently altogether of his own invention. What was his object in doing so? Surely there were characters and interests enough already!—It seems to me that Shakspere doubted whether the Jew would have actually proceeded to carry out his fell design against Antonio, upon the original ground of his hatred, without the further incitement to revenge afforded by another passion, second only to his love of gold—his affection for his daughter; for in the Jew having reference to his own property, it had risen to a passion. Shakspere therefore invents her, that he may send a dog of a Christian to steal her, and, yet worse, to tempt her to steal her father’s stones and ducats. I suspect Shakspere sends the old villain off the stage at the last with more of the pity of the audience than any of the other dramatists of the time would have ventured to rouse, had they been capable of doing so. I suspect he is the only human Jew of the English drama up to that time.
In the original story that this play is based on, Shakespeare included the storyline of Jessica and Lorenzo, which seems to be entirely his own creation. But why did he do it? There were already enough characters and plotlines! It seems to me that Shakespeare questioned whether the Jew would actually have gone through with his dark plan against Antonio based solely on his hatred, without being spurred on by another motive, which came second only to his love of money—his love for his daughter. Because for the Jew, it had become a passion linked to his own possessions. So, Shakespeare creates her character, allowing a Christian to sneak in and steal her, and even worse, tempt her to take her father's jewels and coins. I think Shakespeare makes the old villain exit the stage at the end with more audience sympathy than any of the other playwrights of his time would have dared to evoke, if they could have even managed it. I believe he is the only truly human Jew in English drama up to that point.
I have now arrived at the last and most important stage of my argument. It is this: If Shakspere was so well aware of the artistic relations of the parts of his drama, is it likely that the grand meanings involved in the whole were unperceived by him, and conveyed to us without any intention on his part—had their origin only in the fact that he dealt with human nature so truly, that his representations must involve whatever lessons human life itself involves?
I have now reached the final and most crucial point of my argument. Here it is: If Shakespeare understood the artistic connections between the parts of his plays so well, is it really likely that the deeper meanings in the whole piece went unnoticed by him, and were communicated to us without any intention on his part—arising solely from the fact that he portrayed human nature so accurately that his depictions naturally contained all the lessons that life itself teaches?
Is there no intention, for instance, in placing Prospero, who forsook the duties of his dukedom for the study of magic, in a desert island, with just three subjects; one, a monster below humanity; the second, a creature etherealized beyond it; and the third a complete embodiment of human perfection? Is it not that he may learn how to rule, and, having learned, return, by the aid of his magic wisely directed, to the home and duties from which exclusive devotion to that magic had driven him?
Is there no purpose, for example, in putting Prospero, who abandoned his responsibilities as duke for the pursuit of magic, on a deserted island, with only three subjects; one, a monster beneath humanity; the second, a being elevated beyond it; and the third a perfect example of humanity? Is it not so he can learn how to rule, and, after learning, return, with the help of his wisely directed magic, to the home and responsibilities he was driven away from by his sole focus on that magic?
In “Julius Caesar,” the death of Brutus, while following as the consequence of his murder of Caesar, is yet as much distinguished in character from that death, as the character of Brutus is different from that of Caesar. Caesar’s last words were Et tu Brute? Brutus, when resolved to lay violent hands on himself, takes leave of his friends with these words:
In “Julius Caesar,” Brutus's death, although a result of his murder of Caesar, is as distinct in nature from that death as Brutus's character is from Caesar's. Caesar's last words were "Et tu, Brute?" When Brutus, determined to end his own life, says goodbye to his friends, he expresses it with these words:
“Countrymen, My heart doth joy, that yet, in all my life, I found no man, but he was true to me.”
“Fellow countrymen, I am joyful that throughout my life, I have found no man who wasn't true to me.”
Here Shakspere did not invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But how unerring his choice!
Here, Shakespeare didn’t invent. He found both speeches in Plutarch. But how perfect his choice!
Is the final catastrophe in “Hamlet” such, because Shakspere could do no better?—It is: he could do no better than the best. Where but in the regions beyond could such questionings as Hamlet’s be put to rest? It would have been a fine thing indeed for the most nobly perplexed of thinkers to be left—his love in the grave; the memory of his father a torment, of his mother a blot; with innocent blood on his innocent hands, and but half understood by his best friend—to ascend in desolate dreariness the contemptible height of the degraded throne, and shine the first in a drunken court!
Is the final catastrophe in “Hamlet” such because Shakespeare could do no better?—It is: he couldn’t surpass the best. Where else could such questions as Hamlet’s be resolved? It would have been quite something for the most nobly confused thinker to be left—his love buried, his father’s memory a torment, his mother a stain; with innocent blood on his innocent hands, and only half understood by his closest friend—to rise in lonely despair to the shameful height of a degraded throne and shine as the top figure in a drunken court!
Before bringing forward my last instance, I will direct the attention of my readers to a passage, in another play, in which the lesson of the play I am about to speak of, is directly taught: the first speech in the second act of “As You Like It,” might be made a text for the exposition of the whole play of “King Lear.”
Before I present my final example, I want to draw my readers' attention to a passage in another play, where the lesson of the play I’m about to discuss is clearly taught: the first speech in the second act of “As You Like It” could serve as a key point for explaining the entire play of “King Lear.”
The banished duke is seeking to bring his courtiers to regard their exile as a part of their moral training. I am aware that I point the passage differently, while I revert to the old text.
The exiled duke is trying to get his courtiers to see their banishment as a part of their moral growth. I know I interpret the section differently, even as I return to the original text.
“Are not these woods More free from peril than the envious court? Here feel we not the penalty of Adam— The season’s difference, as the icy fang, And churlish chiding of the winter’s wind? Which, when it bites and blows upon my body, Even till I shrink with cold, I smile and say— This is no flattery; these are counsellors That feelingly persuade me what I am. Sweet are the uses of adversity.”
“Are these woods not safer than the jealous court? Here we don't feel the burden of sin—the harshness of the seasons, like the biting cold and the harsh scolding of the winter wind? When it chills and lashes at my skin, even as I shiver with cold, I smile and say—this isn’t flattery; these are the truths that genuinely remind me of who I am. There’s something good in adversity.”
The line Here feel we not the penalty of Adam? has given rise to much perplexity. The expounders of Shakspere do not believe he can mean that the uses of adversity are really sweet. But the duke sees that the penalty of Adam is what makes the woods more free from peril than the envious court; that this penalty is in fact the best blessing, for it feelingly persuades man what he is; and to know what we are, to have no false judgments of ourselves, he considers so sweet, that to be thus taught, the churlish chiding of the winter’s wind is well endured.
The line Do we not feel the punishment of Adam here? has caused a lot of confusion. Scholars of Shakespeare don't believe he means that the benefits of hardship are truly enjoyable. But the duke realizes that the punishment of Adam is what makes the woods safer than the jealous court; that this punishment is actually the greatest blessing, because it touchingly convinces a person of who they really are; and to know who we are, to avoid any false judgments of ourselves, he thinks is so wonderful that enduring the rude criticism of winter's wind is worth it.
Now let us turn to Lear. We find in him an old man with a large heart, hungry for love, and yet not knowing what love is; an old man as ignorant as a child in all matters of high import; with a temper so unsubdued, and therefore so unkingly, that he storms because his dinner is not ready by the clock of his hunger; a child, in short, in everything but his grey hairs and wrinkled face, but his failing, instead of growing, strength. If a life end so, let the success of that life be otherwise what it may, it is a wretched and unworthy end. But let Lear be blown by the winds and beaten by the rains of heaven, till he pities “poor naked wretches;” till he feels that he has “ta’en too little care of” such; till pomp no longer conceals from him what “a poor, bare, forked animal” he is; and the old king has risen higher in the real social scale—the scale of that country to which he is bound—far higher than he stood while he still held his kingdom undivided to his thankless daughters. Then let him learn at last that “love is the only good in the world;” let him find his Cordelia, and plot with her how they will in their dungeon singing like birds i’ the cage, and, dwelling in the secret place of peace, look abroad on the world like God’s spies; and then let the generous great old heart swell till it breaks at last—not with rage and hate and vengeance, but with love; and all is well: it is time the man should go to overtake his daughter; henceforth to dwell with her in the home of the true, the eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came from his own fault; but from the suffering has sprung another crop, not of evil but of good; the seeds of which had lain unfruitful in the soil, but were brought within the blessed influences of the air of heaven by the sharp tortures of the ploughshare of ill.
Now let’s talk about Lear. We see an old man with a big heart, craving love, yet completely clueless about what love really is; an old man as naive as a child when it comes to important matters; with such an unrestrained temper that it's unkingly, getting upset because his dinner isn't ready when he's hungry; a child, really, in everything except his grey hair and wrinkled face, and his fading strength. If a life ends this way, no matter how successful it may have been, it’s a miserable and unworthy end. But let Lear be tossed by the winds and soaked by the rains of heaven, until he feels compassion for “poor naked wretches;” until he realizes he’s “taken too little care of” them; until his pomp doesn’t hide from him what “a poor, bare, forked animal” he truly is; and the old king rises higher in the true social order—the order of the world he’s destined for—much higher than he was when he still ruled his kingdom for his ungrateful daughters. Then let him finally understand that “love is the only good in the world;” let him find his Cordelia, and plan with her how they will in their prison singing like birds i’ the cage, and, living in a place of peace, look out at the world like God’s spies; and then let his generous old heart swell until it breaks at last—not with rage and hatred and vengeance, but with love; and all is well: it is time for him to go to catch up with his daughter; to live with her from now on in the home of the true, the eternal, the unchangeable. All his suffering came from his own mistakes; but from that suffering has emerged something else, not evil but good; the seeds of which had been dormant in the soil, but were brought to life by the uplifting influences of heaven’s air through the harsh pains of the plow of hardship.
THE ELDER HAMLET.
[Footnote: 1875]
[Footnote: 1875]
‘Tis bitter cold, And I am sick at heart.
'It's bitter cold, And I am sick at heart.
The ghost in “Hamlet” is as faithfully treated as any character in the play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is to me the most interesting person of the drama. The rumour of his appearance is wrapped in the larger rumour of war. Loud preparations for uncertain attack fill the ears of “the subject of the land.” The state is troubled. The new king has hardly compassed his election before his marriage with his brother’s widow swathes the court in the dust-cloud of shame, which the merriment of its forced revelry can do little to dispel. A feeling is in the moral air to which the words of Francisco, the only words of significance he utters, give the key: “‘Tis bitter cold, and I am sick at heart.” Into the frosty air, the pallid moonlight, the drunken shouts of Claudius and his court, the bellowing of the cannon from the rampart for the enlargement of the insane clamour that it may beat the drum of its own disgrace at the portals of heaven, glides the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a king of the day walking about his halls, “the observed of all observers,” but a thrall of the night, wandering between the bell and the cock, like a jailer on each side of him. A poet tells the tale of the king who lost his garments and ceased to be a king: here is the king who has lost his body, and in the eyes of his court has ceased to be a man. Is the cold of the earth’s night pleasant to him after the purging fire? What crimes had the honest ghost committed in his days of nature? He calls them foul crimes! Could such be his? Only who can tell how a ghost, with his doubled experience, may think of this thing or that? The ghost and the fire may between them distinctly recognize that as a foul crime which the man and the court regarded as a weakness at worst, and indeed in a king laudable.
The ghost in “Hamlet” is depicted just as faithfully as any character in the play. Next to Hamlet himself, he is, to me, the most intriguing character in the drama. The rumor of his appearance is tied up with the larger rumor of war. Loud preparations for an uncertain attack fill the ears of “the subjects of the land.” The state is in turmoil. The new king has barely secured his position before his marriage to his brother’s widow shrouds the court in a haze of shame, which the forced revelry can do little to dispel. There’s a sense in the air that Francisco captures with his significant words: “‘Tis bitter cold, and I am sick at heart.” Into the frosty air, under the pale moonlight, amidst the drunken shouts of Claudius and his court, and the booming cannon from the ramparts adding to the insane noise that drums its own disgrace at the gates of heaven, glides the silent prisoner of hell, no longer a king of the day wandering his halls, “the observed of all observers,” but a thrall of the night, caught between the bell and the cock, like a jailer on either side. A poet tells of the king who lost his clothes and stopped being a king: here is the king who has lost his body and, in the eyes of his court, has stopped being a man. Is the earth’s night cold pleasant to him after the purging fire? What crimes did the honest ghost commit in his lifetime? He calls them foul crimes! Could such really be true? Only who can say how a ghost, with his added experience, views this or that? The ghost and the fire might clearly agree that something considered a foul crime by them could be seen as merely a weakness by the man and the court, and indeed praiseworthy in a king.
Alas, poor ghost! Around the house he flits, shifting and shadowy, over the ground he once paced in ringing armour—armed still, but his very armour a shadow! It cannot keep out the arrow of the cock’s cry, and the heart that pierces is no shadow. Where now is the loaded axe with which, in angry dispute, he smote the ice at his feet that cracked to the blow? Where is the arm that heaved the axe? Wasting in the marble maw of the sepulchre, and the arm he carries now—I know not what it can do, but it cannot slay his murderer. For that he seeks his son’s. Doubtless his new ethereal form has its capacities and privileges. It can shift its garb at will; can appear in mail or night-gown, unaided of armourer or tailor; can pass through Hades-gates or chamber-door with equal ease; can work in the ground like mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard from the cellarage. But there is one to whom it cannot appear, one whom the ghost can see, but to whom he cannot show himself. She has built a doorless, windowless wall between them, and sees the husband of her youth no more. Outside her heart—that is the night in which he wanders, while the palace-windows are flaring, and the low wind throbs to the wassail shouts: within, his murderer sits by the wife of his bosom, and in the orchard the spilt poison is yet gnawing at the roots of the daisies.
Alas, poor ghost! He drifts around the house, shifting and shadowy, over the ground he once walked in clanking armor—still armed, but his armor is just a shadow! It can’t block the piercing sound of the rooster's crow, and the heart that aches is no shadow. Where is the heavy axe he used to smash the ice beneath his feet that cracked from the blow? Where is the arm that swung the axe? It’s wasting away in the stone tomb, and the arm he carries now—I don’t know what it can do, but it can’t kill his murderer. For that, he seeks his son’s help. His new ghostly form probably has its own abilities and privileges. It can change its appearance at will; can show up in armor or a nightgown, without needing a blacksmith or tailor; can slip through the gates of the underworld or any door with ease; can dig in the ground like a mole or pioneer, and let its voice be heard from the cellar. But there’s one person he can’t reach, someone he can see, but who cannot see him. She has built a doorless, windowless wall between them, and no longer sees the husband of her youth. Outside her heart—that is the night he wanders, while the palace windows glow, and the low wind pulses to the party's cheers: inside, his murderer sits next to the wife he loves, and in the orchard, the spilled poison still eats away at the roots of the daisies.
Twice has the ghost grown out of the night upon the eyes of the sentinels. With solemn march, slow and stately, three times each night, has he walked by them; they, jellied with fear, have uttered no challenge. They seek Horatio, who the third night speaks to him as a scholar can. To the first challenge he makes no answer, but stalks away; to the second,
Twice, the ghost has emerged from the night before the eyes of the guards. With a serious, slow, and dignified pace, three times each night, he has walked by them; they, frozen with fear, have not said a word. They are looking for Horatio, who speaks to him like a scholar on the third night. To the first challenge, he says nothing but walks away; to the second,
It lifted up its head, and did address Itself to motion, like as it would speak;
It raised its head and began to move, as if it wanted to speak;
but the gaoler cock calls him, and the kingly shape
but the jailer's rooster calls him, and the royal figure
started like a guilty thing Upon a fearful summons;
started like a guilty thing Upon a fearful summons;
and then
and then
shrunk in haste away, And vanished from our sight.
shrank away quickly, And disappeared from our view.
Ah, that summons! at which majesty welks and shrivels, the king and soldier starts and cowers, and, armour and all, withers from the air!
Ah, that call! at which greatness falters and shrinks, the king and soldier jump and flinch, and, armor and all, fades from the scene!
But why has he not spoken before? why not now ere the cock could claim him? He cannot trust the men. His court has forsaken his memory—crowds with as eager discontent about the mildewed ear as ever about his wholesome brother, and how should he trust mere sentinels? There is but one who will heed his tale. A word to any other would but defeat his intent. Out of the multitude of courtiers and subjects, in all the land of Denmark, there is but one whom he can trust—his student-son. Him he has not yet found—the condition of a ghost involving strange difficulties.
But why hasn't he spoken up before? Why not now, before the rooster could announce him? He can't trust the men. His court has abandoned his memory—crowds are just as impatient with the rotten grain as they are with his healthy brother, so how can he trust mere guards? There’s only one person who will listen to his story. Telling it to anyone else would just ruin his plan. Out of all the courtiers and subjects in all of Denmark, there’s only one he can trust—his student-son. He hasn’t found him yet—the situation of being a ghost brings strange challenges.
Or did the horror of the men at the sight of him wound and repel him? Does the sense of regal dignity, not yet exhausted for all the fasting in fires, unite with that of grievous humiliation to make him shun their speech?
Or did the men’s horror at seeing him wound and repel him? Does the feeling of royal dignity, still intact despite all the fasting in flames, combine with a deep sense of humiliation to make him avoid their words?
But Horatio—why does the ghost not answer him ere the time of the cock is come? Does he fold the cloak of indignation around him because his son’s friend has addressed him as an intruder on the night, an usurper of the form that is his own? The companions of the speaker take note that he is offended and stalks away.
But Horatio—why doesn’t the ghost answer him before the rooster crows? Does he wrap himself in anger because his son’s friend has called him an intruder in the night, someone taking the form that belongs to him? The speaker's companions notice that he is upset and walks away.
Much has the kingly ghost to endure in his attempt to re-open relations with the world he has left: when he has overcome his wrath and returns, that moment Horatio again insults him, calling him an illusion. But this time he will bear it, and opens his mouth to speak. It is too late; the cock is awake, and he must go. Then alas for the buried majesty of Denmark! with upheaved halberts they strike at the shadow, and would stop it if they might—usage so grossly unfitting that they are instantly ashamed of it themselves, recognizing the offence in the majesty of the offended. But he is already gone. The proud, angry king has found himself but a thing of nothing to his body-guard—for he has lost the body which was their guard. Still, not even yet has he learned how little it lies in the power of an honest ghost to gain credit for himself or his tale! His very privileges are against him.
The kingly ghost has a lot to deal with in trying to reconnect with the world he left behind. After he calms his anger and returns, Horatio insults him again by calling him an illusion. But this time he chooses to endure it and opens his mouth to speak. It's too late; the rooster has crowed, and he must go. Then, sadly for the buried majesty of Denmark! They strike at his shadow with raised halberds, wishing they could stop him—but their actions are so grossly inappropriate that they feel ashamed, recognizing the offense against the dignity of the one they’ve angered. Yet, he is already gone. The proud, angry king realizes he’s nothing to his bodyguard now—since he has lost the body that was their protection. Still, he hasn’t yet understood how little power an honest ghost has to earn trust or tell his story! His very privileges work against him.
All this time his son is consuming his heart in the knowledge of a mother capable of so soon and so utterly forgetting such a husband, and in pity and sorrow for the dead father who has had such a wife. He is thirty years of age, an obedient, honourable son—a man of thought, of faith, of aspiration. Him now the ghost seeks, his heart burning like a coal with the sense of unendurable wrong. He is seeking the one drop that can fall cooling on that heart—the sympathy, the answering rage and grief of his boy. But when at length he finds him, the generous, loving father has to see that son tremble like an aspen-leaf in his doubtful presence. He has exposed himself to the shame of eyes and the indignities of dullness, that he may pour the pent torrent of his wrongs into his ears, but his disfranchisement from the flesh tells against him even with his son: the young Hamlet is doubtful of the identity of the apparition with his father. After all the burning words of the phantom, the spirit he has seen may yet be a devil; the devil has power to assume a pleasing shape, and is perhaps taking advantage of his melancholy to damn him.
All this time, his son is heartbroken knowing that a mother could forget such a husband so quickly and completely, feeling pity and sorrow for the dead father who had such a wife. He is thirty years old, an obedient, honorable son—a thoughtful, faithful, ambitious man. Now, the ghost seeks him, his heart burning with a sense of unbearable wrong. He is looking for that single drop of sympathy, the shared anger and grief from his son. But when he finally finds him, the loving father has to witness his son trembling like a leaf in his uncertain presence. He has laid himself bare to the shame of being seen and the dullness of the world, hoping to share the flood of his grievances with his son, but his separation from the living even makes his son doubt him: the young Hamlet questions whether the apparition truly is his father. After all the passionate words from the phantom, the spirit he has encountered might still be a devil; the devil can take on a pleasing form and could be exploiting his sadness to lead him astray.
Armed in the complete steel of a suit well known to the eyes of the sentinels, visionary none the less, with useless truncheon in hand, resuming the memory of old martial habits, but with quiet countenance, more in sorrow than in anger, troubled—not now with the thought of the hell-day to which he must sleepless return, but with that unceasing ache at the heart, which ever, as often as he is released into the cooling air of the upper world, draws him back to the region of his wrongs—where having fallen asleep in his orchard, in sacred security and old custom, suddenly, by cruel assault, he was flung into Hades, where horror upon horror awaited him—worst horror of all, the knowledge of his wife!—armed he comes, in shadowy armour but how real sorrow! Still it is not pity he seeks from his son: he needs it not—he can endure. There is no weakness in the ghost. It is but to the imperfect human sense that he is shadowy. To himself he knows his doom his deliverance; that the hell in which he finds himself shall endure but until it has burnt up the hell he has found within him—until the evil he was and is capable of shall have dropped from him into the lake of fire; he nerves himself to bear. And the cry of revenge that comes from the sorrowful lips is the cry of a king and a Dane rather than of a wronged man. It is for public justice and not individual vengeance he calls. He cannot endure that the royal bed of Denmark should be a couch for luxury and damned incest. To stay this he would bring the murderer to justice. There is a worse wrong, for which he seeks no revenge: it involves his wife; and there comes in love, and love knows no amends but amendment, seeks only the repentance tenfold more needful to the wronger than the wronged. It is not alone the father’s care for the human nature of his son that warns him to take no measures against his mother; it is the husband’s tenderness also for her who once lay in his bosom. The murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonoured husband, the tormented sinner, is yet a gentle ghost. Has suffering already begun to make him, like Prometheus, wise?
Clad in the familiar steel of a suit that the guards recognize, he stands as a visionary, though he holds a useless club in his hand. He recalls his old military habits but maintains a calm expression, more sorrowful than angry. He’s troubled not by thoughts of the hellish day he must return to without sleep, but by that constant heartache that pulls him back to the place of his wrongs—where he had once been at peace, dozing in his orchard, only to be violently thrown into Hades, where countless horrors awaited him—especially the worst horror of all, the knowledge of his wife! He comes armed, in shadowy armor, but his sorrow is all too real. Still, he's not looking for pity from his son—he doesn't need it; he can endure. The ghost shows no weakness. To himself, he understands that his doom is his salvation; the hell he finds around him will last only until it burns away the hell within him—until the evil he was, and is capable of being, falls from him into the lake of fire; he steels himself to bear it. The cry for revenge that escapes his sorrowful lips is the cry of a king and a Dane rather than just a wronged man. He calls for public justice, not personal vengeance. He cannot accept that the royal bed of Denmark should serve as a place for indulgence and cursed incest. To stop this, he wants to bring the murderer to justice. There's a deeper wrong for which he wants no revenge, as it involves his wife; this brings in love, and love knows no reparations but change, seeking only the repentance that is far more necessary for the wrongdoer than for the wronged. It’s not just a father’s concern for his son’s humanity that warns him not to take action against his mother; it’s also a husband’s tenderness for the woman who once lay in his arms. The murdered brother, the dethroned king, the dishonored husband, the tormented sinner, is still a gentle ghost. Has suffering already begun to make him, like Prometheus, wise?
But to measure the gentleness, the forgiveness, the tenderness of the ghost, we must well understand his wrongs. The murder is plain; but there is that which went before and is worse, yet is not so plain to every eye that reads the story. There is that without which the murder had never been, and which, therefore, is a cause of all the wrong. For listen to what the ghost reveals when at length he has withdrawn his son that he may speak with him alone, and Hamlet has forestalled the disclosure of the murderer:
But to understand the gentleness, forgiveness, and tenderness of the ghost, we need to clearly grasp the wrongs he suffered. The murder is obvious; however, there are events that occurred before it that are worse, yet not all readers of the story see them clearly. There's something without which the murder would never have happened, and that is the root of all the wrong. So listen to what the ghost reveals when he finally pulls his son aside to speak with him alone, and Hamlet has already anticipated the revelation of the murderer:
“Ay, that incestuous, that adulterate beast, With witchcraft of his wit, with traitorous gifts, (O wicked wit and gifts that have the power So to seduce!) won to his shameful lust The will of my most seeming virtuous queen: Oh, Hamlet, what a falling off was there! From me, whose love was of that dignity That it went hand in hand even with the vow I made to her in marriage, and to decline Upon a wretch, whose natural gifts were poor To those of mine! But virtue—as it never will be moved Though lewdness court it in a shape of heaven, So lust, though to a radiant angel linked, Will sate itself in a celestial bed, And prey on garbage.”
“Oh, that incestuous, that unfaithful beast, With the charm of his mind, with treacherous gifts, (Oh, wicked mind and gifts that can seduce!) won to his shameful desires the will of my seemingly virtuous queen: Oh, Hamlet, what a fall from grace that was! From me, whose love was of such high regard that it went hand in hand with the vow I made to her in marriage, and to settle for a wretch, whose natural abilities were lacking compared to mine! But virtue—never swayed even when lewdness tries to court it with a heavenly guise, so lust, even though linked to a radiant angel, will be satisfied in a celestial bed and feed on refuse.”
Reading this passage, can any one doubt that the ghost charges his late wife with adultery, as the root of all his woes? It is true that, obedient to the ghost’s injunctions, as well as his own filial instincts, Hamlet accuses his mother of no more than was patent to all the world; but unless we suppose the ghost misinformed or mistaken, we must accept this charge. And had Gertrude not yielded to the witchcraft of Claudius’ wit, Claudius would never have murdered Hamlet. Through her his life was dishonoured, and his death violent and premature: unhuzled, disappointed, unaneled, he woke to the air—not of his orchard-blossoms, but of a prison-house, the lightest word of whose terrors would freeze the blood of the listener. What few men can say, he could—that his love to his wife had kept even step with the vow he made to her in marriage; and his son says of him—
Reading this passage, can anyone doubt that the ghost accuses his late wife of cheating, which is the source of all his troubles? It's true that, following the ghost's orders and his own instincts as a son, Hamlet blames his mother for nothing more than what was obvious to everyone; but unless we assume the ghost was misinformed or wrong, we have to accept this accusation. If Gertrude hadn't fallen under the spell of Claudius’ charm, Claudius would never have killed Hamlet. Because of her, his life was dishonored, and his death was violent and untimely: unprepared, disappointed, unremembered, he woke not to the scent of his orchard’s blossoms, but to the air of a prison, where even the lightest word of its horrors would chill the blood of anyone listening. What few men can say, he could—that his love for his wife matched the vow he made to her in marriage; and his son says of him—
“so loving to my mother That he might not beteem the winds of heaven Visit her face too roughly;”
“so loving to my mother That he wouldn't let the winds of heaven Harm her face too much;”
and this was her return! Yet is it thus he charges his son concerning her:
and this was her return! Yet this is how he instructs his son about her:
“But howsoever thou pursu’st this act, Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive Against thy mother aught; leave her to heaven, And to those thorns that in her bosom lodge, To prick and sting her.”
“But however you go about this act, Don’t corrupt your mind, and don’t let your soul plan Anything against your mother; leave her to heaven, And to those thorns that are lodged in her heart, To prick and sting her.”
And may we not suppose it to be for her sake in part that the ghost insists, with fourfold repetition, upon a sword-sworn oath to silence from Horatio and Marcellus?
And shouldn't we think that part of the reason the ghost insists, repeatedly, on a sworn oath of silence from Horatio and Marcellus is for her sake?
Only once again does he show himself—not now in armour upon the walls, but in his gown and in his wife’s closet.
Only one more time does he reveal himself—not in armor on the walls, but in his robe and in his wife's closet.
Ever since his first appearance, that is, all the time filling the interval between the first and second acts, we may presume him to have haunted the palace unseen, waiting what his son would do. But the task has been more difficult than either had supposed. The ambassadors have gone to Norway and returned; but Hamlet has done nothing. Probably he has had no opportunity; certainly he has had no clear vision of duty. But now all through the second and third acts, together occupying, it must be remembered, only one day, something seems imminent. The play has been acted, and Hamlet has gained some assurance, yet the one chance presented of killing the king—at his prayers—he has refused. He is now in his mother’s closet, whose eyes he has turned into her very soul. There, and then, the ghost once more appears—come, he says, to whet his son’s almost blunted purpose. But, as I have said, he does not know all the disadvantages of one who, having forsaken the world, has yet business therein to which he would persuade; he does not know how hard it is for a man to give credence to a ghost; how thoroughly he is justified in delay, and the demand for more perfect proof. He does not know what good reasons his son has had for uncertainty, or how much natural and righteous doubt has had to do with what he takes for the blunting of his purpose. Neither does he know how much more tender his son’s conscience is than his own, or how necessary it is to him to be sure before he acts. As little perhaps does he understand how hateful to Hamlet is the task laid upon him—the killing of one wretched villain in the midst of a corrupt and contemptible court, one of a world of whose women his mother may be the type!
Ever since his first appearance, meaning all the time between the first and second acts, we can assume he has been haunting the palace unseen, waiting to see what his son would do. But the task has been more challenging than either of them thought. The ambassadors have gone to Norway and come back, but Hamlet hasn’t done anything. He probably hasn’t had the chance, and he definitely hasn’t had a clear sense of duty. But now, throughout the second and third acts, which only take place over one day, something seems imminent. The play has been performed, and Hamlet has gained some confidence, yet when the opportunity to kill the king presents itself—when he’s praying—he refuses. He’s now in his mother’s room, her eyes revealing her very soul. There, the ghost appears again—come, he says, to sharpen his son’s nearly dulled resolve. But, as I’ve mentioned, he doesn’t understand all the challenges faced by someone who, having turned away from the world, still has business in it to which he is trying to convince him; he doesn’t realize how difficult it is for a person to believe in a ghost; how justified he is in hesitating and wanting more solid proof. He doesn’t know the good reasons his son has had for his uncertainty, or how much natural and rightful doubt has contributed to what he perceives as a lack of determination. He also doesn’t understand how much more sensitive his son’s conscience is compared to his own, or how important it is for him to be sure before he acts. He might not fully grasp how hateful the task laid upon Hamlet is—the killing of one miserable villain in the midst of a corrupt and contemptible court, one among a world of women of whom his mother might be the most representative!
Whatever the main object of the ghost’s appearance, he has spoken but a few words concerning the matter between him and Hamlet, when he turns abruptly from it to plead with his son for his wife. The ghost sees and mistakes the terror of her looks; imagines that, either from some feeling of his presence, or from the power of Hamlet’s words, her conscience is thoroughly roused, and that her vision, her conception of the facts, is now more than she can bear. She and her fighting soul are at odds. She is a kingdom divided against itself. He fears the consequences. He would not have her go mad. He would not have her die yet. Even while ready to start at the summons of that hell to which she has sold him, he forgets his vengeance on her seducer in his desire to comfort her. He dares not, if he could, manifest himself to her: what word of consolation could she hear from his lips? Is not the thought of him her one despair? He turns to his son for help: he cannot console his wife; his son must take his place. Alas! even now he thinks better of her than she deserves; for it is only the fancy of her son’s madness that is terrifying her: he gazes on the apparition of which she sees nothing, and from his looks she anticipates an ungovernable outbreak.
Whatever the main reason for the ghost’s appearance, he has said just a few words about the situation with Hamlet before he suddenly shifts to pleading with his son for his wife. The ghost misinterprets the fear in her expression; he believes that, either due to sensing his presence or because of Hamlet’s words, her conscience is fully awakened, and that her understanding of the truth is now too much for her to handle. She and her troubled soul are in conflict. She is like a kingdom divided against itself. He fears what might happen next. He doesn’t want her to go mad. He doesn’t want her to die yet. Even while he’s on the brink of being drawn into the hell she has condemned him to, he forgets his desire for revenge against her seducer and instead wants to comfort her. He feels that he can’t reveal himself to her: what comforting words could he offer? Isn’t the thought of him her greatest despair? He turns to his son for assistance: he can’t soothe his wife; his son must take his place. Alas! even now he thinks more highly of her than she deserves; it's only the idea of her son’s madness that’s scaring her: she sees nothing of the ghost he watches, and from his expression, she expects an uncontrollable outburst.
“But look; amazement on thy mother sits! Oh; step between her and her fighting soul Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works. Speak to her, Hamlet.”
“But look; your mother is in shock! Oh; step in between her and her battling spirit. Imagination works strongest in the weakest people. Talk to her, Hamlet.”
The call to his son to soothe his wicked mother is the ghost’s last utterance. For a few moments, sadly regardful of the two, he stands—while his son seeks in vain to reveal to his mother the presence of his father—a few moments of piteous action, all but ruining the remnant of his son’s sorely-harassed self-possession—his whole concern his wife’s distress, and neither his own doom nor his son’s duty; then, as if lost in despair at the impassable gulf betwixt them, revealed by her utter incapacity for even the imagination of his proximity, he turns away, and steals out at the portal. Or perhaps he has heard the black cock crow, and is wanted beneath: his turn has come.
The ghost's final words are a plea for his son to comfort his wicked mother. For a brief moment, he stands there, sadly watching the two of them. His son struggles to show his mother that his father is there, a few moments filled with painful tension that nearly shatters his son's already frayed composure. His main concern is his wife's distress, completely ignoring his own fate and his son's responsibilities. Then, feeling hopeless about the gap between them—highlighted by her inability to even imagine his presence—he turns and quietly exits through the door. Or maybe he heard the rooster crowing and knows it's his time to go below: his moment has arrived.
Will the fires ever cleanse her? Will his love ever lift him above the pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be endurable to poor King Hamlet?
Will the fires ever cleanse her? Will his love ever lift him above the pain of its loss? Will eternity ever be bliss, ever be bearable for poor King Hamlet?
Alas! even the memory of the poor ghost is insulted. Night after night on the stage his effigy appears—cadaverous, sepulchral—no longer as Shakspere must have represented him, aerial, shadowy, gracious, the thin corporeal husk of an eternal—shall I say ineffaceable?—sorrow! It is no hollow monotone that can rightly upbear such words as his, but a sound mingled of distance and wind in the pine-tops, of agony and love, of horror and hope and loss and judgment—a voice of endless and sweetest inflection, yet with a shuddering echo in it as from the caves of memory, on whose walls, are written the eternal blazon that must not be to ears of flesh and blood. The spirit that can assume form at will must surely be able to bend that form to completest and most delicate expression, and the part of the ghost in the play offers work worthy of the highest artist. The would-be actor takes from it vitality and motion, endowing it instead with the rigidity of death, as if the soul had resumed its cast-off garment, the stiffened and mouldy corpse—whose frozen deadness it could ill model to the utterance of its lively will!
Sadly, even the memory of the poor ghost is disrespected. Night after night on stage, his likeness appears—pale, grave—not as Shakespeare must have intended him to be, ethereal, shadowy, graceful, a thin physical shell of an everlasting—should I say indelible?—sorrow! It’s not a hollow monotone that can truly carry such words as his, but a sound mixed with the distance and wind in the treetops, filled with agony and love, horror and hope, loss and judgment—a voice with endless, sweetest tones, yet carrying a chilling echo as if from the caves of memory, where the eternal truths must remain unheard by those of flesh and blood. A spirit that can take form at will should surely be able to shape that form into its fullest and most delicate expression, and the ghost's role in the play offers a task worthy of the greatest artist. The aspiring actor extracts vitality and movement from it, only to replace it with the rigidity of death, as if the soul had slipped back into its discarded garment, the stiff and decaying corpse—whose frozen lifelessness it could hardly shape to express its vibrant will!
ON POLISH.
[Footnote: 1865]
[Footnote: 1865]
By Polish I mean a certain well-known and immediately recognizable condition of surface. But I must request my reader to consider well what this condition really is. For the definition of it appears to us to be, that condition of surface which allows the inner structure of the material to manifest itself. Polish is, as it were, a translucent skin, in which the life of the inorganic comes to the surface, as in the animal skin the animal life. Once clothed in this, the inner glories of the marble rock, of the jasper, of the porphyry, leave the darkness behind, and glow into the day. From the heart of the agate the mossy landscape comes dreaming out. From the depth of the green chrysolite looks up the eye of its gold. The “goings on of life” hidden for ages under the rough bark of the patient forest-trees, are brought to light; the rings of lovely shadow which the creature went on making in the dark, as the oyster its opaline laminations, and its tree-pearls of beautiful knots, where a beneficent disease has broken the geometrical perfection of its structure, gloom out in their infinite variousness.
By "Polish," I mean a specific well-known and easily recognizable condition of a surface. However, I must ask my reader to think carefully about what this condition truly is. The definition appears to be that it's a surface condition that lets the inner structure of the material shine through. Polish acts like a translucent layer, allowing the life of inorganic materials to emerge, much like how an animal's skin reveals its vitality. Once covered in this polish, the inner beauty of marble, jasper, and porphyry emerges from darkness and shines in the light. From the heart of the agate, a mossy landscape dreams its way out. From the depths of green chrysolite, the eye of gold gazes upward. The "activities of life" that were hidden for ages under the rough bark of patient forest trees are revealed; the beautiful shadows created in the dark, just like the oyster’s opaline layers and its stunning tree-pearls formed where a beneficial disease has disrupted the perfect geometry of its structure, emerge in their endless variety.
Nor are the revelations of polish confined to things having variety in their internal construction; they operate equally in things of homogeneous structure. It is the polished ebony or jet which gives the true blank, the material darkness. It is the polished steel that shines keen and remorseless and cold, like that human justice whose symbol it is. And in the polished diamond the distinctive purity is most evident; while from it, I presume, will the light absorbed from the sun gleam forth on the dark most plentifully.
Nor are the insights about polish limited to things with diverse internal structures; they also apply to items with a uniform structure. It's the polished ebony or jet that provides true darkness. It's the polished steel that shines sharp, relentless, and cold, much like the human justice it represents. And in the polished diamond, the unique purity stands out most clearly; I assume that the light it absorbs from the sun will shine forth on the dark with the greatest intensity.
But the mere fact that the end of polish is revelation, can hardly be worth setting forth except for some ulterior object, some further revelation in the fact itself.—I wish to show that in the symbolic use of the word the same truth is involved, or, if not involved, at least suggested. But let me first make another remark on the preceding definition of the word.
But the simple fact that the purpose of polish is to reveal something is hardly worth mentioning unless there’s some deeper reason for it, some additional insight tied to that fact itself. I want to demonstrate that the symbolic use of the word involves the same truth, or if it’s not directly involved, it’s at least implied. But first, let me make another point about the previous definition of the word.
There is no denying that the first notion suggested by the word polish is that of smoothness, which will indeed be the sole idea associated with it before we begin to contemplate the matter. But when we consider what things are chosen to be “clothed upon” with this smoothness, then we find that the smoothness is scarcely desired for its own sake, and remember besides that in many materials and situations it is elaborately avoided. We find that here it is sought because of its faculty of enabling other things to show themselves—to come to the surface.
There's no denying that the first thing that comes to mind with the word "polish" is smoothness, which will indeed be the only idea associated with it before we start to think more deeply. However, when we consider what things are chosen to be "clothed" with this smoothness, we realize that this smoothness is hardly desired for its own sake. We also remember that in many materials and situations, it's carefully avoided. We see that here it is sought after for its ability to allow other things to emerge—to come to the forefront.
I proceed then to examine how far my pregnant interpretation of the word will apply to its figurative use in two cases—Polish of Style, and Polish of Manners. The two might be treated together, seeing that Style may be called the manners of intellectual utterance, and Manners the style of social utterance; but it is more convenient to treat them separately.
I will now look into how well my interpretation of the word fits its figurative use in two cases—Polish of Style and Polish of Manners. These two could be discussed together since Style can be thought of as the manners of intellectual expression, while Manners represent the style of social communication; however, it makes more sense to address them separately.
I will begin with the Polish of Style.
I will start with the Polish of Style.
It will be seen at once that if the notion of polish be limited to that of smoothness, there can be little to say on the matter, and nothing worthy of being said. For mere smoothness is no more a desirable quality in a style than it is in a country or a countenance; and its pursuit will result at length in the gain of the monotonous and the loss of the melodious and harmonious. But it is only upon worthless material that polish can be mere smoothness; and where the material is not valuable, polish can be nothing but smoothness. No amount of polish in a style can render the production of value, except there be in it embodied thought thereby revealed; and the labour of the polish is lost. Let us then take the fuller meaning of polish, and see how it will apply to style.
It’s clear that if we think of polish as just smoothness, there’s not much to say about it, and nothing worth saying. Smoothness itself isn’t a valuable quality in writing, just like it isn’t in a landscape or a face; focusing only on it will lead to a style that’s dull instead of lyrical or harmonious. Polish can only be considered “just” smoothness when the underlying material is unworthy; if the content isn’t valuable, polish reduces to simple smoothness. No matter how polished a piece of writing is, it can't be valuable unless it includes meaningful thoughts that shine through; otherwise, the effort put into the polish is wasted. So, let’s take a more comprehensive understanding of polish and see how it relates to style.
If it applies, then Polish of Style will imply the approximately complete revelation of the thought. It will be the removal of everything that can interfere between the thought of the speaker and the mind of the hearer. True polish in marble or in speech reveals inlying realities, and, in the latter at least, mere smoothness, either of sound or of meaning, is not worthy of the name. The most polished style will be that which most immediately and most truly flashes the meaning embodied in the utterance upon the mind of the listener or reader.
If it applies, then the Polish of Style means nearly complete clarity of thought. It will entail removing anything that could get in the way between what the speaker intends and what the listener understands. True polish, whether in marble or in speech, reveals the underlying truths. In the case of speech, mere smoothness—whether in sound or meaning—is not enough to earn the name. The most polished style is the one that most quickly and accurately conveys the meaning expressed to the listener or reader.
“Will you then,” I imagine a reader objecting, “admit of no ornament in style?”
“Will you then,” I can picture a reader asking, “not allow any embellishments in your writing?”
“Assuredly,” I answer, “I would admit of no ornament whatever.”
"Definitely," I reply, "I wouldn't accept any decorations at all."
But let me explain what I mean by ornament. I mean anything stuck in or on, like a spangle, because it is pretty in itself, although it reveals nothing. Not one such ornament can belong to a polished style. It is paint, not polish. And if this is not what my questioner means by ornament, my answer must then be read according to the differences in his definition of the word. What I have said has not the least application to the natural forms of beauty which thought assumes in speech. Between such beauty and such ornament there lies the same difference as between the overflow of life in the hair, and the dressing of that loveliest of utterances in grease and gold.
But let me clarify what I mean by ornament. I’m talking about anything added on, like a shiny decoration, because it looks nice on its own, even though it doesn’t reveal anything. No ornament like that can belong to a refined style. It’s just paint, not polish. And if this isn’t what my questioner means by ornament, then my response should be understood based on the differences in how he defines the word. What I’ve said doesn’t apply at all to the natural forms of beauty that thought expresses in language. The difference between such beauty and such ornament is like the difference between the natural flow of life in hair and the undesired embellishment of that beauty with grease and gold.
For, when I say that polish is the removal of everything that comes between thought and thinking, it must not be supposed that in my idea thought is only of the intellect, and therefore that all forms but bare intellectual forms are of the nature of ornament. As well might one say that the only essential portion of the human form is the bones. And every human thought is in a sense a human being, has as necessarily its muscles of motion, its skin of beauty, its blood of feeling, as its skeleton of logic. For complete utterance, music itself in its right proportions, sometimes clear and strong, as in rhymed harmonies, sometimes veiled and dim, as in the prose compositions of the masters of speech, is as necessary as correctness of logic, and common sense in construction. I should have said conveyance rather than utterance; for there may be utterance such as to relieve the mind of the speaker with more or less of fancied communication, while the conveyance of thought may be little or none; as in the speaking with tongues of the infant Church, to which the lovely babblement of our children has probably more than a figurative resemblance, relieving their own minds, but, the interpreter not yet at his post, neither instructing nor misleading any one. But as the object of grown-up speech must in the main be the conveyance of thought, and not the mere utterance, everything in the style of that speech which interposes between the mental eyes and the thought embodied in the speech, must be polished away, that the indwelling life may manifest itself.
When I say that polish is about removing anything that gets in the way of thought and thinking, I don't mean to suggest that thought is solely intellectual, nor that everything except pure intellectual forms is just decoration. That would be like saying that the only essential part of the human body is the bones. Every human thought is, in a way, a human being, complete with its own muscles of action, skin of beauty, and blood of emotion, just as it has a skeleton of logic. For true expression, music itself in its proper proportions—sometimes clear and strong, like rhymed harmonies, and sometimes soft and subtle, like the prose works of the great masters—is just as important as logical accuracy and common sense in structure. I should say "conveyance" instead of "utterance," because you can have utterance that briefly relieves the speaker's mind while offering little or no actual communication, similar to the speaking in tongues of the early Church, which likely mirrors the charming babbling of our children. It may ease their minds, but without an interpreter, it neither educates nor misleads anyone. Since the main goal of adult speech should be to convey thought, rather than just to speak, anything in the style of that speech that stands between the speaker’s mind and the thought being expressed must be polished away, allowing the inner life to shine through.
What, then (for now we must come to the practical), is the kind of thing to be polished away in order that the hidden may be revealed?
What, then (since we need to get to the practical), needs to be polished away so that the hidden can be brought to light?
All words that can be dismissed without loss; for all such more or less obscure the meaning upon which they gather. The first step towards the polishing of most styles is to strike out—polish off—the useless words and phrases. It is wonderful with how many fewer words most things could be said that are said; while the degree of certainty and rapidity with which an idea is conveyed would generally be found to be in an inverse ratio to the number of words employed.
All words that can be removed without losing meaning; because all of those obscure the meaning they surround. The first step to improving most writing styles is to cut out—remove—the unnecessary words and phrases. It's amazing how much more concise many ideas could be expressed with fewer words; usually, the clarity and speed with which an idea is expressed tend to decrease as the number of words increases.
All ornaments so called—the nose and lip jewels of style—the tattooing of the speech; all similes that, although true, give no additional insight into the meaning; everything that is only pretty and not beautiful; all mere sparkle as of jewels that lose their own beauty by being set in the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone, must be ruthlessly polished away.
All so-called ornaments—the nose and lip jewelry of style—the embellishments of speech; all comparisons that, while accurate, don’t add any real understanding to the meaning; everything that's just pretty and not truly beautiful; all the superficial shine like jewels that lose their beauty when placed alongside the grandeur of statues or the dignity of monumental stone, must be carefully removed.
All utterances which, however they may add to the amount of thought, distract the mind, and confuse its observation of the main idea, the essence or life of the book or paper, must be diligently refused. In the manuscript of Comus there exists, cancelled but legible, a passage of which I have the best authority for saying that it would have made the poetic fame of any writer. But the grand old self-denier struck it out of the opening speech because that would be more polished without it—because the Attendant Spirit would say more immediately and exclusively, and therefore more completely, what he had to say, without it.—All this applies much more widely and deeply in the region of art; but I am at present dealing with the surface of style, not with the round of result.
All statements that, no matter how much they contribute to the amount of thought, distract the mind and confuse its understanding of the main idea, the essence or spirit of the book or paper, must be carefully rejected. In the manuscript of Comus, there is a passage that was cancelled but can still be read, and I have strong evidence to say it would have brought poetic fame to any writer. However, the great old self-denier removed it from the opening speech because the speech would be smoother without it—because the Attendant Spirit would express more directly and exclusively, and therefore more completely, what he needed to say without it. All of this applies even more broadly and profoundly in the realm of art; but I'm currently focusing on surface style, not the overall outcome.
I have one instance at hand, however, belonging to this region, than which I could scarcely produce a more apt illustration of my thesis. One of the greatest of living painters, walking with a friend through the late Exhibition of Art-Treasures at Manchester, came upon Albert Dürer’s Melancholia. After looking at it for a moment, he told his friend that now for the first time he understood it, and proceeded to set forth what he saw in it. It was a very early impression, and the delicacy of the lines was so much the greater. He had never seen such a perfect impression before, and had never perceived the intent and scope of the engraving. The mere removal of accidental thickness and furriness in the lines of the drawing enabled him to see into the meaning of that wonderful production. The polish brought it to the surface. Or, what amounts to the same thing for my argument, the dulling of the surface had concealed it even from his experienced eyes.
I have a clear example from this area that I could hardly find a better illustration for my point. One of the greatest living painters was walking with a friend through the recent Exhibition of Art-Treasures in Manchester and came across Albert Dürer’s Melancholia. After examining it for a moment, he told his friend that he finally understood it for the first time and went on to explain what he saw in it. It was an early impression, and the delicacy of the lines was remarkable. He had never seen such a perfect impression before and had never grasped the intention and scope of the engraving. The simple removal of random thickness and fuzziness in the lines of the drawing allowed him to uncover the meaning of that incredible work. The refinement brought it to light. Or, to put it another way for my argument, the dullness of the surface had hidden it even from his experienced eyes.
In fine, and more generally, all cause whatever of obscurity must be polished away. There may lie in the matter itself a darkness of colour and texture which no amount of polishing can render clear or even vivid; the thoughts themselves may be hard to think, and difficulty must not be confounded with obscurity. The former belongs to the thoughts themselves; the latter to the mode of their embodiment. All cause of obscurity in this must, I say, be removed. Such may lie even in the region of grammar, or in the mere arrangement of a sentence. And while, as I have said, no ornament is to be allowed, so all roughnesses, which irritate the mental ear, and so far incapacitate it for receiving a true impression of the meaning from the words, must be carefully reduced. For the true music of a sentence, belonging as it does to the essence of the thought itself, is the herald which goes before to prepare the mind for the following thought, calming the surface of the intellect to a mirror-like reflection of the image about to fall upon it. But syllables that hang heavy on the tongue and grate harsh upon the ear are the trumpet of discord rousing to unconscious opposition and conscious rejection.
In short, and more generally, any cause of confusion must be cleared away. There may be a heaviness in the material itself that no amount of polishing can make clear or even bright; the thoughts themselves might be difficult to grasp, and difficulty shouldn't be confused with confusion. The former relates to the thoughts themselves; the latter relates to how they are expressed. Any cause of confusion in this must, I insist, be eliminated. This could even stem from grammar or the simple arrangement of a sentence. While, as I mentioned, no embellishments should be allowed, any roughness that annoys the reader's mind, and thereby hinders their ability to grasp the true meaning of the words, must be carefully smoothed out. The true rhythm of a sentence, which is essential to the thought itself, acts as a guide that prepares the mind for the upcoming idea, calming the intellect to reflect the image about to be presented. But syllables that are clumsy and unpleasant to hear are a call to conflict, stirring unconscious resistance and deliberate rejection.
And now the consideration of the Polish of Manners will lead us to some yet more important reflections. Here again I must admit that the ordinary use of the phrase is analogous to that of the preceding; but its relations lead us deep into realities. For as diamond alone can polish diamond, so men alone can polish men; and hence it is that it was first by living in a city ([Greek: polis], polis) that men—
And now considering the polish of manners will lead us to some even more important thoughts. I have to admit that the common use of the phrase is similar to the previous one; but its connections take us deep into reality. Just as only diamonds can polish diamonds, only people can polish other people; and that's why it was first by living in a city ([Greek: polis], polis) that people—
“rubbed each other’s angles down,”
“smoothed each other’s angles,”
and became polished. And while a certain amount of ease with regard to ourselves and of consideration with regard to others is everywhere necessary to a man’s passing as a gentleman—all unevenness of behaviour resulting either from shyness or self-consciousness (in the shape of awkwardness), or from overweening or selfishness (in the shape of rudeness), having to be polished away—true human polish must go further than this. Its respects are not confined to the manners of the ball-room or the dinner-table, of the club or the exchange, but wherever a man may rejoice with them that rejoice or weep with them that weep, he must remain one and the same, as polished to the tiller of the soil as to the leader of the fashion.
and became polished. While it's important to have a certain comfort with ourselves and consideration for others to be seen as a gentleman, any awkward behavior from shyness or self-consciousness, or rudeness from arrogance or selfishness, needs to be smoothed out. However, genuine human polish goes beyond that. It isn’t just about manners at social events like balls or dinners, clubs or exchanges. Wherever a person shares in the joy of others or offers comfort in sorrow, he must be consistent, showing the same grace to a farmer as to a trendsetter.
But how will the figure of material polish aid us any further? How can it be said that Polish of Manners is a revelation of that which is within, a calling up to the surface of the hidden loveliness of the material? For do we not know that courtesy may cover contempt; that smiles themselves may hide hate; that one who will place you at his right hand when in want of your inferior aid, may scarce acknowledge your presence when his necessity has gone by? And how then can polished manners be a revelation of what is within? Are they not the result of putting on rather than of taking off? Are they not paint and varnish rather than polish?
But how will the idea of material polish help us further? How can we say that Politeness is a revelation of what’s inside, bringing to light the hidden beauty of the material? For don’t we know that courtesy can mask contempt; that smiles can disguise hate; that someone who sits you at their right hand when they need your help may barely acknowledge you once their need has passed? So how can polished manners reveal what’s inside? Aren't they more about putting on a facade rather than stripping away? Aren't they more like paint and varnish than real polish?
I must yield the answer to each of these questions; protesting, however, that with such polish I have nothing to do; for these manners are confessedly false. But even where least able to mislead, they are, with corresponding courtesy, accepted as outward signs of an inward grace. Hence even such, by the nature of their falsehood, support my position. For in what forms are the colours of the paint laid upon the surface of the material? Is it not in as near imitations of the real right human feelings about oneself and others as the necessarily imperfect knowledge of such an artist can produce? He will not encounter the labour of polishing, for he does not believe in the divine depths of his own nature: he paints, and calls the varnish polish.
I have to answer each of these questions, although I must say that I have nothing to do with such polish because these manners are obviously fake. Still, even when they are least able to deceive, they are accepted with the appropriate politeness as outward signs of an inner grace. Therefore, their inherent falsehood actually supports my argument. What forms are the colors of the paint applied to the surface? Aren’t they as close to imitations of real human feelings about oneself and others as the artist's necessarily imperfect understanding can produce? He won’t bother with the effort of polishing because he doesn't believe in the deep beauty of his own nature: he paints and calls the varnish polish.
“But why talk of polish with reference to such a character, seeing that no amount of polishing can bring to the surface what is not there? No polishing of sandstone will reveal the mottling of marble. For it is sandstone, crumbling and gritty—not noble in any way.”
“But why discuss refinement when it comes to such a character, knowing that no amount of polishing can show what isn't there? No amount of polishing sandstone will uncover the veining of marble. Because it's sandstone, crumbling and gritty—not noble at all.”
Is it so then? Can such be the real nature of the man? And can polish reach nothing deeper in him than such? May not this selfishness be polished away, revealing true colour and harmony beneath? Was not the man made in the image of God? Or, if you say that man lost that image, did not a new process of creation begin from the point of that loss, a process of re-creation in him in whom all shall be made alive, which, although so far from being completed yet, can never be checked? If we cut away deep enough at the rough block of our nature, shall we not arrive at some likeness of that true man who, the apostle says, dwells in us—the hope of glory? He informs us—that is, forms us from within.
Is that really the case? Can that be the true nature of a person? And can refinement reach nothing deeper in them than this? Can’t this selfishness be polished away, revealing the true colors and harmony underneath? Wasn’t humanity made in the image of God? Or, if you argue that humanity lost that image, didn’t a new process of creation start from that loss, a process of re-creation in those who will be made alive, which, even though it isn’t finished yet, can never be stopped? If we dig deep enough into the rough block of our nature, won’t we find some resemblance to that true person who, as the apostle says, dwells in us—the hope of glory? He informs us—that is, shapes us from within.
Dr. Donne (who knew less than any other writer in the English language what Polish of Style means) recognizes this divine polishing to the full. He says in a poem called “The Cross:”—
Dr. Donne (who understood less than any other writer in the English language what polish of style means) fully recognizes this divine refinement. He says in a poem called “The Cross:”—
As perchance carvers do not faces make, But that away, which hid them there, do take, Let Crosses so take what hid Christ in thee, And be his Image, or not his, but He.
As maybe carvers don’t create faces, But remove what’s hidden beneath, Let crosses take away what hides Christ in you, And be his image, or not his, but Him.
This is no doubt a higher figure than that of polish, but it is of the same kind, revealing the same truth. It recognizes the fact that the divine nature lies at the root of the human nature, and that the polish which lets that spiritual nature shine out in the simplicity of heavenly childhood, is the true Polish of Manners of which all merely social refinements are a poor imitation.—Whence Coleridge says that nothing but religion can make a man a gentleman.—And when these harmonies of our nature come to the surface, we shall be indeed “lively stones,” fit for building into the great temple of the universe, and echoing the music of creation. Dr. Donne recognizes, besides, the notable fact that crosses or afflictions are the polishing powers by means of which the beautiful realities of human nature are brought to the surface. One can tell at once by the peculiar loveliness of certain persons that they have suffered.
This is definitely a higher figure than that of polish, but it’s of the same kind, revealing the same truth. It acknowledges that divine nature is at the core of human nature, and that the polish allowing that spiritual nature to shine through in the simplicity of heavenly childhood is the true Polish of Manners, of which all merely social refinements are a poor imitation. This is why Coleridge says that nothing but religion can make a man a gentleman. When these harmonies of our nature come to the surface, we will indeed be “lively stones,” ready to be built into the great temple of the universe, echoing the music of creation. Dr. Donne also points out the important fact that crosses or afflictions are the polishing powers that bring the beautiful realities of human nature to the forefront. You can instantly tell by the unique loveliness of certain individuals that they have suffered.
But, to look for a moment less profoundly into the matter, have we not known those whose best never could get to the surface just from the lack of polish?—persons who, if they could only reveal the kindness of their nature, would make men believe in human nature, but in whom some roughness of awkwardness or of shyness prevents the true self from appearing? Even the dread of seeming to claim a good deed or to patronize a fellow-man will sometimes spoil the last touch of tenderness which would have been the final polish of the act of giving, and would have revealed infinite depths of human devotion. For let the truth out, and it will be seen to be true.
But if we take a moment to think about it more simply, haven’t we all known people whose best qualities never really shine through just because they lack refinement?—people who, if they could just show the kindness inside them, would make others believe in humanity, but whose awkwardness or shyness keeps their true selves hidden? Sometimes, even the fear of appearing to take credit for a good deed or to seem condescending to someone else can ruin the final touch of kindness that would have completed the act of giving and revealed deep levels of human devotion. Because if the truth comes out, it will be recognized as true.
Simplicity is the end of all Polish, as of all Art, Culture, Morals, Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our brothers and sisters are one Humanity, one Body of the Head.
Simplicity is the ultimate goal of all refinement, including Art, Culture, Morals, Religion, and Life. The Lord our God is one Lord, and we and our brothers and sisters are one Humanity, one Body under the Head.
Now to the practical: what are we to do for the polish of our manners?
Now to the practical: what should we do to improve our manners?
Just what I have said we must do for the polish of our style. Take off; do not put on. Polish away this rudeness, that awkwardness. Correct everything self-assertive, which includes nine tenths of all vulgarity. Imitate no one’s behaviour; that is to paint. Do not think about yourself; that is to varnish. Put what is wrong right, and what is in you will show itself in harmonious behaviour.
Just like I said, we need to work on improving our style. Remove what doesn't belong; don’t add unnecessary things. Eliminate rudeness and awkwardness. Fix everything that's overly assertive, which is a big part of being vulgar. Don’t copy anyone’s behavior; that’s just pretending. Stop focusing on yourself; that’s just putting on a facade. Set what’s wrong straight, and what's truly inside you will shine through in your actions.
But no one can go far in this track without discovering that true polish reaches much deeper; that the outward exists but for the sake of the inward; and that the manners, as they depend on the morals, must be forgotten in the morals of which they are but the revelation. Look at the high-shouldered, ungainly child in the corner: his mother tells him to go to his book, and he wants to go to his play. Regard the swollen lips, the skin tightened over the nose, the distortion of his shape, the angularity of his whole appearance. Yet he is not an awkward child by nature. Look at him again the moment after he has given in and kissed his mother. His shoulders have dropped to their place; his limbs are free from the fetters that bound them; his motions are graceful, and the one blends harmoniously with the other. He is no longer thinking of himself. He has given up his own way. The true childhood comes to the surface, and you see what the boy is meant to be always. Look at the jerkiness of the conceited man. Look at the quiet fluency of motion in the modest man. Look how anger itself which forgets self, which is unhating and righteous, will elevate the carriage and ennoble the movements.
But nobody can get very far on this path without realizing that true refinement goes much deeper; the outer layer exists only to support the inner essence, and manners, being a reflection of morals, must fade away in light of the morals they reveal. Look at the awkward, gangly child in the corner: his mother tells him to get his book, while he wants to play. Notice the swollen lips, the skin stretched tight over his nose, the distortion of his form, the sharp angles in his appearance. Yet he isn't awkward by nature. Observe him just a moment after he gives in and kisses his mother. His shoulders relax into place; his limbs are free from the restraints that held them; his movements become fluid, and everything flows together harmoniously. He’s no longer focused on himself. He’s let go of his own desires. The essence of childhood shines through, revealing who the boy is meant to be. Notice the awkwardness of the conceited man. Notice the effortless grace of the humble man. See how even anger, when it forgets itself and is just, can uplift the posture and elevate the movements.
But how far can the same rule of omission or rejection be applied with safety to this deeper character—the manners of the spirit?
But how far can the same rule of omission or rejection be applied safely to this deeper character—the manners of the spirit?
It seems to me that in morals too the main thing is to avoid doing wrong; for then the active spirit of life in us will drive us on to the right. But on such a momentous question I would not be dogmatic. Only as far as regards the feelings I would say: it is of no use to try to make ourselves feel thus or thus. Let us fight with our wrong feelings; let us polish away the rough ugly distortions of feeling. Then the real and the good will come of themselves. Or rather, to keep to my figure, they will then show themselves of themselves as the natural home-produce, the indwelling facts of our deepest—that is, our divine nature.
It seems to me that in terms of morals, the most important thing is to avoid doing wrong; because then the natural drive within us will guide us toward what’s right. But I wouldn't want to be overly rigid about such a significant issue. As far as feelings go, I would say it's pointless to try to force ourselves to feel one way or another. Let's confront our negative feelings; let's smooth out the rough, ugly distortions of our emotions. Then the genuine and the good will emerge on their own. Or rather, sticking to my analogy, they will reveal themselves naturally as the inherent qualities of our deepest—meaning our divine nature.
Here I find that I am sinking through my subject into another and deeper—a truth, namely, which should, however, be the foundation of all our building, the background of all our representations: that Life is at work in us—the sacred Spirit of God travailing in us. That Spirit has gained one end of his labour—at which he can begin to do yet more for us—when he has brought us to beg for the help which he has been giving us all the time.
Here I realize that I am diving deeper into my topic—a truth that should be the foundation of everything we build and the backdrop of all our representations: that Life is operating within us—the sacred Spirit of God working through us. That Spirit has achieved one goal of his effort—on which he can start to do even more for us—when he has brought us to ask for the help he has been providing all along.
I have been regarding infinite things through the medium of one limited figure, knowing that figures with all their suggestions and relations could not reveal them utterly. But so far as they go, these thoughts raised by the word Polish and its figurative uses appear to me to be most true.
I’ve been thinking about endless things through the lens of one limited concept, realizing that concepts with all their implications and connections can't fully express them. However, as far as they reach, the ideas sparked by the word Polish and its metaphorical uses seem to me to be very true.
BROWNING’S “CHRISTMAS EVE”
[Footnote: 1853.]
[Footnote: 1853.]
Goethe says:—
Goethe says:—
“Poems are painted window panes. If one looks from the square into the church, Dusk and dimness are his gains— Sir Philistine is left in the lurch! The sight, so seen, may well enrage him, Nor anything henceforth assuage him. “But come just inside what conceals; Cross the holy threshold quite— All at once ‘tis rainbow-bright, Device and story flash to light, A gracious splendour truth reveals. This to God’s children is full measure, It edifies and gives you pleasure!”
“Poems are like painted glass windows. If you look from the square into the church, You see just dusk and shadows— Leaving the materialist behind in confusion! The view, seen this way, might really annoy him, And nothing will calm him down from that point on. “But step just inside what hides; Walk across the sacred threshold— Suddenly it’s filled with vibrant colors, Images and stories come to life, A beautiful brightness reveals the truth. This is a complete gift for God’s children, It inspires and brings you joy!”
This is true concerning every form in which truth is embodied, whether it be sight or sound, geometric diagram or scientific formula. Unintelligible, it may be dismal enough, regarded from the outside; prismatic in its revelation of truth from within. Such is the world itself, as beheld by the speculative eye; a thing of disorder, obscurity, and sadness: only the child-like heart, to which the door into the divine idea is thrown open, can understand somewhat the secret of the Almighty. In human things it is particularly true of art, in which the fundamental idea seems to be the revelation of the true through the beautiful. But of all the arts it is most applicable to poetry; for the others have more that is beautiful on the outside; can give pleasure to the senses by the form of the marble, the hues of the painting, or the sweet sounds of the music, although the heart may never perceive the meaning that lies within. But poetry, except its rhythmic melody, and its scattered gleams of material imagery, for which few care that love it not for its own sake, has no attraction on the outside to entice the passer to enter and partake of its truth. It is inwards that its colours shine, within that its forms move, and the sound of its holy organ cannot be heard from without.
This applies to every way truth is expressed, whether through sight or sound, geometric shapes or scientific equations. From the outside, it might seem confusing and gloomy; but from within, it reveals truth in a colorful way. That's how the world looks to the thoughtful observer: chaotic, unclear, and sad. Only a child-like heart, to which the door to divine ideas is opened, can grasp a bit of the Almighty’s secret. This is especially true for art, where the main goal seems to be revealing truth through beauty. However, it’s most relevant to poetry; the other arts are often more visually appealing and can please the senses with the beauty of marble, the colors in paintings, or the sweet sounds of music, even if the heart doesn't understand the deeper meaning. In contrast, apart from its rhythmic beauty and scattered glimpses of imagery—which few appreciate for their own sake—poetry doesn’t have external charms to draw people in. Its true colors shine from within, its forms exist inside, and the sound of its sacred essence can’t be heard from the outside.
Now, if one has been able to reach the heart of a poem, answering to Goethe’s parabolic description; or even to discover a loop-hole, through which, from an opposite point, the glories of its stained windows are visible; it is well that he should seek to make others partakers in his pleasure and profit. Some who might not find out for themselves, would yet be evermore grateful to him who led them to the point of vision. Surely if a man would help his fellow-men, he can do so far more effectually by exhibiting truth than exposing error, by unveiling beauty than by a critical dissection of deformity. From the very nature of the things it must be so. Let the true and good destroy their opposites. It is only by the good and beautiful that the evil and ugly are known. It is the light that makes manifest.
Now, if someone has been able to reach the core of a poem, as described in Goethe’s parable, or even find a way to see the brilliance of its stained glass windows from a different angle, it’s great for them to share that joy and insight with others. Some people who might not discover it on their own would still be endlessly grateful to those who guide them to that perspective. Surely, if someone wants to help others, they can do it much more effectively by showing truth rather than pointing out falsehoods, and by revealing beauty instead of dissecting ugliness. It simply has to be this way. Let the true and good overcome their opposites. It’s only through the good and beautiful that we recognize the evil and ugly. Light is what makes everything visible.
The poem “Christmas Eve,” by Robert Browning, with the accompanying poem “Easter Day,” seems not to have attracted much notice from the readers of poetry, although highly prized by a few. This is, perhaps, to be attributed, in a great measure, to what many would call a considerable degree of obscurity. But obscurity is the appearance which to a first glance may be presented either by profundity or carelessness of thought. To some, obscurity itself is attractive, from the hope that worthiness is the cause of it. To apply a test similar to that by which Pascal tries the Koran and the Scriptures: what is the character of those portions, the meaning of which is plain? Are they wise or foolish? If the former, the presumption is that the obscurity of other parts is caused not by opacity, but profundity. But some will object, notwithstanding, that a writer ought to make himself plain to his readers; nay, that if he has a clear idea himself, he must be able to express that idea clearly. But for communion of thought, two minds, not one, are necessary. The fault may lie in him that receives or in him that gives, or it may be in neither. For how can the result of much thought, the idea which for mouths has been shaping itself in the mind of one man, be at once received by another mind to which it comes a stranger and unexpected? The reader has no right to complain of so caused obscurity. Nor is that form of expression, which is most easily understood at first sight, necessarily the best. It will not, therefore, continue to move; nor will it gather force and influence with more intimate acquaintance. Here Goethe’s little parable, as he calls it, is peculiarly applicable. But, indeed, if after all a writer is obscure, the man who has spent most labour in seeking to enter into his thoughts, will be the least likely to complain of his obscurity; and they who have the least difficulty in understanding a writer, are frequently those who understand him the least.
The poem “Christmas Eve” by Robert Browning, along with the poem “Easter Day,” hasn’t received much attention from poetry readers, although a few value it highly. This is probably due, in large part, to what many see as significant obscurity. However, this obscurity can hint at either depth or lack of thought. For some, obscurity is appealing because it suggests there might be something worthwhile behind it. To use a test similar to the one Pascal applies to the Koran and the Scriptures: what do the clear parts say? Are they wise or foolish? If they're wise, then it’s likely that the obscurity in other sections comes from depth, not confusion. Yet some argue that a writer should make things clear for their readers; they suggest that if a writer has a clear idea in their mind, they should be able to express it clearly. But for a true exchange of thoughts, both the giver and the receiver need to be involved. The issue could lie with either party, or even neither. After all, how can a complex thought, which has been forming in one person's mind for a long time, be easily grasped by another who is encountering it for the first time? The reader can't justifiably complain about this type of obscurity. Moreover, the most straightforward expression isn’t always the best. Such expressions may not resonate long-term or gain depth and influence through closer engagement. Here, Goethe’s little parable comes to mind. Ultimately, if a writer is indeed obscure, the person who has put in the most effort to understand their thoughts is least likely to complain; often, those who find it easiest to grasp a writer's words are the ones who understand them the least.
To those to whom the religion of Christ has been the law of liberty; who by that door have entered into the universe of God, and have begun to feel a growing delight in all the manifestations of God, it is cause of much joy to find that, whatever may be the position taken by men of science, or by those in whom the intellect predominates, with regard to the Christian religion, men of genius, at least, in virtue of what is child-like in their nature, are, in the present time, plainly manifesting deep devotion to Christ. There are exceptions, certainly; but even in those, there are symptoms of feelings which, one can hardly help thinking, tend towards him, and will one day flame forth in conscious worship. A mind that recognizes any of the multitudinous meanings of the revelation of God, in the world of sounds, and forms, and colours, cannot be blind to the higher manifestation of God in common humanity; nor to him in whom is hid the key to the whole, the First-born of the creation of God, in whose heart lies, as yet but partially developed, the kingdom of heaven, which is the redemption of the earth. The mind that delights in that which is lofty and great, which feels there is something higher than self, will undoubtedly be drawn towards Christ; and they, who at first looked on him as a great prophet, came at length to perceive that he was the radiation of the Father’s glory, the likeness of his unseen being.
To those for whom the religion of Christ has been a source of freedom; who have stepped through that doorway into the universe of God and have started to experience a growing joy in all the ways God reveals Himself, it is a great joy to see that, regardless of what stance scientists or intellectuals may take toward Christianity, creative minds today are clearly showing deep devotion to Christ due to their child-like nature. There are certainly exceptions, but even in those cases, there are signs of feelings that suggest a tendency towards Him, which will eventually express itself in conscious worship. A mind that recognizes any of the many layers of meaning in God's revelation through the world of sounds, shapes, and colors cannot overlook God's higher manifestation in humanity or in the one who holds the key to it all—the First-born of all creation, in whose heart lies the kingdom of heaven, still only partially manifested, which is the redemption of the earth. A mind that finds joy in what is noble and grand, that senses there’s something greater than itself, will undoubtedly be drawn to Christ; and those who initially saw Him merely as a great prophet eventually came to realize that He radiates the Father’s glory, reflecting His unseen essence.
A description of the poem may, perhaps, both induce to the reading of it, and contribute to its easier comprehension while being perused. On a stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or rather the seer (for the whole must be regarded as a poetic vision), is compelled to take refuge in the “lath and plaster entry” of a little chapel, belonging to a congregation of Calvinistic Methodists, who are at the time assembling for worship. Wonderful in its reality is the description of various of the flock that pass him as they enter the chapel, from
A description of the poem might encourage people to read it and help them understand it better while they go through it. On a stormy Christmas Eve, the poet, or more accurately the seer (since the entire piece should be seen as a poetic vision), has to take shelter in the “lath and plaster entry” of a small chapel, which belongs to a group of Calvinistic Methodists who are gathered for worship at that moment. The portrayal of the different members of the congregation as they enter the chapel is remarkable in its realism, from
“the many-tattered Little old-faced, peaking sister-turned-mother Of the sickly babe she tried to smother Somehow up, with its spotted face, From the cold, on her breast, the one warm place:”
“the many-tattered Little old-faced, peeking sister-turned-mother Of the sickly baby she tried to shield Somehow up, with its spotted face, From the cold, on her chest, the one warm place:”
to the “shoemaker’s lad;” whom he follows, determined not to endure the inquisition of their looks any longer, into the chapel. The humour of the whole scene within is excellent. The stifling closeness, both of the atmosphere and of the sermon, the wonderful content of the audience, the “old fat woman,” who
to the “shoemaker’s kid;” whom he follows, determined not to put up with the scrutiny of their gazes any longer, into the chapel. The humor of the entire scene inside is fantastic. The overwhelming heat, both of the air and of the sermon, the amazing satisfaction of the audience, the “old fat woman,” who
“purred with pleasure, And thumb round thumb went twirling faster, While she, to his periods keeping measure, Maternally devoured the pastor;”
“purred with pleasure, And thumb round thumb went twirling faster, While she, keeping time with his pauses, Maternally devoured the pastor;”
are represented by a few rapid touches that bring certain points of the reality almost unpleasantly near. At length, unable to endure it longer, he rushes out into the air. Objection may, probably, be made to the mingling of the humorous, even the ridiculous, with the serious; at least, in a work of art like this, where they must be brought into such close proximity. But are not these things as closely connected in the world as they can be in any representation of it? Surely there are few who have never had occasion to attempt to reconcile the thought of the two in their own minds. Nor can there be anything human that is not, in some connexion or other, admissible into art. The widest idea of art must comprehend all things. A work of this kind must, like God’s world, in which he sends rain on the just and on the unjust, be taken as a whole and in regard to its design. The requisition is, that everything introduced have a relation to the adjacent parts and to the whole suitable to the design. Here the thing is real, is true, is human; a thing to be thought about. It has its place amongst other phenomena, with which, however apparently incongruous, it is yet vitally connected within.
are shown through a few quick touches that bring certain aspects of reality almost uncomfortably close. Finally, unable to stand it any longer, he rushes out into the fresh air. Some might argue against mixing the humorous, even the absurd, with the serious; at least in a work of art like this, where they are brought together so closely. But aren't these elements just as intertwined in the real world as they can be in any depiction of it? Surely, there are few who haven't tried to reconcile both thoughts in their own minds. There’s nothing human that can’t be included in art in some way. The broadest concept of art should encompass everything. A work like this must, like God’s world, where rain falls on both the just and the unjust, be viewed as a whole in terms of its purpose. The requirement is that everything presented relates to the surrounding elements and to the whole in a way that fits the design. Here, the subject is real, true, and human; it is something to ponder. It finds its place among other phenomena, which, no matter how mismatched, are still deeply connected within.
A coolness and delight visit us, on turning over the page and commencing to read the description of sky, and moon, and clouds, which greet him outside the chapel. It is as a vision of the vision-bearing world itself, in one of its fine, though not, at first, one of its rarest moods. And here a short digression to notice like feelings in unlike dresses, one thought differently expressed will, perhaps, be pardoned. The moon is prevented from shining out by the “blocks” of cloud “built up in the west:”—
A sense of coolness and joy washes over us as we turn the page and start reading the description of the sky, moon, and clouds that greet him outside the chapel. It's like a glimpse of the world itself, in one of its lovely, though perhaps not one of its most uncommon, moods. Now, let me briefly digress to highlight similar feelings presented in different ways; one thought expressed differently might be forgiven. The moon is blocked from shining by the “blocks” of cloud “built up in the west:” –
“And the empty other half of the sky Seemed in its silence as if it knew What, any moment, might look through A chance-gap in that fortress massy.”
“And the empty other half of the sky Seemed in its silence as if it knew What, at any moment, might look through A chance opening in that massive fortress.”
Old Henry Vaughan says of the “Dawning:”—
Old Henry Vaughan talks about the “Dawning:” —
“The whole Creation shakes off night, And for thy shadow looks the Light; Stars now vanish without number, Sleepie Planets set and slumber, The pursie Clouds disband and scatter, All expect some sudden matter.”
“The entire universe shakes off night, And for your shadow, the Light appears; Stars now disappear endlessly, Sleepy Planets go down and rest, The puffy Clouds break apart and drift, Everyone anticipates something sudden.”
Calmness settles down on his mind. He walks on, thinking of the scene he had left, and the sermon he had heard. In the latter he sees the good and the bad intimately mingled; and is convinced that the chief benefit derived from it is a reproducing of former impressions. The thought crosses him, in how many places and how many different forms the same thing takes place, “a convincing” of the “convinced;” and he rejoices in the contrast which his church presents to these; for in the church of Nature his love to God, assurance of God’s love to him, and confidence in the design of God regarding him, commenced. While exulting in God and the knowledge of Him to be attained hereafter, he is favoured with a sight of a glorious moon-rainbow, which elevates his worship to ecstasy. During which—
Calmness washes over his mind. He continues walking, reflecting on the scene he left behind and the sermon he heard. In the sermon, he sees good and bad mixing closely together and realizes that the main benefit of it is that it brings back former impressions. He thinks about how often and in how many different ways the same thing happens, “a convincing” of the “convinced,” and he feels grateful for the contrast his church offers; because in the church of Nature, his love for God, his assurance of God’s love for him, and his confidence in God’s plan for him began. As he rejoices in God and the knowledge he will gain in the future, he is blessed with a view of a stunning moon-rainbow, which lifts his worship to a state of ecstasy. During which—
“All at once I looked up with terror— He was there. He himself with His human air, On the narrow pathway, just before: I saw the back of Him, no more— He had left the chapel, then, as I. I forgot all about the sky. No face: only the sight Of a sweepy garment, vast and white, With a hem that I could recognize. I felt terror, no surprise: My mind filled with the cataract, At one bound, of the mighty fact. I remembered, He did say Doubtless, that, to this world’s end, Where two or three should meet and pray, He would be in the midst, their friend: Certainly He was there with them. And my pulses leaped for joy Of the golden thought without alloy, That I saw His very vesture’s hem. Then rushed the blood back, cold and clear, With a fresh enhancing shiver of fear.”
“Suddenly, I looked up in terror— He was there. He himself, with His human presence, On the narrow path, right in front of me: I could only see the back of Him— He had left the chapel, just like I had. I completely forgot about the sky. No face: just the sight Of a flowing garment, large and white, With a hem that I recognized. I felt terror, not surprise: My mind filled with the overwhelming reality, In a single leap, of the powerful truth. I remembered, He said Surely, that until the end of the world, Where two or three gather and pray, He would be in their midst, a friend: And He certainly was there with them. My heart raced with joy At the pure thought That I saw the very hem of His garment. Then the blood rushed back, cold and clear, With a fresh, chilling wave of fear.”
Praying for forgiveness wherein he has sinned, and prostrate in adoration before the form of Christ, he is “caught up in the whirl and drift” of his vesture, and carried along with him over the earth.
Praying for forgiveness for his sins and bowing in worship before the figure of Christ, he is “caught up in the whirl and drift” of his garments and swept along with him across the earth.
Stopping at length at the entrance of St. Peter’s in Rome, he remains outside, while the form disappears within. He is able, however, to see all that goes on, in the crowded, hushed interior. It is high mass. He has been carried at once from the little chapel to the opposite aesthetic pole. From the entry, where—
Stopping at last at the entrance of St. Peter’s in Rome, he stays outside while the figure disappears inside. However, he can still see everything happening in the busy, quiet interior. It’s high mass. He has been instantly transported from the small chapel to the other extreme of beauty. From the entrance, where—
“The flame of the single tallow candle In the cracked square lanthorn I stood under Shot its blue lip at me,”
“The flame of the single tallow candle In the cracked square lantern I stood under Shot its blue tip at me,”
to— “This miraculous dome of God— This colonnade With arms wide open to embrace The entry of the human race To the breast of.... what is it, yon building, Ablaze in front, all paint and gilding, With marble for brick, and stones of price For garniture of the edifice?”
to— “This amazing dome of God— This colonnade With arms wide open to welcome The entry of humanity To the heart of.... what is that building, Glowing in front, all painted and gilded, With marble for brick, and precious stones For decoration of the structure?”
to “those fountains”—
to "those water features"—
“Growing up eternally Each to a musical water-tree, Whose blossoms drop, a glittering boon, Before my eyes, in the light of the moon, To the granite lavers underneath;”
“Growing up forever Each to a musical water tree, Whose flowers fall, a sparkling gift, Before my eyes, in the moonlight, To the granite basins below;”
from the singing of the chapel to the organ self-restrained, that “holds his breath and grovels latent,” while expecting the elevation of the Host. Christ is within; he is left without. Reflecting on the matter, he thinks his Lord would not require him to go in, though he himself entered, because there was a way to reach him there. By-and-by, however, his heart awakes and declares that Love goes beyond error with them, and if the Intellect be kept down, yet Love is the oppressor; so next time he resolves to enter and praise along with them. The passage commencing, “Oh, love of those first Christian days!” describing Love’s victory over Intellect, is very fine.
from the singing of the chapel to the self-restrained organ, that “holds its breath and hides away,” while waiting for the elevation of the Host. Christ is inside; he feels left out. Reflecting on this, he thinks his Lord wouldn't expect him to go in, even though he himself entered, because there was a way to reach him there. Eventually, though, his heart awakens and declares that Love surpasses mistakes made by them, and if Intellect is pushed down, Love still prevails; so next time he decides to go in and join them in praise. The passage starting with, “Oh, love of those first Christian days!” describing Love’s triumph over Intellect, is truly beautiful.
Again he is caught up and carried along as before. This time halt is made at the door of a college in a German town, in which the class-room of one of the professors is open for lecture this Christmas Eve. It is, intellectually considered, the opposite pole to both the Methodist chapel and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, fearful of losing the society of “any that call themselves his friends.” He describes the assembled company, and the entrance of “the hawk-nosed, high-cheek-boned professor,” of part of whose Christmas Eve’s discourse he proceeds to give the substance. The professor takes it for granted that “plainly no such life was liveable,” and goes on to inquire what explanation of the phenomena of the life of Christ it were best to adopt. Not that it mattered much, “so the idea be left the same.” Taking the popular story, for convenience sake, and separating all extraneous matter from it, he found that Christ was simply a good man, with an honest, true heart; whose disciples thought him divine; and whose doctrine, though quite mistaken by those who received and published it, “had yet a meaning quite as respectable.” Here the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave him; reflecting that though the air may be poisoned by the sects, yet here “the critic leaves no air to poison.” His meditations and arguments following, are among the most valuable passages in the book. The professor, notwithstanding the idea of Christ has by him been exhausted of all that is peculiar to it, yet recommends him to the veneration and worship of his hearers, “rather than all who went before him, and all who ever followed after.” But why? says the poet. For his intellect,
Again, he is swept up and carried along as before. This time, they stop at the entrance of a college in a German town, where one of the professors is giving a lecture this Christmas Eve. Intellectually speaking, it’s the complete opposite of both the Methodist chapel and the Roman Basilica. The poet enters, worried about losing the company of “anyone who calls themselves his friends.” He describes the gathered crowd and the arrival of “the hawk-nosed, high-cheeked professor,” and shares the essence of part of the professor’s Christmas Eve lecture. The professor assumes that “clearly no such life was liveable” and goes on to discuss what explanation of Christ’s life would be best. However, it didn’t matter much, “as long as the idea remained intact.” Taking the popular story for convenience and stripping away all the extras, he concludes that Christ was simply a good man with an honest, true heart; his disciples believed he was divine, and though his teachings were misunderstood by those who received and spread them, “they still had a meaning that was quite respectable.” Here, the poet takes advantage of a pause to leave, reflecting that even though the air might be polluted by different sects, here “the critic leaves no air to poison.” His thoughts and arguments that follow are some of the most valuable parts of the book. The professor, despite having stripped Christ of everything unique about him, still recommends him for the respect and worship of his audience, “more so than anyone who came before him or any who came after.” But why? the poet wonders. For his intellect,
“Which tells me simply what was told (If mere morality, bereft Of the God in Christ, be all that’s left) Elsewhere by voices manifold?”
“Which tells me simply what was said (If just morality, without The God in Christ, is all that's left) Elsewhere by many different voices?”
with which must be combined the fact that this intellect of his did not save him from making the “important stumble,” of saying that he and God were one. “But his followers misunderstood him,” says the objector. Perhaps so; but “the stumbling-block, his speech, who laid it?” Well then, is it on the score of his goodness that he should rule his race?
with which must be combined the fact that his intellect did not save him from making the “important stumble” of saying that he and God were one. “But his followers misunderstood him,” says the objector. Maybe so; but “the stumbling block, his speech, who laid it?” Well then, is it because of his goodness that he should lead his people?
“You pledge Your fealty to such rule? What, all— From Heavenly John and Attic Paul, And that brave weather-battered Peter, Whose stout faith only stood completer For buffets, sinning to be pardoned, As the more his hands hauled nets, they hardened— All, down to you, the man of men, Professing here at Göttingen, Compose Christ’s flock! So, you and I Are sheep of a good man! And why?”
“You swear your loyalty to such rule? What, all— From the Heavenly John and Attic Paul, And that brave, weather-beaten Peter, Whose strong faith only got stronger After hardships, sinning to be forgiven, As the more his hands pulled nets, they toughened— All, down to you, the man among men, Declaring here at Göttingen, Make up Christ’s flock! So, you and I Are followers of a good man! And why?”
Did Christ invent goodness? or did he only demonstrate that of which the common conscience was judge?
Did Christ invent goodness, or did he just show what the common conscience already recognized?
“I would decree Worship for such mere demonstration And simple work of nomenclature, Only the day I praised, not Nature, But Harvey, for the circulation.”
“I would declare Worship for such a simple display And straightforward work of naming, Only the day I praised, not Nature, But Harvey, for the circulation.”
The worst man, says the poet, knows more than the best man does. God in Christ appeared to men to help them to do, to awaken the life within them.
The worst person, the poet says, knows more than the best person does. God in Christ came to people to help them do, to awaken the life inside them.
“Morality to the uttermost, Supreme in Christ as we all confess, Why need we prove would avail no jot To make Him God, if God he were not? What is the point where Himself lays stress? Does the precept run, ‘Believe in good, In justice, truth, now understood For the first time?’—or, ‘Believe in ME, Who lived and died, yet essentially Am Lord of life’? Whoever can take The same to his heart, and for mere love’s sake Conceive of the love,—that man obtains A new truth; no conviction gains Of an old one only, made intense By a fresh appeal to his faded sense.”
“Morality at its core, Supreme in Christ as we all acknowledge, Why should we prove would make no difference To make Him God, if He weren't God? What is the point where He emphasizes? Does the message say, 'Believe in good, In justice, truth, now grasped For the first time?'—or, 'Believe in ME, Who lived and died, yet essentially Am the Lord of life'? Anyone who can take This to heart, and for the sake of love Imagine the love,—that person receives A new truth; not just a stronger belief In an old one, deepened By a fresh appeal to their dimmed understanding.”
In this lies the most direct practical argument with regard to what is commonly called the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom those that magnify him the least confess to be a good man, the best of men. He says, “I and the Father are one.” Will an earnest heart, knowing this, be likely to draw back, or will it draw nearer to behold the great sight? Will not such a heart feel: “A good man like this would not have said so, were it not so. In all probability the great truth of God lies behind this veil.” The reality of Christ’s nature is not to be proved by argument. He must be beheld. The manifestation of Him must “gravitate inwards” on the soul. It is by looking that one can know. As a mathematical theorem is to be proved only by the demonstration of that theorem itself, not by talking about it; so Christ must prove himself to the human soul through being beheld. The only proof of Christ’s divinity is his humanity. Because his humanity is not comprehended, his divinity is doubted; and while the former is uncomprehended, an assent to the latter is of little avail. For a man to theorize theologically in any form, while he has not so apprehended Christ, or to neglect the gazing on him for the attempt to substantiate to himself any form of belief respecting him, is to bring on himself, in a matter of divine import, such errors as the expounders of nature in old time brought on themselves, when they speculated on what a thing must be, instead of observing what it was; this must be having for its foundation not self-evident truth, but notions whose chief strength lay in their preconception. There are thoughts and feelings that cannot be called up in the mind by any power of will or force of imagination; which, being spiritual, must arise in the soul when in its highest spiritual condition; when the mind, indeed, like a smooth lake, reflects only heavenly images. A steadfast regarding of Him will produce this calm, and His will be the heavenly form reflected from the mental depth.
In this lies the most straightforward practical argument regarding what is often referred to as the Divinity of Christ. Here is a man whom even those who admire him the least acknowledge to be a good person, the best of people. He says, “I and the Father are one.” Will a sincere heart, knowing this, likely pull back, or will it be drawn closer to witness the great truth? Won't such a heart feel: “A good man like this wouldn’t have said this unless it were true. Most likely, the profound truth of God is behind this veil.” The essence of Christ’s nature cannot be proven through arguments. He must be experienced. The manifestation of Him must “gravitate inwards” to the soul. It is through observation that one can truly know. Just like a mathematical theorem needs to be proved through its own demonstration and not by simply discussing it, Christ must reveal himself to the human soul through being seen. The only evidence of Christ’s divinity is his humanity. Since his humanity is not fully understood, his divinity is questioned; and while the former remains unclear, agreeing with the latter is of little use. For someone to theorize about God in any way, without truly grasping Christ, or to ignore focusing on him in favor of trying to justify any belief about him, is to invite errors in a matter of divine significance, akin to the ancient scholars who speculated on what something must be rather than observing what it actually was; this “must be” is based not on self-evident truth, but on ideas whose primary strength lies in their assumptions. There are thoughts and feelings that can't be summoned by willpower or imagination; they are spiritual and can only arise in the soul when it is in its highest spiritual state; when the mind, like a calm lake, reflects only heavenly images. Consistent focus on Him will create this tranquility, and His will be the divine form mirrored from the depths of the mind.
But to return to the poem. The fact that Christ remains inside, leads the poet to reflect, in the spirit of Him who found all the good in men he could, neglecting no point of contact which presented itself, whether there was anything at this lecture with which he could sympathize; and he finds that the heart of the professor does something to rescue him from the error of his brain. In his brain, even, “if Love’s dead there, it has left a ghost.” For when the natural deduction from his argument would be that our faith
But back to the poem. The fact that Christ stays inside prompts the poet to think, in the spirit of Him who recognized all the good in people he could, not missing any connection that came up, whether there was anything in this lecture he could relate to; and he finds that the professor's heart helps him escape the mistakes of his mind. Even in his mind, “if Love’s dead there, it has left a ghost.” Because when the logical conclusion from his argument suggests that our faith
“Be swept forthwith to its natural dust-hole,— He bids us, when we least expect it, Take back our faith—if it be not just whole, Yet a pearl indeed, as his tests affect it, Which fact pays the damage done rewardingly, So, prize we our dust and ashes accordingly!”
“Be taken straight to its natural resting place,” He asks us, when we least expect it, To reclaim our faith—if it’s not completely intact, Yet it’s still a gem, as his trials suggest, This fact compensates for the harm done well, So let’s value our dust and ashes accordingly!”
Love as well as learning being necessary to the understanding of the New Testament, it is to the poet matter of regret that “loveless learning” should leave its proper work, and make such havoc in that which belongs not to it. But while he sits “talking with his mind,” his mood begins to degenerate from sympathy with that which is good to indifference towards all forms, and he feels inclined to rest quietly in the enjoyment of his own religious confidence, and trouble himself in no wise about the faith of his neighbours; for doubtless all are partakers of the central light, though variously refracted by the varied translucency of the mental prism....
Love and learning are both essential for understanding the New Testament, so the poet feels regret that "loveless learning" neglects its true purpose and causes chaos in areas that don't belong to it. But while he sits “talking with his mind,” his attitude shifts from being sympathetic towards what is good to becoming indifferent to all forms, and he finds himself wanting to simply enjoy his own religious confidence without being concerned about the faith of others; after all, everyone shares in the central light, even though it's differently refracted by the unique transparency of each person's mind....
“‘Twas the horrible storm began afresh! The black night caught me in his mesh, Whirled me up, and flung me prone! I was left on the college-step alone. I looked, and far there, ever fleeting Far, far away, the receding gesture, And looming of the lessening vesture, Swept forward from my stupid hand, While I watched my foolish heart expand In the lazy glow of benevolence O’er the various modes of man’s belief. I sprang up with fear’s vehemence. —Needs must there be one way, our chief Best way of worship: let me strive To find it, and when found, contrive My fellows also take their share. This constitutes my earthly care: God’s is above it and distinct!”
“The terrible storm began again! The dark night trapped me in its grip, Whirled me around, and threw me down! I found myself alone on the college steps. I looked, and far away, always fading Far, far away, the disappearing sign, And the shadow of the dwindling garment, Swept away from my foolish hand, While I watched my naive heart grow In the lazy glow of kindness Over the different beliefs of mankind. I jumped up with a surge of fear. —There must be one true way, our main Best way of worship: let me seek To find it, and when I do, find a way To help my fellow beings share it. This is my earthly concern: God’s is above it and separate!”
The symbolism in the former part of this extract is grand. As soon as he ceases to look practically on the phenomena with which he is surrounded, he is enveloped in storm and darkness, and sees only in the far distance the disappearing skirt of his Lord’s garment. God’s care is over all, he goes on to say; I must do my part. If I look speculatively on the world, there is nothing but dimness and mystery. If I look practically on it,
The symbolism in the earlier part of this excerpt is powerful. The moment he stops focusing practically on the things around him, he finds himself surrounded by chaos and darkness, only catching a glimpse in the distance of his Lord’s garment fading away. He continues to say that God’s care is everywhere; I must do my part. If I view the world imaginatively, all I see is confusion and mystery. If I focus practically on it,
“No mere mote’s-breadth, but teems immense With witnessings of Providence.”
“No tiny speck, but brims over with evidence of a higher power.”
And whether the world which I seek to help censures or praises me—that is nothing to me. My life—how is it with me?
And whether the world I’m trying to help criticizes or praises me—that doesn’t matter to me. What about my life—how am I doing?
“Soul of mine, hadst thou caught and held By the hem of the vesture.... And I caught At the flying robe, and, unrepelled, Was lapped again in its folds full-fraught With warmth and wonder and delight, God’s mercy being infinite. And scarce had the words escaped my tongue, When, at a passionate bound, I sprung Out of the wandering world of rain, Into the little chapel again.”
“My soul, if you had grabbed and held The edge of the garment.... And I reached For the flying robe, and, unresisted, Was wrapped once more in its folds rich With warmth and wonder and joy, God’s mercy being boundless. And barely had the words left my mouth, When, with a passionate leap, I jumped Out of the drifting world of rain, Into the little chapel again.”
Had he dreamed? how then could he report of the sermon and the preacher? of which and of whom he proceeds to give a very external account. But correcting himself—
Had he dreamed? How could he then talk about the sermon and the preacher? He goes on to give a very surface-level account of both. But then he corrects himself—
“Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks? Shall I take on me to change his tasks, And dare, despatched to a river-head For a simple draught of the element, Neglect the thing for which He sent, And return with another thing instead! Saying .... ‘Because the water found Welling up from underground, Is mingled with the taints of earth, While Thou, I know, dost laugh at dearth, And couldest, at a word, convulse The world with the leap of its river-pulse,— Therefore I turned from the oozings muddy, And bring thee a chalice I found, instead. See the brave veins in the breccia ruddy! One would suppose that the marble bled. What matters the water? A hope I have nursed, That the waterless cup will quench my thirst.’ —Better have knelt at the poorest stream That trickles in pain from the straitest rift! For the less or the more is all God’s gift, Who blocks up or breaks wide the granite seam. And here, is there water or not, to drink?”
“Ha! Is God mocked, as He asks? Should I take it upon myself to change His plans, And dare, sent to a river’s source For a simple drink of water, Neglect the very thing He sent me for, And come back with something else instead! Saying .... ‘Because the water that rises From the ground is mixed with the dirt, While You, I know, laugh at scarcity, And could, with just a word, shake The world with the surge of its rivers,’— So I turned away from the murky muck, And brought you a cup I found instead. Look at the bold veins in the red stone! One might think the marble was bleeding. What does the water matter? I’ve held onto hope, That this empty cup will quench my thirst.’ —It would have been better to kneel at the simplest stream That trickles painfully from the tightest crack! For whether it’s less or more is all God’s gift, Who either blocks or breaks wide the granite seam. And now, is there water or not to drink?”
He comes to the conclusion, that the best for him is that mode of worship which partakes the least of human forms, and brings him nearest to the spiritual; and, while expressing good wishes for the Pope and the professor—
He comes to the conclusion that the best way for him to worship is the one that involves the least human forms and brings him closest to the spiritual; and, while wishing the Pope and the professor well—
“Meantime, in the still recurring fear Lest myself, at unawares, be found, While attacking the choice of my neighbours round, Without my own made—I choose here!”
“Meanwhile, in the ever-present fear That I might unknowingly be caught, While judging the choices of those around me, Without having made my own—I choose here!”
He therefore joins heartily in the hymn which is sung by the congregation of the little chapel at the close of their worship. And this concludes the poem.
He wholeheartedly joins in the hymn sung by the congregation of the small chapel at the end of their worship. And this concludes the poem.
What is the central point from which this poem can be regarded? It does not seem to be very hard to find. Novalis has said: “Die Philosophie ist eigentlich Heimweh, ein Trieb überall zu Hause zu sein.” (Philosophy is really home-sickness, an impulse to be at home everywhere.) The life of a man here, if life it be, and not the vain image of what might be a life, is a continual attempt to find his place, his centre of recipiency, and active agency. He wants to know where he is, and where he ought to be and can be; for, rightly considered, the position a man ought to occupy is the only one he truly can occupy. It is a climbing and striving to reach that point of vision where the multiplex crossings and apparent intertwistings of the lines of fact and feeling and duty shall manifest themselves as a regular and symmetrical design. A contradiction, or a thing unrelated, is foreign and painful to him, even as the rocky particle in the gelatinous substance of the oyster; and, like the latter, he can only rid himself of it by encasing it in the pearl-like enclosure of faith; believing that hidden there lies the necessity for a higher theory of the universe than has yet been generated in his soul. The quest for this home-centre, in the man who has faith, is calm and ceaseless; in the man whose faith is weak, it is stormy and intermittent. Unhappy is that man, of necessity, whose perceptions are keener than his faith is strong. Everywhere Nature herself is putting strange questions to him; the human world is full of dismay and confusion; his own conscience is bewildered by contradictory appearances; all which may well happen to the man whose eye is not yet single, whose heart is not yet pure. He is not at home; his soul is astray amid people of a strange speech and a stammering tongue. But the faithful man is led onward; in the stillness that his confidence produces arise the bright images of truth; and visions of God, which are only beheld in solitary places, are granted to his soul.
What is the main idea from which this poem can be viewed? It doesn't seem too hard to identify. Novalis said, “Philosophy is really homesickness, a drive to be at home everywhere.” A person's life here, if it truly is life and not just a hollow idea of what life could be, is a constant effort to find his place, his center for receiving and acting. He wants to know where he is, where he should be, and where he can be; because, when you think about it, the position a person should occupy is the only one he truly can occupy. It’s about climbing and striving to reach that viewpoint where the many crossings and apparent entanglements of facts, feelings, and duties reveal themselves as a clear and organized design. A contradiction, or something disconnected, feels foreign and painful to him, much like the gritty particle in the soft substance of the oyster; and similar to the oyster, he can only get rid of it by surrounding it with the pearl-like covering of faith, believing that hidden in there lies the need for a deeper understanding of the universe than what he has generated in his soul. The search for this home center, in a person with faith, is calm and continuous; in someone whose faith is weak, it’s turbulent and variable. Unfortunately, that person is doomed to struggle, whose perceptions are sharper than his faith is solid. Everywhere, Nature herself is posing strange questions to him; the human world is filled with distress and chaos; his own conscience is puzzled by conflicting appearances; all of which can easily happen to someone whose vision is still not clear, whose heart is yet to be pure. He is not at home; his soul is lost among people speaking a strange language and jumbling their words. But the faithful person is guided forward; in the stillness that his confidence brings forth, the bright images of truth arise; and visions of God, which can only be seen in quiet places, are granted to his soul.
“O struggling with the darkness all the night, And visited all night by troops of stars!”
“Oh, battling with the darkness all night, And surrounded all night by groups of stars!”
What is true of the whole, is true of its parts. In all the relations of life, in all the parts of the great whole of existence, the true man is ever seeking his home. This poem seems to show us such a quest. “Here I am in the midst of many who belong to the same family. They differ in education, in habits, in forms of thought; but they are called by the same name. What position with regard to them am I to assume? I am a Christian; how am I to live in relation to Christians?” Such seems to be something like the poet’s thought. What central position can he gain, which, while it answers best the necessities of his own soul with regard to God, will enable him to feel himself connected with the whole Christian world, and to sympathize with all; so that he may not be alone, but one of the whole. Certainly the position necessary for both requirements is one and the same. He that is isolated from his brethren, loses one of the greatest helps to draw near to God. Now, in this time, which is so peculiarly transitional, this is a question of no little import for all who, while they gladly forsake old, or rather modern, theories, for what is to them a more full development of Christianity as well as a return to the fountain-head, yet seek to be saved from the danger of losing sympathy with those who are content with what they are compelled to abandon. Seeing much in the common modes of thought and belief that is inconsistent with Christianity, and even opposed to it, they yet cannot but see likewise in many of them a power of spiritual good; which, though not dependent on the peculiar mode, is yet enveloped, if not embodied, in that mode.
What’s true for the whole is true for its parts. In all aspects of life, in all parts of the greater whole of existence, a true person is always seeking their home. This poem seems to reflect that quest. “Here I am among many who belong to the same family. They differ in education, habits, and ways of thinking; but they share the same name. What role should I take among them? I’m a Christian; how should I live in relation to other Christians?” This appears to capture the poet’s thoughts. What central position can he hold that, while meeting the needs of his own soul concerning God, allows him to feel connected to the entire Christian community and empathize with all, so he doesn’t feel isolated, but instead part of the whole? Clearly, the position needed to satisfy both requirements is the same. Anyone who isolates themselves from their peers loses one of the greatest aids in drawing closer to God. In this distinctly transitional time, this is a question of significant importance for everyone who, while gladly moving away from old, or rather modern, theories in pursuit of a fuller development of Christianity and a return to its origins, also seeks to avoid the risk of losing connection with those who are satisfied with what they must leave behind. They see many common beliefs and thoughts that conflict with Christianity and even oppose it, yet they cannot ignore the spiritual good present in many of them, which, although not dependent on the specific mode of belief, is still wrapped up in, if not embodied by, that mode.
“Ask, else, these ruins of humanity, This flesh worn out to rags and tatters, This soul at struggle with insanity, Who thence take comfort, can I doubt, Which an empire gained, were a loss without.”
“Ask, otherwise, these ruins of humanity, This flesh worn down to rags and tatters, This soul wrestling with insanity, Who then finds comfort, can I doubt, Which an empire gained, would be a loss without.”
The love of God is the soul of Christianity. Christ is the body of that truth. The love of God is the creating and redeeming, the forming and satisfying power of the universe. The love of God is that which kills evil and glorifies goodness. It is the safety of the great whole. It is the home-atmosphere of all life. Well does the poet of the “Christmas Eve” say:—
The love of God is the essence of Christianity. Christ represents that truth. The love of God is the creative and redeeming force, shaping and fulfilling the universe. It is what destroys evil and honors goodness. It provides safety for the greater good. It is the nurturing environment for all life. The poet of "Christmas Eve" expresses this beautifully:—
“The loving worm within its clod, Were diviner than a loveless God Amid his worlds, I will dare to say.”
“The caring worm in its dirt, is more divine than a God without love among his creations, I will boldly claim.”
Surely then, inasmuch as man is made in the image of God nothing less than a love in the image of God’s love, all-embracing, quietly excusing, heartily commending, can constitute the blessedness of man; a love not insensible to that which is foreign to it, but overcoming it with good. Where man loves in his kind, even as God loves in His kind, then man is saved, then he has reached the unseen and eternal. But if, besides the necessity to love that lies in a man, there be likewise in the man whom he ought to love something in common with him, then the law of love has increased force. If that point of sympathy lies at the centre of the being of each, and if these centres are brought into contact, then the circles of their being will be, if not coincident, yet concentric. We must wait patiently for the completion of God’s great harmony, and meantime love everywhere and as we can.
Surely, since humans are made in the image of God, nothing less than a love that reflects God's love—one that is all-encompassing, forgiving, and genuinely uplifting—can represent true happiness for humanity. This love is not blind to differences but overcomes them with goodness. When humans love each other as God loves, they find salvation and connect with the unseen and eternal. However, beyond the inherent need to love, if the person being loved shares something in common with them, the power of love is even stronger. If that shared connection is at the core of each individual, and if these cores come together, their lives will not be identical but will be harmoniously intertwined. We must patiently await the fulfillment of God's grand design while continuing to love wherever and however we can.
But the great lesson which this poem teaches, and which is taught more directly in the “Easter Day” (forming part of the same volume), is that the business of a man’s life is to be a Christian. A man has to do with God first; in Him only can he find the unity and harmony he seeks. To be one with Him is to be at the centre of things. If one acknowledges that God has revealed himself in Christ; that God has recognized man as his family, by appearing among them in their form; surely that very acknowledgment carries with it the admission that man’s chief concern is with this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and manifest, herein? If this world is God’s making, and he is present in all nature; if he rules all things and is present in all history; if the soul of man is in his image, with all its circles of thought and multiplicity of forms; and if for man it be not enough to be rooted in God, but he must likewise lay hold on God; then surely no question, in whatever direction, can be truly answered, save by him who stands at the side of Christ. The doings of God cannot be understood, save by him who has the mind of Christ, which is the mind of God. All things must be strange to one who sympathizes not with the thought of the Maker, who understands not the design of the Artist. Where is he to begin? What light has he by which to classify? How will he bring order out of this apparent confusion, when the order is higher than his thought; when the confusion to him is caused by the order’s being greater than he can comprehend? Because he stands outside and not within, he sees an entangled maze of forces, where there is in truth an intertwining dance of harmony. There is for no one any solution of the world’s mystery, or of any part of its mystery, except he be able to say with our poet:—
But the big lesson that this poem teaches, and which is explained more directly in "Easter Day" (part of the same collection), is that a person's main purpose in life is to be a Christian. A person has to connect with God first; only in Him can they find the unity and harmony they are looking for. Being one with Him is to be at the center of everything. If one admits that God revealed Himself in Christ; that God has recognized humanity as His family by appearing among them in their form; then that acknowledgment means that a person's primary focus should be on this revelation. What does God say and mean, teach and show through it? If this world is made by God, and He is present in all of nature; if He governs everything and is involved in all of history; if humanity is made in His image, with all its circles of thought and varied forms; and if it’s not enough for a person to be rooted in God, but they must also grasp onto Him; then certainly, no question, no matter the direction, can truly be answered except by the one who stands alongside Christ. The actions of God can only be understood by someone who has the mind of Christ, which is the mind of God. Everything must seem strange to someone who does not resonate with the thoughts of the Creator, who does not grasp the design of the Artist. Where would they start? What light do they have to make sense of things? How can they bring order out of this apparent chaos, when the order is beyond their understanding; when what seems like confusion to them is actually caused by an order that surpasses their comprehension? Because they stand outside rather than within, they see a tangled maze of forces, where there is in reality a beautiful dance of harmony. There is no solution to the mystery of the world, or any part of it, unless one can say with our poet:—
“I have looked to Thee from the beginning, Straight up to Thee through all the world, Which, like an idle scroll, lay furled To nothingness on either side: And since the time Thou wast descried, Spite of the weak heart, so have I Lived ever, and so fain would die, Living and dying, Thee before!”
“I've looked to You from the start, Directly up to You through all the world, Which, like a useless scroll, was unfurled To nothingness on either side: And since the moment You were seen, Despite my weak heart, I have lived, And so I would gladly die, Living and dying, with You in mind!”
Christianity is not the ornament, or even complement, of life; it is its necessity; it is life itself glorified into God’s ideal.
Christianity isn't just an accessory or even a nice addition to life; it's essential to it; it's life itself elevated to God's ideal.
Dr. Chalmers, from considering the minuteness of the directions given to Moses for the making of the tabernacle, was led to think that he himself was wrong in attending too little to the “petite morale” of dress. Will this be excuse enough for occupying a few sentences with the rhyming of this poem? Certainly the rhymes of a poem form no small part of its artistic existence. Probably there is a deeper meaning in this part of the poetic art than has yet been made clear to poet’s mind. In this poem the rhymes have their share in its humorous charm. The writer’s power of using double and triple rhymes is remarkable, and the effect is often pleasing, even where they are used in the more solemn parts of the poem. Take the lines:—
Dr. Chalmers, after considering the detailed instructions given to Moses for building the tabernacle, began to believe that he was mistaken in paying too little attention to the “petite morale” of clothing. Is this a good enough reason to spend a few sentences discussing the rhymes of this poem? Definitely, the rhymes in a poem are a significant part of its artistic essence. There’s likely a deeper significance in this aspect of poetic art that hasn't been fully realized by poets yet. In this poem, the rhymes contribute to its humorous appeal. The writer’s skill in using double and triple rhymes is impressive, and the effect is often enjoyable, even in the more serious sections of the poem. Consider these lines:—
“No! love which, on earth, amid all the shows of it, Has ever been seen the sole good of life in it, The love, ever growing there, spite of the strife in it, Shall arise, made perfect, from death’s repose of it.”
“No! love that, on earth, among all its displays, Has ever been recognized as life's only good, The love, always growing there, despite the struggles, Shall emerge, perfected, from the peace of death.”
A poem is a thing not for the understanding or heart only, but likewise for the ear; or, rather, for the understanding and heart through the ear. The best poem is best set forth when best read. If, then, there be rhymes which, when read aloud, do, by their composition of words, prevent the understanding from laying hold on the separate words, while the ear lays hold on the rhymes, the perfection of the art must here be lost sight of, notwithstanding the completeness which the rhyming manifests on close examination. For instance, in “equipt yours,” “Scriptures;” “Manchester,” “haunches stir;” or “affirm any,” “Germany;” where two words rhyme with one word. But there are very few of them that are objectionable on account of this difficulty and necessity of rapid analysis.
A poem isn’t just for understanding or feeling; it’s also for the ear, or more accurately, it’s for both understanding and feeling through listening. The best poem shines when it’s read aloud. If there are rhymes that, when spoken, complicate the comprehension of the individual words while the ear focuses on the rhymes, the true artistry can be overlooked, even if the rhyming appears complete upon closer inspection. For example, in “equipt yours,” “Scriptures;” “Manchester,” “haunches stir;” or “affirm any,” “Germany;” where two words rhyme with one. However, only a few of these are problematic due to this challenge and the need for quick analysis.
One of the most wonderful things in the poem is, that so much of argument is expressed in a species of verse, which one might be inclined, at first sight, to think the least fitted for embodying it. But, in fact, the same amount of argument in any other kind of verse would, in all likelihood, have been intolerably dull as a work of art. Here the verse is full of life and vigour, flagging never. Where, in several parts, the exact meaning is difficult to reach, this results chiefly from the dramatic rapidity and condensation of the thoughts. The argumentative power is indeed wonderful; the arguments themselves powerful in their simplicity, and embodied in words of admirable force. The poem is full of pathos and humour; full of beauty and grandeur, earnestness and truth.
One of the most remarkable things about the poem is that so much argument is expressed in a type of verse that one might initially think is the least suitable for conveying it. However, the same amount of argument in any other type of verse would likely have been unbearably dull as a work of art. Here, the verse is alive and energetic, never losing momentum. In some parts, the exact meaning can be hard to grasp, primarily due to the dramatic speed and conciseness of the thoughts. The argumentative power is indeed impressive; the arguments themselves are strong in their simplicity and expressed in striking words. The poem is rich in emotion and humor, as well as beauty and grandeur, earnestness and truth.
ESSAYS ON SOME OF THE FORMS OF LITERATURE
[Footnote: “Essays on some of the Forms of Literature.” By T.T. Lynch, Author of “Theophilus Trinal.” Longmans.]
[Footnote: “Essays on some of the Forms of Literature.” By T.T. Lynch, Author of “Theophilus Trinal.” Longmans.]
Schoppe, the satiric chorus of Jean Paul’s romance of Titan, makes his appearance at a certain masked ball, carrying in front of him a glass case, in which the ball is remasked, repeated, and again reflected in a mirror behind, by a set of puppets, ludicrously aping the apery of the courtiers, whose whole life and outward manifestation was but a body-mask mechanically moved with the semblance of real life and action. The court simulates reality. The masks are a multiform mockery at their own unreality, and as such are regarded by Schoppe, who takes them off with the utmost ridicule in his masked puppet-show, which, with its reflection in the mirror, is again indefinitely multiplied in the many-sided reflector of Schoppe’s, or of Richter’s, or of the reader’s own imagination. The successive retreating and beholding in this scene is suggested to the reviewer by the fact that the last of these essays by Mr. Lynch is devoted in part to reviews. So that the reviews review books,—Mr. Lynch reviews the reviews, and the present Reviewer finds himself (somewhat presumptuously, it may be) attempting to review Mr. Lynch. In this, however, his office must be very different from that of Schoppe (for there is a deeper and more real correspondence between the position of the showman and the reviewer than that outward resemblance which first caused the one to suggest the other). The latter’s office, in the present instance, was, by mockery, to destroy the false, the very involution of the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His glass case was simply a review uttered by shapes and wires instead of words and handwriting. And the work of the true critic must sometimes be to condemn, and, as far as his strength can reach, utterly to destroy the false,—scorching and withering its seeming beauty, till it is reduced to its essence and original groundwork of dust and ashes. It is only, however, when it wears the form of beauty which is the garment of truth, and so, like the Erl-maidens, has power to bewitch, that it is worth the notice and attack of the critic. Many forms of error, perhaps most, are better left alone to die of their own weakness, for the galvanic battery of criticism only helps to perpetuate their ghastly life. The highest work of the critic, however, must surely be to direct attention to the true, in whatever form it may have found utterance. But on this let us hear Mr. Lynch himself in the last of these four lectures which were delivered by him at the Royal Institution, Manchester, and are now before us in the form of a book:—
Schoppe, the satirical chorus in Jean Paul's romance "Titan," shows up at a masked ball, carrying a glass case in front of him. Inside the case, the ball is masked again, repeated, and reflected in a mirror behind it, with puppets humorously imitating the behaviors of the courtiers, whose entire existence was just a body-mask mechanically moved to resemble real life and action. The court pretends to be real. The masks are a varied mockery of their own unreality, and Schoppe views them as such, removing them with great ridicule in his puppet show, which, with its reflection in the mirror, multiplies endlessly in the many-sided reflector of Schoppe's, or Richter's, or the reader's imagination. The ongoing process of stepping back and observing in this scene is brought to the reviewer's attention by the fact that the last of Mr. Lynch's essays includes some reviews. So, the reviews talk about books—Mr. Lynch reviews the reviews, and the current Reviewer (perhaps a bit presumptuously) tries to review Mr. Lynch. However, in doing so, his role must be quite different from Schoppe's (since there is a deeper and more genuine connection between the roles of the showman and the reviewer than the superficial similarity that first linked the two). The latter’s task, in this case, is to use mockery to dismantle the falsehood, with the very complexity of the satire adding to the strength of the ridicule. His glass case is simply a review expressed through shapes and wires instead of words and writing. The true critic's role must sometimes involve condemning, and as much as possible, completely destroying the false—burning away its apparent beauty until it’s reduced to its essence and the raw material of dust and ashes. However, it is only when something takes on the form of beauty, which is the garment of truth, and thus, like the Erl-maidens, has the power to enchant, that it warrants the critic’s attention and attack. Many types of error, maybe most, are better left alone to fade away due to their own weaknesses, because the shock of criticism often just prolongs their dreadful existence. The greatest task of the critic must surely be to highlight the true, in whatever way it has found expression. But let's hear from Mr. Lynch himself in the last of these four lectures he delivered at the Royal Institution in Manchester, which are now available as a book:—
“The kritikos, the discerner, if he is ever saying to us, This is not gold; and never, This is; is either very humbly useful, or very perverse, or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we reply, we perceived as much. And this is not, he adds. True, we answer, but we see gold grains glittering out of its rude, dark mass. Well, at least, this is not, he proceeds. Perverse man! we retort, are you seeking what is not gold? We are inquiring for what is, and unfortunate indeed are we if, born into a world of Nature, and of Spirit once so rich, we are born but to find that it has spent or has lost all its wealth. Unhappy man would he be, who, walking his garden, should scent only the earthy savour of leaves dead or dying, never perceiving, and that afar off, the heavenly odour of roses fresh to-day from the Maker’s hands. The discerning by spiritual aroma may lead to discernment by the eye, and to that careful scrutiny, and thence greater knowledge, of which the eye is instrument and minister.”
“The critic, the evaluator, if he ever says to us, 'This is not gold'; and never, 'This is'; is either very humbly useful, very misguided, or very unfortunate. This is not gold, he says. Thank you, we reply, we noticed that much. And this is not, he adds. True, we say, but we see gold flakes shining out of its rough, dark mass. Well, at least, this is not, he continues. Misguided man! we snap back, are you looking for what isn’t gold? We are searching for what is, and how unfortunate it would be if, born into a world of Nature and Spirit once so rich, we find it has spent or lost all its riches. It would be a sad man indeed who, walking in his garden, could only smell the earthy scent of dead or dying leaves, never catching a whiff, even from afar, of the heavenly fragrance of roses fresh today from the Maker’s hands. The ability to discern by spiritual scent may lead to seeing more clearly, to that careful examination, and hence to greater knowledge, which the eye is both tool and servant.”
And again:—
And again:—
“The critic criticized, if dealt with in the worst fashion of his own class, must be pronounced a mere monster, ‘seeking whom he may devour;’ and, therefore, to be hunted and slain as speedily as possible, and stuffed for the museum, where he may be regarded with due horror, but in safety. But if dealt with after the best fashion of his class, a very honourable and beneficent office is assigned him, and he is warned only—though zealously—against its perversions. A judicial chair in the kingdom of human thought, filled by a man of true integrity, comprehensiveness, and delicacy of spirit, is a seat of terror and praise, whose powers are at once most fostering to whatever is good, most repressive of whatever is evil.... The critic, in his office of censurer, has need so much to controvert, expose, and punish, because of the abundance of literary faults; and as there is a right and a wrong side in warfare, so there will be in criticism. And as when soldiers are numerous, there will be not a few who are only tolerable, if even that, so of critics. But then the critic is more than the censurer; and in his higher and happier aspect appears before us and serves us, as the discoverer, the vindicator, and the eulogist of excellence.”
“The critic who criticizes, if handled in the worst way typical of his kind, must be seen as just a monster, ‘seeking whom he may devour;’ and thus, he should be hunted down and eliminated as quickly as possible, and then mounted for display in a museum, where he can be viewed with the appropriate horror, but safely. However, if handled in the best way typical of his class, a very honorable and beneficial role is assigned to him, with only a zealous warning against its abuses. A judicial position in the realm of human thought, occupied by a person of true integrity, depth, and sensitivity, is a seat of both fear and admiration, fostering all that is good and repressing all that is evil.... The critic, in his role of censor, must often engage in debate, expose, and penalize due to the multitude of literary faults; and just as there is a right and wrong side in war, there is one in criticism. And just as there will be many soldiers who are just barely acceptable, so too will there be critics. But the critic is more than just a censor; in his higher and more positive role, he appears before us and serves as the discoverer, the defender, and the admirer of excellence.”
But resisting the temptation to quote further from Mr. Lynch’s book on this matter of Criticism, which seemed the natural point of contact by which the Reviewer could lay hold on the book, he would pass on with the remark that his duty in the present instance is of the nobler and better sort—nobler and better, that is, with regard to the object, for duty in the man remains ever the same—namely, the exposition of excellence, and not of its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a man of true insight and large heart, who has already done good in the world, and will do more; although, possibly, he belongs rather to the last class of writers described by himself, in the extract I am about to give from this same essay, than to any of the preceding:—
But resisting the urge to quote more from Mr. Lynch’s book on criticism, which seemed like the perfect entry point for the Reviewer, he will move on with the comment that his duty in this situation is of a higher and better nature—higher and better, that is, in terms of the goal, since a person's duty stays the same—specifically, to highlight excellence rather than its opposite. Mr. Lynch is a person of genuine insight and a big heart, who has already made a positive impact in the world and will continue to do so; although, he might fit more into the last category of writers he describes in the excerpt I’m about to share from this same essay, rather than any of the previous ones:—
“Some of the best books are written avowedly, or with evident consciousness of the fact, for the select public that is constituted by minds of the deeper class, or minds the more advanced of their time. Such books may have but a restricted circulation and limited esteem in their own day, and may afterwards extend both their fame and the circle of their readers. Others of the best books, written with a pathos and a power that may be universally felt, appeal at once to the common humanity of the world, and get a response marvellously strong and immediate. An ordinary human eye and heart, whose glances are true, whose pulses healthy, will fit us to say of much that we read—This is good, that is poor. But only the educated eye and the experienced heart will fit us to judge of what relates to matters veiled from ordinary observation, and belonging to the profounder region of human thought and emotion. Powers, however, that the few only possess, may be required to paint what everybody can see, so that everybody shall say, How beautiful! how like! And powers adequate to do this in the finest manner will be often adequate to do much more—may produce, indeed, books or pictures, whose singular merit only the few shall perceive, and the many for awhile deny, and books or pictures which, while they give an immediate and pure pleasure to the common eye, shall give a far fuller and finer pleasure to that eye that is the organ of a deeper and more cultivated soul. There are, too, men of peculiar powers, rare and fine, who can never hope to please the large public, at least of their own age, but whose writings are a heart’s ease and heart’s joy to the select few, and serve such as a cup of heavenly comfort for the earth’s journey, and a lamp of heavenly light for the shadows of the way.”
“Some of the best books are clearly written for a specific audience composed of more thoughtful or advanced minds of their time. These books might have limited popularity and recognition when they're first published, but over time, their fame and readership can grow. Other excellent books, infused with emotions and power that resonate universally, connect immediately with the common humanity of the world, evoking a remarkably strong response. A regular person, with a genuine perspective and healthy emotions, can generally determine what is good or poor in what they read. However, only an educated perspective and an experienced heart can truly judge topics that are hidden from everyday understanding and relate to deeper realms of human thought and feeling. Interestingly, some extraordinary talents, which only a few possess, may be needed to depict what everyone can see in a way that makes everyone exclaim, 'How beautiful! How accurate!' Those with the greatest abilities to achieve this in the finest way may often excel at even more—creating works whose unique merits only a few understand, while the many might initially overlook them. These works can provide immediate and genuine pleasure to the average person, but offer a deeper and more enriching experience to those with more cultivated sensibilities. There are also individuals with exceptional gifts who may never appeal to the larger public in their lifetime, but whose writings offer great solace and joy to a select few, serving as a source of divine comfort during life's journey and a guiding light through its darker moments.”
One other extract from the general remarks on Books in this essay, and we will turn to another:—
One more excerpt from the general comments on Books in this essay, and then we will move on to another:—
“In all our estimation of the various qualities of books, if it be true that our reading assists our life, it is true also that our life assists our reading. If we let our spirit talk to us in undistracted moments—if we commune with friendly, serious Nature, face to face, often—if we pursue honourable aims in a steady progress—if we learn how a man’s best work falls below his thought, yet how still his failure prompts a tenderer love of his thought—if we live in sincere, frank relations with some few friends, joying in their joy, hearing the tale and sharing the pain of their grief, and in frequent interchange of honest, household sensibility—if we look about us on character, marking distinctly what we can see, and feeling the prompting of a hundred questions concerning what is out of our ken:—if we live thus, we shall be good readers and critics of books, and improving ones.”
“In all our assessment of different qualities of books, if it’s true that our reading enriches our lives, it’s also true that our lives enrich our reading. If we allow our minds to reflect in undistracted moments—if we connect with the beauty of nature face to face often—if we pursue meaningful goals with consistent effort—if we recognize how a person’s best work often falls short of their vision, yet how their failures can deepen our affection for their ideas—if we foster genuine, open relationships with a few close friends, sharing in their joy and bearing their grief, and engaging in frequent exchanges of sincere, heartfelt feelings—if we observe the world around us, clearly noting what we see, while feeling the urge to explore the many questions about what lies beyond our understanding:—if we live this way, we will become thoughtful readers and critics of books, and we will improve through them.”
The second and third of these essays are on Biography and Fiction respectively and principally; treating, however, of collateral subjects as well. Deep is the relation between the life shadowed forth in a biography, and the life in a man’s brain which he shadows forth in a fiction—when that fiction is of the highest order, and written in love, is beheld even by the writer himself with reverence. Delightful, surely, it must be; yes, awful too, to read to-day the embodiment of a man’s noblest thought, to follow the hero of his creation through his temptations, contests, and victories, in a world which likewise is—
The second and third of these essays focus on Biography and Fiction, respectively, while also touching on related topics. There’s a deep connection between the life depicted in a biography and the life in a person’s mind that they express in a story—especially when that story is of the highest quality and written with passion; it’s something the writer can view with admiration. It must be both delightful and daunting to read today the expression of a person’s greatest ideas, to journey with the hero of their imagination through struggles, challenges, and triumphs in a world that is also—
“All made out of the carver’s brain;”
“All made out of the carver’s imagination;”
and to-morrow to read the biography of this same writer. What of his own ideal has he realized? Where can the life-fountain be detected within him which found issue to the world’s light and air, in this ideal self? Shall God’s fiction, which is man’s reality, fall short of man’s fiction? Shall a man be less than what he can conceive and utter? Surely it will not, cannot end thus. If a man live at all in harmony with the great laws of being—if he will permit the working out of God’s idea in him, he must one day arrive at something greater than what now he can project and behold. Yet, in biography, we do not so often find traces of those struggles depicted in the loftier fiction. One reason may be that the contest is often entirely within, and so a man may have won his spiritual freedom without any outward token directly significant of the victory; except, if he be an artist, such expression as it finds in fiction, whether the fiction be in marble, or in sweet harmonies, or in ink. Nor can we determine the true significance of any living act; for being ourselves within the compass of the life-mystery, we cannot hold it at arm’s length from us and look at its lines of configuration. Nor of a life can we in any measure determine the success by what we behold of it. It is to us at best but a truncated spire, whose want of completion may be the greater because of the breadth of its base, and its slow taper, indicating the lofty height to which it is intended to aspire. The idea of our own life is more than we can embrace. It is not ours, but God’s, and fades away into the infinite. Our comprehension is finite; we ourselves infinite. We can only trust in God and do the truth; then, and then only, is our life safe, and sure both of continuance and development.
and tomorrow I will read the biography of this same writer. What part of his own ideal has he achieved? Where can we find the source of life within him that connected to the light and air of the world, in this ideal self? Will God’s creation, which is man’s reality, fall short of what man can imagine? Can a person be less than what he can conceive and express? Surely it will not, cannot end like this. If a person lives in harmony with the fundamental laws of existence—if he allows God's idea to unfold within him—he must eventually reach something greater than what he can currently envision and perceive. Yet, in biographies, we often don’t see the struggles portrayed in the higher fiction. One reason may be that the conflict is often entirely internal, and so a person may have achieved his spiritual freedom without any outward sign that directly signifies victory; except, if he is an artist, such expression as he discovers in fiction, whether that fiction takes the form of marble, sweet music, or written words. We also cannot determine the real significance of any action; since we are part of the life mystery, we can't step back to see its full shape and details. Nor can we measure a life’s success by what we observe of it. At best, it is like a partial spire, whose lack of completion may stand out even more due to the wide base and its slow taper, suggesting the great height it aims to reach. The concept of our own life is more than we can fully grasp. It belongs to God, and it fades into the infinite. Our understanding is limited; we ourselves are limitless. We can only trust in God and pursue the truth; then, and only then, is our life secure, and certain of both continuity and growth.
But the reviewer perhaps too often merely steals his author’s text and writes upon it; or, like a man who lies in bed thinking about a dream till its folds enwrap him and he sinks into the midst of its visions, he forgets his position of beholding, and passes from observation into spontaneous utterance. What says our author about “biography, autobiography, and history?” This lecture has pleased the reviewer most of the four. Reading it in a lonely place, under a tree, with wide fields and slopes around, it produced on his mind the two effects which perhaps Mr. Lynch would most wish it should produce—namely, first, a longing to lead a more true and noble life; and, secondly, a desire to read more biography. Nor can he but hope that it must produce the same effect on every earnest reader, on every one whose own biography would not be altogether a blank in what regards the individual will and spiritual aim.
But the reviewer often just lifts the author's text and adds his own thoughts; or, like someone lying in bed and thinking about a dream until it wraps around them and pulls them into its visions, he forgets that he's supposed to be an observer and shifts from simply watching to expressing himself spontaneously. What does our author say about “biography, autobiography, and history”? This lecture has impressed the reviewer the most out of the four. Reading it in a quiet spot under a tree, surrounded by open fields and slopes, it had two effects on his mind that Mr. Lynch would probably hope for—first, a desire to live a more genuine and noble life; and second, a wish to read more biographies. He also hopes it will have the same effect on every serious reader, on anyone whose own biography wouldn’t be entirely empty regarding individual will and spiritual purpose.
“In meditative hours, when we blend despair of ourself with complaint of the world, the biography of a man successful in this great business of living is as the visit of an angel sent to strengthen us. Give the soldier his sword, the farmer his plough, the carpenter his hammer and nails, the manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the scholar his books; these are but implements; the man is more than his work or tools. How far has he fulfilled the law of his being, and attained its desire? Is his life a whole; the days as threads and as touches; the life, the well-woven garment, the well-painted picture? Which of two sacrifices has he offered—the one so acceptable to the powers of dark worlds, the other so acceptable to powers of bright ones—that of soul to body, or that of body to soul? Has he slain what was holiest in him to obtain gifts from Fashion or Mammon? Or has he, in days so arduous, so assiduous, that they are like a noble army of martyrs, made burnt-offering of what was secondary, throwing into the flames the salt of true moral energy and the incense of cordial affections? We want the work to show us by its parts, its mass, its form, the qualities of the man, and to see that the man is perfected through his work as well as the work finished by his effort.”
“In quiet moments, when we mix our own despair with complaints about the world, the life story of someone who has succeeded in this complex journey of living feels like a visit from an angel sent to uplift us. Give the soldier his sword, the farmer his plow, the carpenter his hammer and nails, the manufacturer his machines, the merchant his stores, and the scholar his books; these are just tools; the person is more than their work or equipment. How well has he lived out his true purpose and achieved his goals? Is his life a complete tapestry, with days as threads and experiences as touches, forming a beautifully woven garment, a well-painted picture? Which of two sacrifices has he made—one that pleases the dark forces or one that pleases the bright ones: the sacrifice of the soul for the body, or the body for the soul? Has he killed what was most sacred in him to gain favors from Fashion or Money? Or has he, in these challenging days, which are like a noble army of martyrs, sacrificed what was less important, throwing into the fire the essence of true moral spirit and the fragrance of genuine affection? We want the work to reveal through its parts, its volume, its shape, the qualities of the person, and to see that the individual is enriched by their work just as the work is completed through their effort.”
Perhaps the highest moral height which a man can reach, and at the same time the most difficult of attainment, is the willingness to be nothing relatively, so that he attain that positive excellence which the original conditions of his being render not merely possible, but imperative. It is nothing to a man to be greater or less than another—to be esteemed or otherwise by the public or private world in which he moves. Does he, or does he not, behold, and love, and live, the unchangeable, the essential, the divine? This he can only do according as God hath made him. He can behold and understand God in the least degree, as well as in the greatest, only by the godlike within him; and he that loves thus the good and great, has no room, no thought, no necessity for comparison and difference. The truth satisfies him. He lives in its absoluteness. God makes the glow-worm as well as the star; the light in both is divine. If mine be an earth-star to gladden the wayside, I must cultivate humbly and rejoicingly its green earth-glow, and not seek to blanch it to the whiteness of the stars that lie in the fields of blue. For to deny God in my own being is to cease to behold him in any. God and man can meet only by the man’s becoming that which God meant him to be. Then he enters into the house of life, which is greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green field than a knight of many orders in a state ceremonial.
Perhaps the highest moral achievement a person can reach, and at the same time the hardest to attain, is the willingness to be nothing in comparison to others, so that they can achieve the positive excellence that their true nature not only makes possible but essential. It doesn’t matter to a person whether they are greater or lesser than someone else—whether they are valued or disregarded by the social or private circles they inhabit. The real question is: do they see, love, and live for the unchangeable, the essential, the divine? They can only do this according to how God has created them. They can perceive and understand God in the smallest ways as well as the largest, only through the divinity within themselves; and those who genuinely love what is good and great have no need for comparison or differentiation. The truth fulfills them. They exist in its entirety. God creates both the glow-worm and the star; the light in both is divine. If mine is an earth-star meant to brighten the roadside, I should tend to its humble and joyous green glow and not try to bleach it to match the whiteness of distant stars. To deny God in my own being is to stop seeing Him in anyone. God and humanity can only connect when a person becomes what God intended them to be. Then they step into the house of life, which is far greater than the house of fame. It is better to be a child in a green field than a knight adorned with many honors in a formal ceremony.
“One biography may help conjecture or satisfy reason concerning the story of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few even of the deserving among the multitude can deserve, as ‘dear sons of memory,’ to be shrined in the public heart. Few of us die unwept, but most of us unwritten. We shall find a grave—less certainly a tombstone—and with much less likelihood a biographer. Those ‘bright particular’ stars that at evening look towards us from afar, yet still are individual in the distance, are at clearest times but about a thousand; but the milky lustre that runs through mid heaven is composed of a million million lights, which are not the less separate because seen undistinguishably. Absorbed, not lost, in the multitude of the unrecorded, our private dear ones make part in this mild, blissful shining of the ‘general assembly,’ the great congregation of the skies. Thus the past is aglow with the unwritten, the nameless. The leaders, sons of fame, conspicuous in lustre, eminent in place; these are the few, whose great individuality burns with distinct, starry light through the dark of ages. Such stars, without the starry way, would not teach us the vastness of heaven; and the ‘way,’ without these, were not sufficient to gladden and glorify the night with pomp of Hierarchical Ascents of Domination.”
“One biography can help us understand or make sense of the stories of a thousand unrecorded lives. And how few, even among the many who deserve it, can truly be honored as ‘beloved memories’ in the public consciousness. Most of us will not be mourned when we pass, but many of us will remain unwritten about. We will find a grave—less likely a headstone—and even less likely, a biographer. Those ‘bright particular’ stars that look down on us in the evening, still distinct despite the distance, number only about a thousand at their brightest. But the milky glow that fills the night sky consists of countless lights, which remain individual even when seen as part of a larger whole. Absorbed but not lost in the multitude of the unrecorded, our loved ones contribute to this gentle, fulfilling light of the ‘general assembly,’ the vast gathering of the skies. Thus, the past is illuminated by the unwritten, the nameless. The leaders, children of fame, shiny and prominent in their place; these are the few whose remarkable individuality shines with distinct, star-like brightness through the darkness of the ages. Such stars, without the starry path, would not show us the vastness of the heavens; and the ‘path,’ without these, would not be enough to brighten and elevate the night with the majesty of Hierarchical Ascents of Domination.”
There are many passages in this essay with which the reviewer would be glad to enrich his notice of the book, but limitation of space, and perhaps justice to the essay itself, which ought to be read in its own completeness, forbid. Mr. Lynch looks to the heart of the matter, and makes one put the question—“Would not a biography written by Mr. Lynch himself be a valuable addition to this kind of literature?” His would not be an interesting account of outward events and relationships and progress, nor even a succession of revelations of inward conditions, but we should expect to find ourselves elevated by him to a point of view from which the life of the man would assume an artistic individuality, as it were an isolation of existence; for the supposed author could not choose for his regard any biography for which this would be impossible; or in which the reticulated nerves of purpose did not combine the whole, with more or less of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One passage more from this essay,—
There are many parts of this essay that the reviewer would love to include in his notice of the book, but due to space constraints and perhaps out of respect for the essay itself, which should be appreciated in its entirety, it's not possible. Mr. Lynch gets to the heart of the issue and prompts us to consider—“Wouldn't a biography written by Mr. Lynch himself be a valuable addition to this genre?” His account wouldn't just present a series of external events, relationships, and progress, nor even a succession of insights into internal conditions, but we would likely feel uplifted by him to a perspective where the man's life takes on a distinctive artistic individuality, almost as if it were an isolated existence; because the hypothetical author wouldn't select a biography where this couldn't be achieved; or one in which the intricate connections of intention didn't weave the whole together, with varying degrees of success, into a true and remarkable unity. One more excerpt from this essay—
“Biography, then, makes life known to us as more wealthy in character, and much more remarkable in its every-day stories, than we had deemed it. Another good it does us is this. It introduces us to some of our most agreeable and stimulative friendships. People may be more beneficially intimate with one they never saw than even with a neighbour or brother. Many a solitary, puzzled, incommunicative person, has found society provided, his riddle read, and his heart’s secret, that longed and strove for utterance, outspoken for him in a biography. And both a love purer than any yet entertained may be originated, and a pure but ungratified love already existing, find an object, by the visit of a biography. In actual life you see your friend to-day, and will see him again to-morrow or next year; but in the dear book, you have your friend and all his experiences at once and ever. He is with you wholly, and may be with you at any time. He lives for you, and has already died for you, to give finish to the meaning, fulness, and sanctity, to the comfort of his days. He is mysteriously above as well as before you, by this fact, that he has died. Thus your intimate is your superior, your solace, but your support, too, and an example of the victory to which he calls you. His end, or her end, is our own in view, and the flagging spirit revives. We see the goal, and gird our loins anew for the race. Or, speaking of things minor, there is fresh prospect of the game, there is companionship in the hunt, and spirit for the winning. Such biography, too, is a mirror in which we see ourselves; and we see that we may trim or adorn, or that the plain signs of our deficient health or ill-ruled temper may set us to look for, and to use the means of improvement. But such a mirror is as a water one; in which first you may see your face, and which then becomes for you a bath to wash away the stains you see, and to offer its pure, cool stream as a restorative and cosmetic for your wrinkles and pallors. And what a pleasure there will be sometimes as we peruse a biography, in finding another who is so like ourself—saying the same things, feeling the same dreads, and shames, and flutterings; hampered and harassed much as poor self is. Then, the escapes of such a friend give us hope of deliverance for ourself; and his better, or if not better, yet rewarded, patience, freshens our eye and sinews, and puts a staff into our hand. And certain seals of impossibility that we had put on this stone, and on that, beneath which our hopes lay buried, are by this biography, as by a visiting angel, effectually broken, and our hopes arise again. Our view of life becomes more complete because we see the whole of his, or of hers. We view life, too, in a more composed, tender way. Wavering faith, in its chosen determining principles, is confirmed. In quiet comparison of ourselves with one of our own class, or one who has made the mark for which we are striving, we are shamed to have done no better, and stirred to attempt former things again, or fresh ones in a stronger and more patient spirit.”
“Biography shows us that life is richer in character and much more extraordinary in its everyday stories than we had thought. Another benefit it gives us is this: it introduces us to some of our most enjoyable and inspiring friendships. People can feel closer to someone they've never met than they might with a neighbor or even a sibling. Many lonely, confused, quiet individuals have found companionship, had their struggles understood, and their deepest desires for expression articulated through a biography. A purer love than they've previously experienced can blossom, and an existing love that hasn't been fulfilled can find an outlet through the reading of a biography. In real life, you see your friend today and will likely see them again tomorrow or next year; but in a beloved book, you have access to your friend and all their experiences at once, forever. They are completely with you and can be present at any moment. They live for you and have already 'died' for you, giving depth, richness, and significance to the comfort of their days. Their death places them as both a companion and a guide, a source of comfort and support, exemplifying the victory they encourage you to pursue. Their end is a reminder of our own, reigniting our spirits. We see the finish line and prepare ourselves for the race ahead. Or, on a smaller scale, there’s a renewed excitement for the challenge, camaraderie in the pursuit, and motivation to succeed. Such biographies serve as mirrors in which we see ourselves; we realize we can make improvements, or we may recognize the signs of poor health or a troubled temperament that encourage us to seek change. But this mirror is like a reflective body of water; first, you see your face, and then it turns into a cleansing bath that washes away the flaws you notice and offers its fresh, clear stream as a restorative remedy for your weariness. There’s such joy in discovering through a biography someone who resembles us—expressing the same thoughts and experiencing the same fears, shames, and anxieties; struggling just as we do. Then, seeing how such a friend has overcome gives us hope for our own escape; their perseverance, even if not better, but still rewarded, refreshes our perspective and strengthens our resolve. Certain barriers we’ve placed around our dreams, heavy stones on which our hopes rested, are shattered by this biography, like a visiting angel, and our hopes rise once more. Our view of life expands as we see the entirety of their experience. We begin to perceive life in a more serene and compassionate manner. Our wavering faith in our core beliefs is fortified. In quietly comparing ourselves to someone from our own background or someone who has achieved what we aspire to, we feel ashamed for not doing better and are encouraged to try again, whether at old goals or new ones, with renewed strength and patience.”
It is, indeed, well with him who has found a friend whose spirit touches his own and illuminates it.
It is truly good for someone who has found a friend whose spirit resonates with their own and brings it to light.
“I missed him when the sun began to bend; I found him not when I had lost his rim; With many tears I went in search of him, Climbing high mountains which did still ascend, And gave me echoes when I called my friend; Through cities vast and charnel-houses grim, And high cathedrals where the light was dim; Through books, and arts, and works without an end— But found him not, the friend whom I had lost. And yet I found him, as I found the lark, A sound in fields I heard but could not mark; I found him nearest when I missed him most, I found him in my heart, a life in frost, A light I knew not till my soul was dark.”
“I missed him when the sun started to set; I couldn’t find him when I had lost his glow; With many tears, I searched for him, Climbing high mountains that kept rising, Echoing my calls for my friend; Through vast cities and grim graveyards, And tall cathedrals where the light was dim; Through books, arts, and endless works— But I couldn’t find him, the friend I lost. Yet I found him, like I found the lark, A sound in the fields I heard but couldn’t pinpoint; I found him closest when I missed him the most, I found him in my heart, a life in chill, A light I didn’t recognize until my soul felt dark.”
Next to possessing a true, wise, and victorious friend seated by your fireside, it is blessed to have the spirit of such a friend embodied—for spirit can assume any embodiment—on your bookshelves. But in the latter case the friendship is all on one side. For full friendship your friend must love you, and know that you love him. Surely these biographies are not merely spiritual links connecting us in the truest manner with past times and vanished minds, and thus producing strong half friendships. Are they not likewise links connecting us with a future, wherein these souls shall dawn upon ours, rising again from the death of the past into the life of our knowledge and love? Are not these biographies letters of introduction, forwarded, but not yet followed by him whom they introduce, for whose step we listen, and whose voice we long to hear; and whom we shall yet meet somewhere in the Infinite? Shall I not one day, “somewhere, somehow,” clasp the large hand of Novalis, and, gazing on his face, compare his features with those of Saint John?
Next to having a true, wise, and victorious friend sitting by your fire, it’s a blessing to have the essence of such a friend on your bookshelf—because essence can take any form. But in that case, the friendship is one-sided. For true friendship, your friend needs to love you back and know that you love them. Surely these biographies aren't just spiritual connections that link us in the deepest way with past times and lost minds, creating strong, partial friendships. Aren't they also connections to a future where these souls will come alive for us, rising again from the past into our understanding and love? Aren't these biographies letters of introduction, sent ahead but not yet followed by the one they introduce, for whose arrival we wait, and whose voice we yearn to hear; and whom we will eventually meet somewhere in the Infinite? Will I not one day, "somewhere, somehow," take the hand of Novalis, and, looking into his face, compare his features to those of Saint John?
The essay on light literature must be left to the spontaneous appreciation of those who are already acquainted with this book, or who may be induced, by the representations here made, to become acquainted with it. Before proceeding to notice the first essay in the little volume, namely, that on Poetry, its subject suggests the fact of the publication of a second edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal, by the same author, a portion of which consists of interspersed poems. These are of true poetic worth; and although in some cases wanting in rhythmic melody, yet in most of these cases they possess a wild and peculiar rhythm of their own. The reviewer knows of some whose hearts this book has made glad, and doubtless there are many such.
The essay on light literature should be left to the genuine appreciation of those who are already familiar with this book or who may be encouraged by the insights presented here to explore it. Before we look at the first essay in this small volume, which is about Poetry, it’s worth noting the release of a second edition of the Memorials of Theophilus Trinal by the same author, which includes a selection of poems. These have real poetic value; while some may lack a rhythmic flow, many possess a unique and wild rhythm of their own. The reviewer knows of some people who have found joy in this book, and there are undoubtedly many others like them.
The essay on Poetry is itself poetic throughout in its expression. And how else shall Poetry be described than by Poetry? What form shall embrace and define the highest? Must it not be self-descriptive as self-existent? For what man is to this planet, what the eye is to man himself, Poetry is to Literature. Yet one can hardly help wishing that the poetic forms in this Essay were fewer and less minute, and the whole a little more scientific; though it is a question how far we have a right to ask for this. As you open it, however, the pages seem absolutely to sparkle, as if strewn with diamond sparks. It is no dull, metallic, surface lustre, but a shining from within, as well as from the superficies. Still one cannot deny that fancy is too prominent in Mr. Lynch’s writings. It is true that his Fancy is the fairy attendant on his Imagination, which latter uses the former for her own higher ends; and that there is little or no mere fancy to be found in his books; for if you look below the surface-form you find a truth. But it were to be desired that the Truth clothed herself always in the living forms of Imagination, and thus walked forth amongst her worshippers, looking on them from living eyes, rather than that she should show herself through the windows of fancy. Sometimes there may be an offence against taste, as in page 20; sometimes an image may be expanded too much, and sometimes the very exuberance of imaginative fancy (if the combination be correct) may lead to an association of images that suggests incongruity. Still the essay is abundantly beautiful and true. The poetical quotations are not isolated, or exposed to view as specimens, but are worked into the web of the prose like the flowers in the damask, and do their part in the evolution of the continuous thought.
The essay on Poetry is poetic in its expression. How else can we describe Poetry other than with Poetry itself? What form can capture and define the highest? It must be self-descriptive, just as it exists on its own. Just as man is to this planet and the eye is to man, Poetry is to Literature. Still, one can't help wishing that the poetic forms in this Essay were fewer and less elaborate, and that the whole work leaned a bit more towards being scientific; although, it's debatable whether we have the right to ask for that. When you open it, though, the pages seem to sparkle as if sprinkled with diamond dust. It's not a dull, metallic shine but a light that comes from within as well as from the surface. Yet, one cannot deny that imagination plays a significant role in Mr. Lynch’s writings. It's true that his imagination uses fancy as a companion to achieve higher goals, and there’s little or no mere fancy in his books; if you look beneath the surface, you find truth. However, it would be better if Truth always dressed in the living forms of Imagination and walked among her followers, gazing at them with living eyes, rather than revealing herself through the windows of fancy. Sometimes there might be a lapse in taste, as seen on page 20; at times an image may be overextended, and sometimes the very richness of imaginative fancy (if the combination is right) might lead to an association of images that feels out of place. Nevertheless, the essay is full of beauty and truth. The poetic quotes aren’t isolated or presented as mere examples, but are woven into the fabric of the prose like flowers in a tapestry, contributing to the flow of continuous thought.
“If poetry, as light from the heart of God, is for our heart, that we may brighten and distinguish individual things; if it is to transfigure for us the round, dusk world as by an inner radiance; if it is to present human life and history as Rembrandt pictures, in which darkness serves and glorifies light; if, like light, formless in its essence, all things shapen towards the perfection of their forms under its influence; if, entering as through crevices in single beams, it makes dimmest places cheerful and sacred with its golden touch: then must the heart of the Poet in which this true light shineth be as a hospice on the mountain pathways of the world, and his verse must be the lamp seen from far that burns to tell us where bread and shelter, drink, fire, and companionship, may be found; and he himself should have the mountaineer’s hardiness and resolution. From the heart as source, to the heart in influence, Poetry comes. The inward, the upward, and the onward, whether we speak of an individual or a nation, may not be separated in our consideration. Deep and sacred imaginative meditations are needed for the true earthward as well as for the heavenward progress of men and peoples. And Poetry, whether old or new, streaming from the heart moved by the powerful spirit of love, has influence on the heart public and individual, and thence on the manners, laws, and institutions of nations. If Poesy visit the length and breadth of a country after years unfruitfully dull, coming like a showery fertilizing wind after drought, the corners and the valley-hidings are visited too, and these perhaps she now visits first, as these sometimes she has visited only. For miles and for miles, the public corn, the bread of the nation’s life, is bettered; and in our own endeared spot, the roses, delight of our individual eye and sense, yield us more prosperingly their colour and their fragrance. For the universal sunshine which brightens a thousand cities, beautifies ten thousand homesteads, and rejoices ten times ten thousand hearts. And as rains in the mid season renew for awhile the faded greenness of spring; and trees in fervent summers, when their foliage has deepened or fully fixed its hue, bedeck themselves through the fervency with bright midsummer shoots; so, by Poetry are the youthful hues of the soul renewed, and truths that have long stood full-foliaged in our minds, are by its fine influences empowered to put forth fresh shoots. Thus age, which is a necessity for the body, may be warded off as a disease from the soul, and we may be like the old man in Chaucer, who had nothing hoary about him but his hairs—
“If poetry, like light from the heart of God, is meant for our hearts so we can brighten and recognize individual things; if it transforms our round, dim world with an inner radiance; if it shows human life and history like Rembrandt paintings, where darkness serves to highlight and honor light; if, like light, formless in its essence, it shapes all things towards their ultimate forms under its influence; if, entering through cracks as single rays, it makes the darkest places joyful and sacred with its golden touch: then the Poet’s heart, in which this true light shines, must be like a refuge on the mountain paths of the world, and his verse must be the visible lamp from afar that guides us to where we can find food, shelter, drink, warmth, and companionship; and he should possess the resilience and determination of a mountaineer. From the heart as the source to the heart as influence, Poetry flows. The inward, the upward, and the onward, whether discussing an individual or a nation, cannot be separated in our thoughts. Profound and sacred imaginative reflections are essential for both the earthly and heavenly progression of people and nations. And Poetry, whether old or new, emerging from the heart stirred by the powerful spirit of love, influences both public and individual hearts, and consequently affects the customs, laws, and institutions of nations. If Poetry travels throughout a country after years of unfruitful dullness, coming like a refreshing, nurturing wind after a drought, it will reach the corners and hidden valleys too, perhaps even visiting them first, as these are sometimes the only places she has touched. For miles and miles, the public harvest, the bread of the nation’s life, improves; and in our own cherished spot, the roses, which delight our individual senses, yield even more vividly their colors and fragrances. For the universal sunshine that brightens a thousand cities also beautifies ten thousand homes and brings joy to countless hearts. Just as mid-season rains temporarily revive the faded greenery of spring, and trees in the hot summer, once their leaves have deepened or fully taken on their color, adorn themselves with vibrant summer growth; so too does Poetry renew the youthful colors of the soul, allowing truths that have long stood fully formed in our minds to sprout fresh ideas through its subtle influences. Thus, age, which is a reality for the body, can be kept at bay like a disease for the soul, and we may be like the old man in Chaucer, who had nothing gray about him but his hair—
“‘Though I be hoor I fare as doth a tree That blosmeth er the fruit ywoxen be, The blosmy tree n’ is neither drie ne ded: I feel me nowhere hoor, but on my head. Min herte and all my limmes ben as grene As laurel through the yere is for to sene.’”
“‘Even though I’m old, I’m like a tree That blooms before the fruit has grown, The flowering tree is neither dry nor dead: I don’t feel old anywhere except on my head. My heart and all my limbs are as green As laurel is to see throughout the year.’”
Hear our author again as to the calling of the poet:—
Hear our author again about the calling of the poet:—
“To unite earthly love and celestial—‘true to the kindred points of heaven and home;’ to reconcile time and eternity; to draw presage of joy’s victory from the delight of the secret honey dropping from the clefts of rocky sorrow; to harmonize our instinctive longings for the definite and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect; to read creation as a human book of the heart, both plain and mystical, and divinely written: such is the office fulfilled by best-loved poets. Their ladder of celestial ascent must be fixed on its base, earth, if its top is to securely rest on heaven.”
“To bring together earthly love and heavenly love—‘true to the shared points of heaven and home;’ to connect time and eternity; to find joy’s victory in the sweetness of secret happiness flowing from the depths of rocky sorrow; to align our natural desires for the tangible and the infinite, in the ideal Perfect; to read creation as a human story of the heart, both simple and profound, and written by the divine: this is the role fulfilled by our favorite poets. Their ladder of heavenly ascent must be anchored on its base, which is earth, if its peak is to securely reach heaven.”
Beautifully, too, does he describe the birth of Poetry; though one may doubt its correctness, at least if attributed to the highest kind of poetry.
He also beautifully describes the birth of Poetry; however, one might question its accuracy, especially when it comes to the highest form of poetry.
“When words of felt truth were first spoken by the first pair, in love of their garden, their God, and one another, and these words were with joyful surprise felt to be in their form and glow answerable to the happy thought uttered; then Poetry sprang. And when the first Father and first Mother, settling their soul upon its thought, found that thought brighten; and when from it, as thus they mused, like branchlets from a branch, or flowerets from their bud, other thoughts came, ranging themselves by the exerted, yet painlessly exerted, power of the soul, in an order felt to be beautiful, and of a sound pleasant in utterance to ear and soul; being withal, through the sweetness of their impression on the heart, fixed for memory’s frequentest recurrence; then was the world’s first poem composed, and in the joyful flutter of a heart that had thus become a maker, the maker of a ‘thing of beauty,’ like in beauty even unto God’s heaven, and trees, and flowers, the secret of Poesy shone tremulously forth.”
“When words of genuine truth were first spoken by the first couple, in love for their garden, their God, and each other, and these words were joyfully felt to match the happy thought expressed; that’s when Poetry was born. And when the first Father and first Mother, focusing their minds on a thought, saw that thought come alive; and as they pondered, other thoughts emerged, like branches from a tree or little flowers from a bud, organizing themselves through the gentle yet deliberate power of the soul, in a way that felt beautiful, and sounded pleasing to the ear and soul; being, through the sweetness of their impact on the heart, etched for frequent remembrance; then the world’s first poem was created, and in the joyful excitement of a heart that had become a creator, the creator of something beautiful, like the beauty found in God’s heaven, and trees, and flowers, the essence of Poesy shone brightly."
Whether this be so or not, the highest poetic feeling of which we are now conscious springs not from the beholding of perfected beauty, but from the mute sympathy which the creation with all its children manifests with us in the groaning and travailing which looketh for the sonship. Because of our need and aspiration, the snowdrop gives birth in our hearts to a loftier spiritual and poetic feeling, than the rose most complete in form, colour, and odour. The rose is of Paradise—the snowdrop is of the striving, hoping, longing Earth. Perhaps our highest poetry is the expression of our aspirations in the sympathetic forms of visible nature. Nor is this merely a longing for a restored Paradise; for even in the ordinary history of men, no man or woman that has fallen can be restored to the position formerly occupied. Such must rise to a yet higher place, whence they can behold their former standing far beneath their feet. They must be restored by attaining something better than they ever possessed before, or not at all. If the law be a weariness, we must escape it by being filled with the spirit, for not otherwise can we fulfil the law than by being above the law. There is for us no escape, save as the Poet counsels us:—
Whether it's true or not, the deepest poetic feelings we currently experience don't come from witnessing perfected beauty, but from the silent connection that creation, with all its beings, shares with us in the struggles and pains that seek a sense of belonging. Because of our longing and hope, the snowdrop inspires in us a higher spiritual and poetic feeling than the perfectly formed rose, with its color and fragrance. The rose represents Paradise, while the snowdrop is rooted in the striving, hoping, and longing of Earth. Perhaps our greatest poetry expresses our aspirations through the sympathetic forms of the visible world. This isn't just a yearning for a restored Paradise; in the ordinary course of human history, no one who has fallen can return to their previous state. Instead, they must ascend to an even higher place from which they can see their former position far below them. They must be restored by achieving something greater than what they once had, or not at all. If the law feels burdensome, we need to break free from it by embracing the spirit; otherwise, we can only fulfill the law by rising above it. There is no escape for us, except as the Poet advises us:—
“Is thy strait horizon dreary? Is thy foolish fancy chill? Change the feet that have grown weary, For the wings that never will. Burst the flesh and live the spirit; Haunt the beautiful and far; Thou hast all things to inherit, And a soul for every star.”
“Is your narrow view gloomy? Is your silly imagination cold? Change your tired feet For wings that won't ever grow. Break free from the flesh and embrace the spirit; Seek out the beautiful and distant; You have everything to gain, And a soul for every star.”
But the Reviewer must hasten to take leave, though unwillingly, of this pleasing, earnest, and profitable book. Perhaps it could be wished that the writer helped his readers a little more into the channel of his thought; made it easier for them to see the direction in which he is leading them; called out to them, “Come up hither,” before he said, “I will show you a thing.” But the Reviewer says this with deference; and takes his leave with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be listened to for two good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; last, that he has already suffered for the Truth’s sake.
But the Reviewer must quickly say goodbye, even though it's reluctantly, to this enjoyable, sincere, and valuable book. It might be nice if the writer guided his readers a bit more into his way of thinking; made it clearer for them to understand where he’s leading; called out to them, “Come up here,” before he said, “I will show you something.” However, the Reviewer mentions this respectfully and departs with the hope that Mr. Lynch will be heard for two good reasons: first, that he speaks the truth; and second, that he has already suffered for the sake of the Truth.
THE HISTORY AND HEROES OF MEDICINE.
[Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
[Footnote: By J. Rutherfurd Russell, M.D.]
In this volume, Dr. Russell has not merely aimed at the production of a book that might be serviceable to the Faculty, by which the history of its own art is not at all sufficiently studied, but has aspired to the far more difficult success of writing a history of medicine which shall be readable to all who care for true history—that history, namely, in which not merely growth and change are represented, but the secret supplies and influences as well, which minister to the one and occasion the other. If the difficulty has been greater (although with his evidently wide sympathies and keen insight into humanity we doubt if it has), the success is the more honourable; for a success it certainly is. The partially biographical plan on which he has constructed his work has no doubt aided in the accomplishment of this purpose; for it is much easier to present the subject in its human relations, when its history is given in connexion with the lives of those who were most immediately associated with it. But it would be a great mistake to conclude from this, that it is the less a history of the art itself; for no art or science has life in itself, apart from the minds which foresee, discover, and verify it. Whatever point in its progress it may have reached, it will there remain until a new man appears, whose new questions shall illicit new replies from nature—replies which are the essential food of the science, by which it lives, grows, and makes itself a history.
In this book, Dr. Russell has not just aimed to create a resource for the Faculty, where the history of its own field is not sufficiently explored, but has also sought the much tougher challenge of writing a history of medicine that everyone interested in true history can enjoy. This is a history that shows not only growth and change but also the hidden factors and influences that contribute to both. Even if the challenge has been greater (though we believe with his evident empathy and sharp understanding of humanity, it may not have been), the achievement is all the more commendable; and it certainly is an achievement. The partially biographical approach he has taken in his work has likely helped him reach this goal, as it's much easier to present the subject in its human context when its history is linked to the lives of those most closely involved with it. However, it would be a mistake to conclude from this that it is any less a history of the practice itself. No art or science exists in a vacuum apart from the thinkers who envision, discover, and validate it. Regardless of how far it has progressed, it remains where it is until a new individual arrives, whose fresh questions draw out new answers from nature—answers that are the essential nourishment for the science, allowing it to thrive, evolve, and create its own history.
Nor must our readers suppose that because the book is readable, it is therefore slight, either in material or construction. Much reading and research have provided the material, while real thought and argument have superintended the construction. Nor is it by any means without the adornment that a poetic temperament and a keen sense of humour can supply.
Our readers shouldn't think that just because the book is easy to read, it lacks depth, either in content or structure. Extensive reading and research have informed the material, while genuine thought and reasoning have guided the construction. Additionally, it certainly benefits from the embellishments that a poetic mindset and a sharp sense of humor can bring.
Naturally, the central life in the book is that of Lord Bacon, the man who brought out of his treasures things both new and old. Up to him the story gradually leads from the prehistoric times of Aesculapius, the pathway first becoming plainly visible in the life and labours of Hippocrates. His fine intellect and powers of acute observation afforded the material necessary for the making of a true physician. The Greek mind, partly, perhaps, from its artistic tendencies, seems to have been peculiarly impatient of incomplete forms, and therefore, to have much preferred the construction of a theory from the most shadowy material, to the patient experiment and investigation necessary for the procuring of the real substance; and Hippocrates, not knowing how to advance to a theory by rational experiment, and too honest to invent one, assumes the traditional theories, founded on the vaguest and most obtrusive generalizations. Those which his experience taught him to reject, were adopted and maintained by Galen and all who followed him for centuries, the chief instance of progress being only the substitution by the Arabians of some of the milder medicines now in use, for the terrible and often fatal drugs employed by the Greek and Roman physicians. The fanciful classification of diseases into four kinds—hot, cold, moist and dry, with the corresponding arbitrary classification of remedies to be administered by contraries, continued to be the only recognized theory of medicine for many centuries after the Christian era.
Naturally, the main focus of the book is on Lord Bacon, the person who uncovered valuable insights from both ancient and modern knowledge. The narrative gradually leads to him, starting from the prehistoric era of Aesculapius, with the path becoming clearly defined through the life and work of Hippocrates. His sharp intellect and keen observational skills provided the foundation for becoming a true physician. The Greek mind, perhaps due to its artistic inclinations, seemed particularly intolerant of incomplete concepts and thus preferred to construct theories from minimal evidence rather than engage in the thorough experimentation and research required to obtain real insights. Hippocrates, not knowing how to create a theory through rational experimentation and too honest to make one up, relied on traditional theories based on vague and overly broad generalizations. Those theories, which his experience led him to dismiss, were accepted and upheld by Galen and subsequent thinkers for many centuries, with the main advancement being the Arabs replacing some of the harsher medicines of Greek and Roman medicine with softer, more effective alternatives. The fanciful categorization of diseases into four types—hot, cold, moist, and dry—along with the corresponding arbitrary classification of remedies based on opposites, remained the dominant medical theory for many centuries after the arrival of Christianity.
But Lord Bacon, amongst other branches of knowledge which he considers ill-followed, makes especial mention of medicine, which he would submit to the same rules of observation and experiment laid down by him for the advancement of learning in general. With regard to it, as with regard to the discovery of all the higher laws of nature, he considers “that men have made too untimely a departure, and too remote a recess from particulars.” Men have hurried to conclusions, and then argued from them as from facts. Therefore let us have no traditional theories, and make none for ourselves but such as are revealed in the form of laws to the patient investigator, who has “straightened and held fast Proteus, that he might be compelled to change his shapes,” and so reveal his nature. Hence one of the aspects in which Lord Bacon was compelled to appear was that of a destroyer of what preceded. In this he resembled Cardan and Paracelsus who went before him, and who like him pulled down, but could not, like him, build up. He resembled them, however, in the possession of another element of character, namely, that poetic imagination which looks abroad into the regions of possibilities, and foresees or invents. But in the case of the charlatan, the vaguest suggestions of his mind in its favourite mood, is adopted as a theory all but proved, if not as a direct revelation to the favoured individual; while the true thinker seeks but an hypothesis corresponding in some measure to facts already discovered, in order that he may have the suggestion of new experiments and investigations in the course of his attempts to verify or disprove the hypothesis. Lord Bacon considered hypothesis invaluable in the discovery of truth, but he only used it as a board upon which to write his questions to nature; or, to use another figure, hypothesis with him is as the next stepping-stone in the swollen river, which he supposes to be here or there, and so feels for with his staff. But it must be proved before it be regarded as a law, and greatly corroborated before it be even adopted as a theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were destroyers and mystics only; they destroyed on the earth that they might build in the air: Lord Bacon united both characters in the philosopher. He looked abroad into the regions of the unknown, whence all knowledge comes; he called wonder the seed of knowledge; but he would build nowhere but on the earth—on the firm land of ascertained truth. That which kept him right was his practical humanity. It was for the sake of delivering men from the ills of life, by discovering the laws of the elements amidst which that life must be led, that he laboured and thought. This object kept him true, made him able to discover the very laws of discovery; brought him so far into rapport with the heart of nature herself, that, like a physical prophet, his seeing could outspeed his knowing, and behold a law—dimly, it is true, but yet behold it—long before his intellect, which had to build bridges and find straw to make the bricks, could dare to affirm its approach to the same conclusion. Truth to humanity made him true to fact; and truth to fact made him true in theory.
But Lord Bacon, among other fields of knowledge he thinks are poorly pursued, especially mentions medicine. He believes it should follow the same rules of observation and experimentation he proposed for advancing general learning. Like in the exploration of all the higher laws of nature, he feels that "people have moved too quickly away from specifics." People rush to conclusions and then argue from them as if they were facts. So, let’s avoid traditional theories and create only those that are revealed through careful investigation, where one has "contained and held fast Proteus, so he could change his shapes" and thus reveal his true nature. Consequently, one way Lord Bacon had to present himself was as a destroyer of what came before. He was similar to Cardan and Paracelsus, who preceded him and also tore things down but could not build back up as he could. However, he shared with them a certain poetic imagination that looks into the realms of possibilities and anticipates or invents. In contrast, a charlatan takes the most vague ideas from his mind’s favored state and presents them as almost proven theories, if not as direct revelations to select individuals; whereas a true thinker seeks a hypothesis that aligns somewhat with already known facts, allowing for new experiments and investigations as he attempts to verify or refute the hypothesis. Lord Bacon saw hypothesis as essential in the pursuit of truth, but he viewed it as a platform to pose questions to nature or, to use another metaphor, as a potential stepping-stone in a rushing river, trying to assess where it might be to guide himself using a staff. However, it must be verified before it can be considered law and strongly supported before being accepted as theory. Cardan and Paracelsus were just destroyers and mystics; they shattered what was solid to build something abstract. Lord Bacon merged both roles in the philosopher. He looked into the unknown, where all knowledge originates; he called wonder the seed of knowledge, yet he chose to build only on solid ground—on the firm land of established truth. What kept him grounded was his practical humanity. He worked and thought to relieve people from life's hardships by discovering the laws of the elements that govern that life. This goal kept him focused and helped him understand the very principles of discovery; he connected so well with nature itself that, like a physical prophet, he could perceive a law—faintly, it’s true—but still discern it—long before his intellect, which had to construct bridges and find resources to create bricks, could confidently assert its arrival. His commitment to humanity made him honest to facts; and his honesty to facts made him consistent in theory.
It was in this spirit of devotion to his kind that he said, “Therefore here is the deficience which I find, that physicians have not ... set down and delivered over certain experimental medicines for the cure of particular diseases.”
It was in this spirit of commitment to his fellow humans that he said, “So, here's the gap I see: physicians haven't ... recorded and shared certain experimental medicines for treating specific diseases.”
Dr. Russell’s true insight into the relation of Lord Bacon to the medical as well as to all science, has suggested the above remarks. What our author chiefly desires is, that the same principles which made medicine what it is, should be allowed to carry it yet further, and make it what it ought to be, and must become. As he goes on to show, through succeeding lives and theories, that just in proportion as these principles have been followed—the principles of careful observation, hypothesis, and experiment—have men made discoveries that have been helpful to their fellow-men; while, on the other hand, the most elaborate theories of the most popular physicians, which have owed their birth to premature generalization and invention, have passed away, like the crackling of thorns under a pot. Belonging to the latter class of men, we have Stahl, Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; while to the former belong Harvey, Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
Dr. Russell’s real understanding of the connection between Lord Bacon and both medicine and science has inspired the remarks above. What our author mainly wants is for the same principles that shaped medicine to be allowed to advance it even further, transforming it into what it should and must become. As he demonstrates through subsequent lives and theories, the more these principles—careful observation, hypothesis, and experimentation—have been applied, the more significant discoveries have benefited humanity; meanwhile, the most complex theories of popular physicians, born from hasty generalizations and inventions, have faded away like the crackling of thorns in a fire. In the latter group, we have Stahl, Hoffman, Boerhaave, Cullen, and Brown; whereas in the former group belong Harvey, Sydenham, Jenner, and Hahnemann.
After the last name, there is no need to say that our author is a homoeopath. Whatever may be our private opinion of the system, justice requires that we should say at least that books such as these are quite as open to refutation as to ridicule; for it is only a good argument that is worth refuting by a better. But we fear there are few books on this subject that treat of it with the calmness and fairness which would incline an honest homoeopath to put them into the hands of one of the opposite party as an exposition of his opinions. There is no excitement in these pages. They are the work of a man of liberal education, of refinement, and of truthfulness, with power to understand, and facility to express; one of whose main objects is to vindicate for homoeopathy, on the most rightful of all grounds—those on which alone science can stand—on the ground, that is, of laws discovered by observation and experiment—the place not only of a fact in the history of medicine, but the right to be considered as one of the greatest advances towards the establishment of a science of curing. Certainly if he and the rest of its advocates should fail utterly in this, the heresy will yet have established for itself a memorial in history, as one of the most powerful illusions that have ever deceived both priests and people. But the chief advantage which the system will derive from Dr. Russell’s book will spring, it seems to us, from his attempt—a successful one it must be confessed—to prove that homoeopathy is a development, and not a mere reaction; that it has its roots far down in the history of science. The first mention of it in the book, however, is made for the purpose of disavowing the claim, advanced by many homoeopathists, to Hippocrates as one of their order. Not to mention the curious story about Galen and the patient ill from an overdose of theriacum, who was cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the ridicule of the doctrine of contraries by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor the fact that the contraries of Boerhaave, by his own explanation, merely signify whatever substances prove their contrariety to the disease by curing it—to pass by these, we find one of the main objects of homoeopathy, the discovery of specifics, insisted upon by Lord Bacon in his words already quoted. Not that homoeopaths, while they depend upon specifics, believe that there is any such thing as a specific for a disease—a disease being as various as the individuality of the human beings whom it may attack; but that an approximate specific may be found for every well-defined stage in every individual disease; a disease having its process of change, development, and decline, like a vegetable or animal life. Besides an equally strong desire for specifics, and a determined opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the year of Bacon’s death, and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher, manifests a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose. Neither Bacon nor Boyle, however, were medical men by profession. But Sydenham followed them, according to Dr. Russell, in their tendency towards specifics. It is almost needless to mention Jenner’s victory over the small-pox as, in the eyes of the homoeopaths, a grand step in the development of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity of showing in a strong instance that the best discoveries for delivering mankind from those ills even of which they are most sensible have been received with derision, with more than bare unbelief. This is one of his objects in the book, and while it is no proof whatever of the truth of homoepathy, it shows at least that the opposition manifested to it is no proof of its falsehood. This is enough; for it seeks to be tried on its own merits; and its foes are bound to accord it this when it is advocated in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before us.
After the last name, there's no need to mention that our author is a homeopath. Regardless of our personal views on the system, we must acknowledge that books like this are as open to criticism as they are to mockery; only a strong argument deserves to be countered by a better one. However, we fear that few books on this topic discuss it with the calmness and fairness that would make an honest homeopath comfortable sharing them with someone from the opposing side as a representation of their views. There’s no excitement in these pages. They are written by a person with a broad education, refinement, and honesty, who has the ability to understand and the skill to communicate; one of whose main goals is to justify homeopathy on the most legitimate grounds—the ones on which true science can stand—namely, laws discovered through observation and experimentation—establishing not just a fact in the history of medicine, but also asserting itself as one of the significant advances towards developing a science of healing. Certainly, if he and the other advocates fail completely in this, the belief will still have secured its place in history as one of the most compelling illusions that have ever misled both clergy and the public. But the primary benefit that Dr. Russell's book provides to the system seems to be his successful attempt to prove that *homeopathy is a development, not just a reaction*; that it has deep roots in the history of science. The first mention of it in the book is, however, to reject the claim by many homeopathists that Hippocrates is one of their own. Without delving into the curious tale about Galen and the patient suffering from a theriacum overdose, who was cured by another dose of the same substance, nor the mockery of the doctrine of opposites by Paracelsus and Van Helmont, nor the fact that Boerhaave's *contraries*, as he explained, simply refer to any substances that prove their opposition to a disease by curing it—to overlook these, we find one of the primary goals of homeopathy, the discovery of specifics, emphasized by Lord Bacon in already quoted words. Not that homeopaths, while relying on specifics, believe there is a specific for every disease—a disease is as varied as the individuals it may affect—but that an approximate specific can be found for each clearly defined stage of every individual disease; each disease has its own process of change, development, and decline, similar to plant or animal life. In addition to a strong desire for specifics and a firm opposition to compound medicines, Boyle, who was born the same year as Bacon’s death and inherited the mantle of the great philosopher, expressed a strong belief in the power of the infinitesimal dose. However, neither Bacon nor Boyle were trained medical professionals. But according to Dr. Russell, Sydenham followed in their footsteps regarding specifics. It’s nearly unnecessary to mention Jenner’s triumph over smallpox, as it is seen by homeopaths as a significant milestone in the advancement of their system. It gives Dr. Russell an opportunity to illustrate a strong example that some of the best discoveries for relieving humanity from even the most noticeable ailments have faced derision and disbelief. This is one of his aims in the book, and while it doesn’t prove the truth of homeopathy, it at least indicates that the opposition towards it doesn’t prove it false. That’s sufficient; it seeks to be assessed on its own merits; and its opponents are obligated to grant it this when it’s presented in such an honest and dignified manner as in the book before us.
The need of man, in physics as well as in higher things, is the guide to truth. With evils of any sort we need no further acquaintance than may be gained in the endeavour to combat them. The discovery of what will cure diseases seems the only natural mode of rising by generalization to the discovery of the laws of cure and the nature of disease.
The needs of people, both in physics and in more abstract matters, lead us to the truth. When it comes to problems of any kind, we only need to engage with them enough to try to solve them. Finding out what can heal illnesses is the most straightforward way to move towards understanding the principles of healing and the nature of disease.
Those portions of the volume which discuss the influence of Christianity on the healing art, likewise those relating to the different feelings with which at different times in different countries physicians have been regarded, are especially interesting.
Those sections of the book that talk about the impact of Christianity on medicine, as well as those that explore how physicians have been viewed differently at various times and in different countries, are particularly fascinating.
The only portion of the book we should be inclined to find fault with, as to the quality of the thought expended upon it, is the dissertation in the second chapter on the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We doubt likewise whether the author gives the Archaeus of Van Helmont quite fair play; but these are questions so purely theoretical that they scarcely admit of discussion here. We rise from the perusal of the book, whatever may be our feelings with regard to the truth or falsehood of the system it advocates, with increased respect for the profession of medicine, with enlarged hope for its future, and with a strong feeling of the nobility conferred by the art upon every one of its practitioners who is aware of the dignity of his calling.
The only part of the book we might criticize for its depth of thought is the discussion in the second chapter about the [Greek: psuchae] and [Greek: pneuma]. We also question whether the author treats Van Helmont's Archaeus fairly; however, these are mostly theoretical issues that are hardly worth debating here. After reading the book, regardless of our opinions on the truth of the system it supports, we come away with greater respect for the medical profession, heightened optimism for its future, and a strong sense of the nobility that the art brings to every practitioner who recognizes the dignity of their calling.
WORDSWORTH’S POETRY
[Footnote: Delivered extempore at Manchester.]
[Footnote: Delivered impromptu at Manchester.]
The history of the poetry of Wordsworth is a true reflex of the man himself. The life of Wordsworth was not outwardly eventful, but his inner life was full of conflict, discovery, and progress. His outward life seems to have been so ordered by Providence as to favour the development of the poetic life within. Educated in the country, and spending most of his life in the society of nature, he was not subjected to those violent external changes which have been the lot of some poets. Perfectly fitted as he was to cope with the world, and to fight his way to any desired position, he chose to retire from it, and in solitude to work out what appeared to him to be the true destiny of his life.
The history of Wordsworth's poetry truly reflects the man himself. His life wasn’t filled with dramatic events, but his inner world was rich with conflict, discovery, and growth. It seems like fate set up his life in a way that nurtured the development of his poetic spirit. Growing up in the countryside and spending most of his life surrounded by nature, he didn’t face the harsh external changes that many other poets did. Although he was well-equipped to navigate the world and achieve any position he wanted, he chose to step back from it all and, in solitude, figure out what he believed to be his true calling in life.
The very element in which the mind of Wordsworth lived and moved was a Christian pantheism. Allow me to explain the word. The poets of the Old Testament speak of everything as being the work of God’s hand:—We are the “work of his hand;” “The world was made by him.” But in the New Testament there is a higher form used to express the relation in which we stand to him—“We are his offspring;” not the work of his hand, but the children that came forth from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith, with the high instinct of genius, speaks of God as having “loved us into being.” Now I think this is not only true with regard to man, but true likewise with regard to the world in which we live. This world is not merely a thing which God hath made, subjecting it to laws; but it is an expression of the thought, the feeling, the heart of God himself. And so it must be; because, if man be the child of God, would he not feel to be out of his element if he lived in a world which came, not from the heart of God, but only from his hand? This Christian pantheism, this belief that God is in everything, and showing himself in everything, has been much brought to the light by the poets of the past generation, and has its influence still, I hope, upon the poets of the present. We are not satisfied that the world should be a proof and varying indication of the intellect of God. That was how Paley viewed it. He taught us to believe there is a God from the mechanism of the world. But, allowing all the argument to be quite correct, what does it prove? A mechanical God, and nothing more.
The way Wordsworth's mind operated was rooted in a kind of Christian pantheism. Let me clarify that term. The poets of the Old Testament describe everything as God's creation: we are the “work of his hand;” “The world was made by him.” But the New Testament offers a deeper understanding of our relationship with him—“We are his offspring;” we are not just the products of his hands, but the children born from his heart. Our own poet Goldsmith, with his remarkable insight, said God has “loved us into being.” I believe this applies not only to humanity but also to the world we inhabit. This world is not simply something God created and rules with laws; it is a reflection of God's thoughts, feelings, and heart. It has to be this way, because if we are truly children of God, wouldn’t it feel wrong to live in a world that came not from God's heart, but only from his hands? This Christian pantheism—this belief that God is in everything and reveals himself through everything—has been highlighted by poets of the past generation, and I hope it still influences today's poets. We aren’t content to see the world merely as evidence of God's intellect. That was Paley's perspective. He urged us to recognize God through the mechanics of the world. But even if that argument is entirely valid, what does it really prove? A mechanical God, and nothing more.
Let us go further; and, looking at beauty, believe that God is the first of artists; that he has put beauty into nature, knowing how it will affect us, and intending that it should so affect us; that he has embodied his own grand thoughts thus that we might see them and be glad. Then, let us go further still, and believe that whatever we feel in the highest moments of truth shining through beauty, whatever comes to our souls as a power of life, is meant to be seen and felt by us, and to be regarded not as the work of his hand, but as the flowing forth of his heart, the flowing forth of his love of us, making us blessed in the union of his heart and ours.
Let's go deeper; and, when we look at beauty, let's believe that God is the first artist; that he has placed beauty in nature, knowing how it will impact us, and intending for it to do so; that he has expressed his grand ideas in this way so we could see them and feel joy. Now, let’s go even further, and believe that whatever we experience in the peak moments of truth illuminated by beauty, whatever reaches our souls as a source of life, is meant to be perceived and felt by us, and to be seen not just as his creation, but as the outpouring of his heart, the expression of his love for us, blessing us in the connection between his heart and ours.
Now, Wordsworth is the high priest of nature thus regarded. He saw God present everywhere; not always immediately, in his own form, it is true; but whether he looked upon the awful mountain-peak, sky-encompassed with loveliness, or upon the face of a little child, which is as it were eyes in the face of nature—in all things he felt the solemn presence of the Divine Spirit. By Keats this presence was recognized only as the spirit of beauty; to Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was manifested through the forms of the external world.
Now, Wordsworth is considered the high priest of nature. He saw God present everywhere; not always in His own form, it's true, but whether he gazed at the magnificent mountain peak, surrounded by beauty, or the face of a small child, which represents the eyes of nature—he felt the solemn presence of the Divine Spirit in all things. For Keats, this presence was acknowledged only as the spirit of beauty; for Wordsworth, God, as the Spirit of Truth, was revealed through the forms of the external world.
I have said that the life of Wordsworth was so ordered as to bring this out of him, in the forms of his art, to the ears of men. In childhood even his conscience was partly developed through the influences of nature upon him. He thus retrospectively describes this special influence of nature:—
I have said that Wordsworth's life was shaped in a way that allowed him to express this in his art, reaching people's ears. Even as a child, his conscience was partly formed by the ways nature affected him. He looks back and describes this unique influence of nature:—
One summer evening (led by her) I found A little boat, tied to a willow tree, Within a rocky cave, its usual home. Straight I unloosed her chain, and stepping in, Pushed from the shore. It was an act of stealth, And troubled pleasure, nor without the voice Of mountain echoes did my boat move on, Leaving behind her still, on either side, Small circles glittering idly in the moon, Until they melted all into one track Of sparkling light. But now, like one who rows Proud of his skill, to reach a chosen point With an unswerving line, I fixed my view Upon the summit of a craggy ridge, The horizon’s utmost boundary; far above Was nothing but the stars and the grey sky. She was an elfin pinnace; lustily I dipped my oars into the silent lake, And, as I rose upon the stroke, my boat Went heaving through the water like a swan; When, from behind that craggy steep, till then The horizon’s bound, a huge peak, black and huge, As if with voluntary power instinct, Upreared its head. I struck and struck again, And, growing still in stature, the grim shape Towered up between me and the stars, and still For so it seemed, with purpose of its own, And measured motion like a living thing, Strode after me. With trembling oars I turned, And through the silent water stole my way Back to the covert of the willow tree; There in her mooring place I left my bark, And through the meadows homeward went, in grave And serious mood; but after I had seen That spectacle, for many days, my brain Worked with a dim and undetermined sense Of unknown modes of being; o’er my thoughts There hung a darkness, call it solitude, Or blank desertion. No familiar shapes Remained, no pleasant images of trees, Of sea, or sky, no colours of green fields; But huge and mighty forms, that do not live Like living men, moved slowly through the mind By day, and were a trouble to my dreams.
One summer evening, guided by her, I found a small boat tied to a willow tree, resting in a rocky cave that was its usual home. I quickly untied the chain and stepped inside, pushing away from the shore. It felt sneaky and was mixed with a bit of excitement, and the echoes of the mountains accompanied my boat as it moved on, leaving behind small circles that sparkled in the moonlight on either side, until they merged into one path of shining light. But now, like someone rowing confidently to reach a specific point in a straight line, I focused on the peak of a jagged ridge, the farthest edge of the horizon; above was only the stars and the gray sky. She was like a magical little boat; energetically, I dipped my oars into the quiet lake, and as I pushed down on the stroke, my boat glided through the water like a swan. Then, from behind that rocky height, which until then had marked the edge of my view, a massive, dark peak rose up, as if instinctively powered. I struck and struck again, and as it grew taller, that grim shape loomed between me and the stars, and it seemed to pursue me with a purpose of its own, moving deliberately like a living thing. With shaky oars, I turned back and silently made my way toward the safety of the willow tree; there I left my boat moored, and walked home through the meadows in a serious mood. But after witnessing that spectacle, for many days, my mind was filled with a vague and uncertain awareness of unknown ways of being. A darkness lingered over my thoughts, which I could call solitude or empty abandonment. No familiar shapes remained, no pleasant images of trees, sea, or sky, no colors of green fields; instead, huge and powerful figures, unlike living men, roamed slowly through my mind during the day and troubled my dreams at night.
Here we see that a fresh impulse was given to his life even in boyhood, by the influence of nature. If we have had any similar experience, we shall be able to enter into this feeling of Wordsworth’s; if not, the tale will be almost incredible.
Here we see that a new energy was introduced into his life even as a child, by the influence of nature. If we’ve had a similar experience, we’ll be able to understand Wordsworth's feelings; if not, the story will seem almost unbelievable.
One passage more I would refer to, as showing what Wordsworth felt with regard to nature, in his youth; and the growth that took place in him in consequence. Nature laid up in the storehouse of his mind and heart her most beautiful and grand forms, whence they might be brought, afterwards, to be put to the highest human service. I quote only a few lines from that poem, deservedly a favourite with all the lovers of Wordsworth, “Lines written above Tintern Abbey:”—
One more passage I'd like to mention, as it shows what Wordsworth felt about nature in his youth and the growth he experienced because of it. Nature stored her most beautiful and grand forms in his mind and heart, ready to be used later for the highest human purposes. I’ll quote just a few lines from that poem, which is justly favored by all Wordsworth enthusiasts, “Lines written above Tintern Abbey:”
I cannot paint What then I was. The sounding cataract Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock, The mountain, and the deep and gloomy wood, Their colours and their forms, were then to me An appetite; a feeling and a love, That had no need of a remoter charm By thought supplied, nor any interest Unborrowed from the eye.—That time is past, And all its aching joys are now no more, And all its dizzy raptures. Not for this Faint I, nor mourn nor murmur; other gifts Have followed; for such loss, I would believe, Abundant recompense. For I have learned To look on nature, not as in the hour Of thoughtless youth; but hearing oftentimes The still, sad music of humanity, Nor harsh, nor grating, though of ample power To chasten and subdue. And I have felt A presence that disturbs me with the joy Of elevated thoughts; a sense sublime Of something far more deeply interfused, Whose dwelling is the light of setting suns, And the round ocean, and the living air And the blue sky, and in the mind of man; A motion and a spirit, that impels All thinking things, all objects of all thought, And rolls through all things.
I can't capture What I used to be. The roaring waterfall Haunted me like a passion; the tall rock, The mountain, and the deep, dark woods, Their colors and shapes were to me An intense desire; a feeling and a love, That didn't need any distant charm Supplied by thought, nor any interest Unborrowed from sight. —That time is gone, And all its aching joys are now over, And all its dizzy highs. Not for this Do I faint, nor mourn or complain; other gifts Have come; for such loss, I believe, There is ample compensation. For I've learned To see nature, not as in those carefree hours Of youthful thoughtlessness; but often listening To the quiet, sad music of humanity, Not harsh, nor jarring, though powerful enough To refine and calm. And I've felt A presence that stirs me with the joy Of elevated thoughts; a sublime sense Of something much more deeply mixed, Whose home is in the light of setting suns, The vast ocean, the living air, The blue sky, and in the mind of man; A movement and a spirit that drives All thinking things, all objects of thought, And flows through everything.
In this little passage you see the growth of the influence of nature on the mind of the poet. You observe, too, that nature passes into poetry; that form is sublimed into speech. You see the result of the conjunction of the mind of man, and the mind of God manifested in His works; spirit coming to know the speech of spirit. The outflowing of spirit in nature is received by the poet, and he utters again, in his form, what God has already uttered in His. Wordsworth wished to give to man what he found in nature. It was to him a power of good, a world of teaching, a strength of life. He knew that nature was not his, and that his enjoyment of nature was given to him that he might give it to man. It was the birthright of man.
In this short passage, you see how nature increasingly influences the poet's mind. You also notice that nature transforms into poetry; that form elevates into expression. You see the outcome of the connection between the mind of man and the mind of God, revealed in His creations; spirit coming to understand the language of spirit. The flowing of spirit in nature is received by the poet, who echoes in his own form what God has already expressed in His. Wordsworth wanted to share with humanity what he discovered in nature. To him, it was a source of goodness, a realm of lessons, a source of vitality. He understood that nature wasn't his own, and that his appreciation of it was given to him so he could share it with others. It was everyone’s rightful inheritance.
But what did Wordsworth find in nature? To begin with the lowest; he found amusement in nature. Right amusement is a part of teaching; it is the childish form of teaching, and if we can get this in nature, we get something that lies near the root of good. In proof that Wordsworth found this, I refer to a poem which you probably know well, “The Daisy.” The poet sits playing with the flower, and listening to the suggestions that come to him of odd resemblances that this flower bears to other things. He likens the daisy to—
But what did Wordsworth discover in nature? To start with the basics; he found enjoyment in nature. True enjoyment is part of learning; it’s a childlike way of understanding, and when we find it in nature, we uncover something fundamental to goodness. To prove that Wordsworth experienced this, I’ll reference a poem you probably know well, “The Daisy.” The poet sits playing with the flower, listening to the ideas that come to him about the strange similarities this flower has to other things. He compares the daisy to—
A little cyclops, with one eye Staring to threaten and defy, That thought comes next—and instantly The freak is over, The shape will vanish—and behold A silver shield with boss of gold, That spreads itself, some faëry bold In fight to cover!
A little cyclops with one eye Staring to threaten and challenge, That thought comes next—and instantly The freak disappears, The shape will vanish—and look A silver shield with a gold boss, That spreads itself, some bold fairy In battle to protect!
Look at the last stanza, too, and you will see how close amusement may lie to deep and earnest thought:—
Look at the last stanza as well, and you'll notice how closely amusement can be linked to deep and serious thought:—
Bright Flower! for by that name at last When all my reveries are past, I call thee, and to that cleave fast, Sweet silent creature! That breath’st with me in sun and air, Do thou, as thou art wont, repair My heart with gladness, and a share Of thy meek nature!
Bright Flower! for by that name at last When all my daydreams are done, I call you, and to that I hold tight, Sweet silent being! That breathes with me in the sun and air, Do you, as you usually do, restore My heart with joy, and a bit Of your gentle nature!
But Wordsworth found also joy in nature, which is a better thing than amusement, and consequently easier to be found. We can often have joy where we can have no amusement,—
But Wordsworth also found joy in nature, which is better than amusement and therefore easier to discover. We can often experience joy where we can't find amusement,—
I wandered lonely as a cloud That floats on high o’er vales and hills When all at once I saw a crowd, A host, of golden daffodils; Beside the lake, beneath the trees, Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
I wandered alone like a cloud That floats high above valleys and hills When suddenly I saw a crowd, A bunch of golden daffodils; Next to the lake, under the trees, Fluttering and dancing in the breeze.
The waves beside them danced; but they Out-did the sparkling waves in glee: A poet could not but be gay, In such a jocund company: I gazed—and gazed—but little thought What Health the show to me had brought. “For oft, when on my couch I lie In vacant or in pensive mood, They flash upon that inward eye Which is the bliss of solitude; And then my heart with pleasure fills, And dances with the daffodils.”
The waves next to them danced, but they outshone the sparkling waves in joy: A poet couldn’t help but feel happy, In such a cheerful company: I stared—and stared—but didn’t really realize What good health the scene had brought me. “For often, when I lie on my couch In a blank or thoughtful mood, They flash into my mind’s eye Which is the bliss of being alone; And then my heart fills with joy, And dances with the daffodils.”
This is the joy of the eye, as far as that can be separated from the joy of the whole nature; for his whole nature rejoiced in the joy of the eye; but it was simply joy; there was no further teaching, no attempt to go through this beauty and find the truth below it. We are not always to be in that hungry, restless condition, even after truth itself. If we keep our minds quiet and ready to receive truth, and sometimes are hungry for it, that is enough.
This is the joy of seeing, as much as that can be separated from the joy of the whole self; for his entire being reveled in the joy of seeing; but it was just joy; there was no deeper lesson, no effort to explore this beauty and uncover the truth beneath it. We shouldn't always be in that insatiable, restless state, even in pursuit of truth itself. If we keep our minds calm and open to receiving truth, and sometimes yearn for it, that's sufficient.
Going a step higher, you will find that he sometimes draws a lesson from nature, seeming almost to force a meaning from her. I do not object to this, if he does not make too much of it as existing in nature. It is rather finding a meaning in nature that he brought to it. The meaning exists, if not there. For illustration I refer to another poem. Observe that Wordsworth found the lesson because he looked for it, and would find it.
Taking it a step further, you’ll see that he sometimes draws a lesson from nature, almost seeming to pull a meaning out of it. I don’t mind this, as long as he doesn’t overstate its existence in nature. It’s more about finding a meaning in nature that he brings to it. The meaning exists, even if it’s not there. To illustrate, I refer to another poem. Notice that Wordsworth discovered the lesson because he sought it out and would find it.
This Lawn, a carpet all alive With shadows flung from leaves—to strive In dance, amid a press Of sunshine, an apt emblem yields Of Worldlings revelling in the fields Of strenuous idleness.
This lawn, a vibrant carpet With shadows cast by leaves—to strive In dance, among the Sunlight, gives a fitting symbol Of people enjoying their time In the fields of busy leisure.
Yet, spite of all this eager strife, This ceaseless play, the genuine life That serves the steadfast hours, Is in the grass beneath, that grows Unheeded, and the mute repose Of sweetly-breathing flowers.
Yet, despite all this eager struggle, This endless game, the true life That fills the steady hours, Is in the grass below, that grows Unnoticed, and the quiet calm Of softly-scented flowers.
Whether he forced this lesson from nature, or not, it is a good lesson, teaching a great many things with regard to life and work.
Whether he learned this lesson from nature or not, it’s a valuable lesson that teaches a lot about life and work.
Again, nature sometimes flashes a lesson on his mind; gives it to him—and when nature gives, we cannot but receive. As in this sonnet composed during a storm,—
Again, nature sometimes sends a message to his mind; gives it to him—and when nature gives, we can't help but take it in. As in this sonnet written during a storm,—
One who was suffering tumult in his soul Yet failed to seek the sure relief of prayer, Went forth; his course surrendering to the care Of the fierce wind, while mid-day lightnings prowl Insiduously, untimely thunders growl; While trees, dim-seen, in frenzied numbers tear The lingering remnant of their yellow hair, And shivering wolves, surprised with darkness, howl As if the sun were not. He raised his eye Soul-smitten; for, that instant, did appear Large space (mid dreadful clouds) of purest sky, An azure disc—shield of Tranquillity; Invisible, unlooked-for, minister Of providential goodness ever nigh!
One who was struggling with turmoil in his soul Yet didn’t seek the certain relief of prayer, Set out; letting himself be carried away By the fierce wind, while midday lightning prowled Sneakily, and untimely thunder growled; While trees, barely seen, wildly tore The last bits of their yellow leaves, And shivering wolves, caught off guard by darkness, howled As if the sun was gone. He raised his eyes, Crushed by sorrow; for, in that moment, there appeared A wide space (amid dreadful clouds) of the clearest sky, A blue circle—shield of Calm; Invisible, unexpected, a servant Of providential goodness always near!
Observe that he was not looking for this; he had not thought of praying; he was in such distress that it had benumbed the out-goings of his spirit towards the source whence alone sure comfort comes. He went out into the storm; and the uproar in the outer world was in harmony with the tumult within his soul. Suddenly a clear space in the sky makes him feel—he has no time to think about it—that there is a shield of tranquillity spread over him. For was it not as it were an opening up into that region where there are no storms; the regions of peace, because the regions of love, and truth, and purity,—the home of God himself?
Notice that he wasn't looking for this; he hadn't considered praying. He was in such distress that it had numbed his spirit, cutting him off from the source of true comfort. He stepped out into the storm, and the chaos outside matched the turmoil inside him. Suddenly, a clear area in the sky made him realize—though he had no time to process it—that there was a shield of calm surrounding him. Was it not like a glimpse into that place where there are no storms; the realms of peace, where love, truth, and purity exist—the home of God himself?
There is yet a higher and more sustained influence exercised by nature, and that takes effect when she puts a man into that mood or condition in which thoughts come of themselves. That is perhaps the best thing that can be done for us, the best at least that nature can do. It is certainly higher than mere intellectual teaching. That nature did this for Wordsworth is very clear; and it is easily intelligible. If the world proceeded from the imagination of God, and man proceeded from the love of God, it is easy to believe that that which proceeded from the imagination of God should rouse the best thoughts in the mind of a being who proceeded from the love of God. This I think is the relation between man and the world. As an instance of what I mean, I refer to one of Wordsworth’s finest poems, which he classes under the head of “Evening Voluntaries.” It was composed upon an evening of extraordinary splendour and beauty:—
There’s an even greater, more lasting influence that nature has, which kicks in when she puts a person in a state where thoughts flow naturally. This might be the best thing she can do for us, at least the best that nature can offer. It’s definitely more profound than simple intellectual teaching. It’s clear that nature did this for Wordsworth, and it’s easy to understand why. If the world came from God’s imagination, and humanity came from God’s love, it makes sense that what stems from God’s imagination would inspire the best thoughts in someone who originated from God’s love. I believe this illustrates the connection between humanity and the world. To exemplify what I mean, I’ll refer to one of Wordsworth’s most beautiful poems, which he categorizes under “Evening Voluntaries.” It was written on an evening of extraordinary splendor and beauty:—
“Had this effulgence disappeared With flying haste, I might have sent, Among the speechless clouds, a look Of blank astonishment; But ‘tis endued with power to stay, And sanctify one closing day, That frail Mortality may see— What is?—ah no, but what can, be! Time was when field and watery cove With modulated echoes rang, While choirs of fervent Angels sang Their vespers in the grove; Or, crowning, star-like, each some sovereign height, Warbled, for heaven above and earth below, Strains suitable to both. Such holy rite, Methinks, if audibly repeated now From hill or valley, could not move Sublimer transport, purer love, Than doth this silent spectacle—the gleam— The shadow—and the peace supreme! “No sound is uttered,—but a deep And solemn harmony pervades The hollow vale from steep to steep, And penetrates the glades.
“Had this brightness vanished quickly, I might have sent a look of utter shock among the silent clouds. But it has the power to remain and bless one final day, so that fragile Mortality may see—What is?—ah no, but what can, be! There was a time when fields and watery shores echoed with sweet sounds, while choirs of passionate Angels sang their evening prayers in the grove; or, like stars adorning each high peak, sang sweetly for heaven above and earth below, melodies fitting for both. Such sacred rituals, I think, if heard now from hill or valley, could not inspire a loftier joy or purer love than this silent scene—the glow—the shadow—and the ultimate peace! “No sound is spoken—but a deep and solemn harmony fills the hollow valley from one steep to another, and reaches the glades.”
“Wings at my shoulders seem to play; But, rooted here, I stand and gaze On those bright steps that heaven-ward raise Their practicable way. Come forth, ye drooping old men, look abroad, And see to what fair countries ye are bound!
“Wings on my shoulders feel like they’re moving; But, grounded here, I stand and stare At those shining paths that lead up to the sky Their doable way. Step forward, you weary old men, take a look, And see what beautiful lands await you!
“Dread Power! whom peace and calmness serve No less than Nature’s threatening voice, From THEE, if I would swerve, Oh, let Thy grace remind me of the light Full early lost, and fruitlessly deplored; Which, at this moment, on my waking sight Appears to shine, by miracle restored; My soul, though yet confined to earth, Rejoices in a second birth!”
“Fearsome Power! who is served by both peace and calm Just as much as by Nature’s threatening voice, If I were to stray from YOU, Oh, let Your grace remind me of the light That was lost so long ago, and mourned in vain; Which, at this moment, before my waking eyes Seems to shine, by a miracle brought back; My soul, though still tied to earth, Rejoices in a second chance!”
Picture the scene for yourselves; and observe how it moves in him the sense of responsibility, and the prayer, that if he has in any matter wandered from the right road, if he has forgotten the simplicity of childhood in the toil of life, he may, from this time, remember the vow that he now records—from this time to press on towards the things that are unseen, but which are manifested through the things that are seen. I refer you likewise to the poem “Resolution and Independence,” commonly called “The Leech Gatherer;” also to that grandest ode that has ever been written, the “Ode on Immortality.” You will find there, whatever you may think of his theory, in the latter, sufficient proof that nature was to him a divine teaching power. Do not suppose that I mean that man can do without more teaching than nature’s, or that a man with only nature’s teaching would have seen these things in nature. No, the soul must be tuned to such things. Wordsworth could not have found such things, had he not known something that was more definite and helpful to him; but this known, then nature was full of teaching. When we understand the Word of God, then we understand the works of God; when we know the nature of an artist, we know his pictures; when we have known and talked with the poet, we understand his poetry far better. To the man of God, all nature will be but changeful reflections of the face of God.
Imagine the scene for yourselves, and notice how it stirs in him a sense of responsibility and a prayer that if he has strayed from the right path or forgotten the simplicity of childhood amid life's struggles, he may now remember the vow he is recording—from this point on, to strive for the unseen things that are revealed through the seen. I also refer you to the poem “Resolution and Independence,” often called “The Leech Gatherer;” as well as that magnificent ode, the “Ode on Immortality.” You will find there, no matter what you think of his theory, ample proof that nature was, for him, a divine source of teaching. Don't think I mean that a person can get by with just what nature teaches, or that someone with only nature's lessons would notice these things in nature. No, the soul must be open to such insights. Wordsworth wouldn’t have discovered these things if he hadn't known something more concrete and helpful; but once he had that knowledge, then nature became a rich source of lessons. When we grasp the Word of God, we can comprehend God's works; when we understand an artist, we appreciate his artwork; when we know and engage with the poet, we connect with his poetry on a deeper level. For the person of God, all of nature becomes changing reflections of the face of God.
Loving man as Wordsworth did, he was most anxious to give him this teaching. How was he to do it? By poetry. Nature put into the crucible of a loving heart becomes poetry. We cannot explain poetry scientifically; because poetry is something beyond science. The poet may be man of science, and the man of science may be a poet; but poetry includes science, and the man who will advance science most, is the man who, other qualifications being equal, has most of the poetic faculty in him. Wordsworth defines poetry to be “the impassioned expression which is on the face of science.” Science has to do with the construction of things. The casting of the granite ribs of the mighty earth, and all the thousand operations that result in the manifestations on its surface, this is the domain of science. But when there come the grass-bearing meadows, the heaven-reared hills, the great streams that go ever downward, the bubbling fountains that ever arise, the wind that wanders amongst the leaves, and the odours that are wafted upon its wings; when we have colour, and shape, and sound, then we have the material with which poetry has to do. Science has to do with the underwork. For what does this great central world exist, with its hidden winds and waters, its upheavings and its downsinkings, its strong frame of rock, and its heart of fire? What do they all exist for? Not for themselves surely, but for the sake of this out-spreading world of beauty, that floats up, as it were, to the surface of the shapeless region of force. Science has to do with the one, and poetry with the other: poetry is “the impassioned expression that is on the face of science.” To illustrate it still further. You are walking in the woods, and you find the first primrose of the year. You feel almost as if you had found a child. You know in yourself that you have found a new beauty and a new joy, though you have seen it a thousand times before. It is a primrose. A little flower that looks at me, thinks itself into my heart, and gives me a pleasure distinct in itself, and which I feel as if I could not do without. The impassioned expression on the face of this little outspread flower is its childhood; it means trust, consciousness of protection, faith, and hope. Science, in the person of the botanist, comes after you, and pulls it to pieces to see its construction, and delights the intellect; but the science itself is dead, and kills what it touches. The flower exists not for it, but for the expression on its face, which is its poetry,—that expression which you feel to mean a living thing; that expression which makes you feel that this flower is, as it were, just growing out of the heart of God. The intellect itself is but the scaffolding for the uprearing of the spiritual nature.
Loving people as Wordsworth did, he was very eager to share this teaching with them. How was he supposed to do it? Through poetry. Nature filtered through a loving heart becomes poetry. We can’t explain poetry scientifically because poetry is something that goes beyond science. A poet can also be a scientist, and a scientist can be a poet; however, poetry encompasses science, and the person who will push science forward the most is the one, all other qualifications being equal, who has the most poetic talent. Wordsworth defines poetry as “the impassioned expression that is on the face of science.” Science deals with how things are built. The formation of the granite structure of the vast earth and all the countless processes that result in what we see on its surface fall under the domain of science. But when we see the grass-covered meadows, the towering hills, the majestic rivers flowing downward, the bubbling springs that emerge, the wind drifting through the leaves, and the scents carried by it; when we perceive color, shape, and sound, then we have the material that poetry engages with. Science tackles the underlying mechanics. Why does this great central world exist, with its concealed winds and waters, its upheavals and depressions, its solid rock formations, and its fiery core? What is the purpose of all these? Surely, not for themselves, but for the sake of this expansive world of beauty that seems to rise from the chaotic realm of energy. Science concerns itself with one aspect, while poetry addresses the other: poetry is “the impassioned expression that is on the face of science.” To illustrate this further, imagine walking in the woods and coming across the first primrose of the year. You feel almost as if you’ve discovered a child. Deep down, you know you’ve found a new beauty and joy, even though you’ve seen it many times before. It is a primrose. A small flower that gazes at me, touches my heart, and brings a unique pleasure that I feel like I can’t live without. The passionate expression on the face of this little flower represents its youth; it conveys trust, a sense of safety, faith, and hope. Science, embodied by the botanist, comes along and dissects it to understand its structure, pleasing the intellect; but the science itself is lifeless and destroys what it examines. The flower doesn’t exist for it, but for the expression on its surface, which is its poetry—an expression that you feel signifies a living entity; an expression that makes you sense that this flower is somehow just growing from the heart of God. The intellect itself serves merely as the framework for building up the spiritual essence.
It will make all this yet plainer, if you can suppose a human form to be created without a soul in it. Divine science has put it together, but only for the sake of the outshining soul that shall cause it to live, and move, and have a being of its own in God. When you see the face lighted up with soul, when you recognize in it thought and feeling, joy and love, then you know that here is the end for which it was made. Thus you see the relation that poetry has to science; and you find that, to speak in an apparent paradox, the surface is the deepest after all; for, through the surface, for the sake of which all this building went on, we have, as it were, a window into the depths of truth. There is not a form that lives in the world, but is a window cloven through the blank darkness of nothingness, to let us look into the heart, and feeling, and nature of God. So the surface of things is the best and the deepest, provided it is not mere surface, but the impassioned expression, for the sake of which the science of God has thought and laboured.
It will become even clearer if you can imagine a human body created without a soul. Divine science has shaped it, but only for the sake of the brilliant soul that will give it life, movement, and existence in God. When you see a face lit up with soul, when you recognize thought and feeling, joy and love in it, then you understand the purpose for which it was created. This illustrates the connection between poetry and science; and you find that, paradoxically, the surface is the deepest of all; for, through the surface, which is the reason for all this construction, we have, in a sense, a window into the depths of truth. Every living form in the world acts as a window sliced through the blank darkness of nothingness, allowing us to glimpse into the heart, feelings, and nature of God. So, the surface of things is both the best and the deepest, as long as it’s not just a superficial layer, but the passionate expression for which the science of God has thought and worked.
Satisfied that this was the nature of poetry, and wanting to convey this to the minds of his fellow-men, “What vehicle,” Wordsworth may be supposed to have asked himself, “shall I use? How shall I decide what form of words to employ? Where am I to find the right language for speaking such great things to men?” He saw that the poetry of the eighteenth century (he was born in 1770) was not like nature at all, but was an artificial thing, with no more originality in it than there would be in a picture a hundred times copied, the copyists never reverting to the original. You cannot look into this eighteenth century poetry, excepting, of course, a great proportion of the poetry of Cowper and Thompson, without being struck with the sort of agreement that nothing should be said naturally. A certain set form and mode was employed for saying things that ought never to have been said twice in the same way. Wordsworth resolved to go back to the root of the thing, to the natural simplicity of speech; he would have none of these stereotyped forms of expression. “Where shall I find,” said he, “the language that will be simple and powerful?” And he came to the conclusion that the language of the common people was the only language suitable for his purpose. Your experience of the everyday language of the common people may be that it is not poetical. True, but not even a poet can speak poetically in his stupid moments. Wordsworth’s idea was to take the language of the common people in their uncommon moods, in their high and, consequently, simple moods, when their minds are influenced by grief, hope, reverence, worship, love; for then he believed he could get just the language suitable for the poet. As far as that language will go, I think he was right, if I may venture to give an opinion in support of Wordsworth. Of course, there will occur necessities to the poet which would not be comprehended in the language of a man whose thoughts had never moved in the same directions, but the kind of language will be the right thing, and I have heard such amongst the common people myself—language which they did not know to be poetic, but which fell upon my ear and heart as profoundly poetic both in its feeling and its form.
Confident that this was the essence of poetry and eager to share it with others, Wordsworth might have asked himself, “What medium should I use? How do I choose the right words? Where can I find the proper language to express these significant ideas to people?” He recognized that the poetry of the eighteenth century (he was born in 1770) was nothing like nature; rather, it was artificial, lacking any originality, similar to a painting replicated a hundred times without ever returning to the original. You can’t look into this eighteenth-century poetry, except for a significant portion of Cowper's and Thompson's works, without noticing a common trend that avoided natural expression. A rigid form was used for saying things that shouldn’t have been repeated in the same way. Wordsworth decided to return to the root of poetry, embracing the natural simplicity of language; he rejected these cliché expressions. “Where will I find,” he asked, “language that is both simple and powerful?” He concluded that the language of everyday people was the only suitable choice for his goals. You might find everyday language lacks poetic quality. That’s true, but even a poet can't sound poetic in their dull moments. Wordsworth's idea was to draw from the language of common people during their extraordinary moments—when they feel grief, hope, reverence, worship, or love—because that’s when he believed he could find the right language for poetry. From what I’ve observed, I think he was onto something, if I may offer my support for Wordsworth. Naturally, there will be times when a poet needs to express ideas that don’t fit into the language of someone whose thoughts haven’t ventured into those areas, but the essence of that language will be appropriate. I have witnessed such language among common people myself—words they didn’t realize were poetic but which resonated with me as profoundly poetic in both feeling and form.
In attempting to carry out this theory, I am not prepared to say that Wordsworth never transgressed his own self-imposed laws. But he adhered to his theory to the last. A friend of the poet’s told me that Wordsworth had to him expressed his belief that he would be remembered longest, not by his sonnets, as his friend thought, but by his lyrical ballads, those for which he had been reviled and laughed at; the most by critics who could not understand him, and who were unworthy to read what he had written. As a proof of this let me read to you three verses, composing a poem that was especially marked for derision:—
In trying to put this theory into practice, I can't say that Wordsworth never broke his own rules. But he stuck to his beliefs until the end. A friend of the poet told me that Wordsworth had shared his belief that he would be remembered longer, not for his sonnets, as his friend believed, but for his lyrical ballads, the very ones that earned him criticism and ridicule; especially from critics who didn’t understand him and were unworthy of reading what he had created. To prove this point, let me read you three lines from a poem that was particularly mocked:—
She dwelt among the untrodden ways, Beside the springs of Dove; A maid whom there were none to praise, And very few to love. A violet by a mossy stone. Half hidden from the eye; Fair as a star, when only one Is shining in the sky. She lived unknown, and few could know When Lucy ceased to be; But she is in her grave, and Oh! The difference to me.
She lived in a place untouched by others, Near the springs of Dove; A girl who had no one to praise her, And very few to love. A violet by a mossy stone, Half hidden from view; Beautiful like a star, when only one Is shining in the sky. She lived without recognition, and few realized When Lucy passed away; But she’s in her grave now, and oh! It makes such a difference to me.
The last line was especially chosen as the object of ridicule; but I think with most of us the feeling will be, that its very simplicity of expression is overflowing in suggestion, it throws us back upon our own experience; for, instead of trying to utter what he felt, he says in those simple and common words, “You who have known anything of the kind, will know what the difference to me is, and only you can know.” “My intention and desire,” he says in one of his essays, “are that the interest of the poem shall owe nothing to the circumstances; but that the circumstances shall be made interesting by the thing itself.” In most novels, for instance, the attempt is made to interest us in worthless, commonplace people, whom, if we had our choice, we would far rather not meet at all, by surrounding them with peculiar and extraordinary circumstances; but this is a low source of interest. Wordsworth was determined to owe nothing to such an adventitious cause. For illustration allow me to read that well-known little ballad, “The Reverie of Poor Susan,” and you will see how entirely it bears out what he lays down as his theory. The scene is in London:—
The last line was specifically chosen as the target of ridicule; however, I think for most of us the feeling will be that its very simplicity is full of meaning, making us reflect on our own experiences. Instead of trying to articulate his feelings, he simply says, “You who have experienced anything like this will understand what the difference means to me, and only you can know.” “My aim and wish,” he states in one of his essays, “is for the poem’s interest to come from the content itself, not from the circumstances; rather, the circumstances should be made interesting by the content itself.” In most novels, for example, the effort is made to engage us with trivial, ordinary characters, whom we would rather not encounter if given the choice, by placing them in unusual and remarkable situations; but this is a low source of interest. Wordsworth was determined not to rely on such a superficial cause. To illustrate, let me read that famous little ballad, “The Reverie of Poor Susan,” and you will see how completely it supports his theory. The scene is set in London:—
At the corner of Wood-street, when daylight appears, Hangs a Thrush that sings loud, it has sung for three years; Poor Susan has passed by the spot, and has heard, In the silence of morning, the song of the Bird. ‘Tis a note of enchantment: what ails her? She sees A mountain ascending, a vision of trees; Bright volumes of vapour through Lothbury glide, And a river flows on through the vale of Cheapside. Green pastures she views in the midst of the dale, Down which she so often has tripped with her pail; And a single small cottage, a nest like a dove’s, The one only dwelling on earth that she loves. She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade, The mist and the river, the hill and the shade: The stream will not flow, and the hill will not rise, And the colours have all passed away from her eyes!
At the corner of Wood Street, when the sun comes up, A thrush is hanging out and singing loudly; it’s been singing for three years now. Poor Susan has walked by that spot and heard, In the quiet of morning, the bird’s song. It’s a magical sound: what’s wrong with her? She sees A mountain rising, a vision of trees; Bright clouds of mist float through Lothbury, And a river flows through the Cheapside valley. She sees green pastures in the middle of the valley, Down which she has often skipped with her pail; And a small cottage, a nest like a dove’s, The only place on earth that she loves. She looks, and her heart is in heaven: but they fade, The mist and the river, the hill and the shade: The stream won’t flow, and the hill won’t rise, And all the colors have faded from her eyes!
Is any of the interest here owing to the circumstances? Is it not a very common incident? But has he not treated it so that it is not commonplace in the least? We recognize in this girl just the feelings we discover in ourselves, and acknowledge almost with tears her sisterhood to us all.
Is any of the interest here due to the circumstances? Isn't it a very common occurrence? But hasn't he handled it in a way that makes it anything but commonplace? We see in this girl the same feelings we find in ourselves, and we almost tear up recognizing her connection to all of us.
I have tried to make you feel something of what Wordsworth attempts to do, but I have not given you the best of his poems. Allow me to finish by reading the closing portion of the Prelude, the poem that was published after his death. It is addressed to Coleridge:—
I have tried to help you experience some of what Wordsworth aims to convey, but I haven't shared his best poems with you. Let me wrap up by reading the final section of the Prelude, the poem that was published after his death. It's directed to Coleridge:—
Oh! yet a few short years of useful life, And all will be complete, thy race be run, Thy monument of glory will be raised; Then, though (too weak to head the ways of truth) This age fall back to old idolatry, Though men return to servitude as fast As the tide ebbs, to ignominy and shame By nations sink together, we shall still Find solace—knowing what we have learnt to know— Rich in true happiness, if allowed to be Faithful alike in forwarding a day Of firmer trust, joint labourers in the work (Should Providence such grace to us vouchsafe) Of their deliverance, surely yet to come. Prophets of Nature, we to them will speak A lasting inspiration, sanctified By reason, blest by faith: what we have loved, Others will love, and we will teach them how; Instruct them how the mind of man becomes A thousand times more beautiful than the earth On which he dwells, above this frame of things (Which, ‘mid all revolution in the hopes And fears of men, doth still remain unchanged) In beauty exalted, as it is itself Of quality and fabric more divine.
Oh! Just a few short years of meaningful life, And everything will be complete, your race will be run, Your monument of glory will be built; Then, even if (too weak to guide the ways of truth) This era falls back into old idolatry, Even if people return to servitude as quickly As the tide goes out, sinking nations together into Ignominy and shame, we will still Find comfort—knowing what we have learned to know— We will be rich in true happiness, if we can Stay faithful in promoting a day Of stronger trust, working together (If Providence grants us such grace) For their deliverance, surely yet to come. As prophets of Nature, we will speak to them A lasting inspiration, sanctified By reason, blessed by faith: what we have loved, Others will love, and we will teach them how; We will show them how the mind of man becomes A thousand times more beautiful than the earth On which he lives, above this framework of things (Which, amidst all revolution in the hopes And fears of men, still remains unchanged) In beauty exalted, as it is itself Of quality and substance more divine.
SHELLEY.
Whatever opinion may be held with regard to the relative position occupied by Shelley as a poet, it will be granted by most of those who have studied his writings, that they are of such an individual and original kind, that he can neither be hidden in the shade, nor lost in the brightness, of any other poet. No idea of his works could be conveyed by instituting a comparison, for he does not sufficiently resemble any other among English writers to make such a comparison possible.
Whatever opinion people have about Shelley’s place as a poet, most who have explored his writings will agree that they are so unique and original that he can't be overshadowed or outshined by any other poet. There’s no way to truly convey the essence of his works through comparison, as he doesn't resemble any other English writer enough to make such a comparison meaningful.
Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in the county of Sussex, on the 4th of August, 1792. He was the son of Timothy Shelley, Esq., and grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet. His ancestors had long been large landed proprietors in Sussex.
Percy Bysshe Shelley was born at Field Place, near Horsham, in Sussex, on August 4, 1792. He was the son of Timothy Shelley and the grandson of Sir Bysshe Shelley, the first baronet. His family had been significant landowners in Sussex for generations.
As a child his habits were noticeable. He was especially fond of rambling by moonlight, of inventing wonderful tales, of occupying himself with strange, and sometimes dangerous, amusements. At the age of thirteen he went to Eton. In this little world, that determined opposition to whatever appeared to him an invasion of human rights and liberty, which was afterwards the animating principle of most of his writings, was first roused in the mind of Shelley. Were we not aware of far keener distress which he afterwards endured from yet greater injustice, we might suppose that the sufferings he had to bear from placing himself in opposition to the custom of the school, by refusing to fag, had made him morbidly sensitive on the point of liberty. At a time, however, when freedom of speech, as indicating freedom of thought, was especially obnoxious to established authorities; when no allowance could be made on the score of youth, still less on that of individual peculiarity, Shelley became a student at Oxford. He was then eighteen. Devoted to metaphysical speculation, and especially fond of logical discussion, he, in his first year, printed and distributed among the authorities and members of his college a pamphlet, if that can be called a pamphlet which consisted only of two pages, in which he opposed the usual arguments for the existence of a Deity; arguments which, perhaps, the most ardent believers have equally considered inconclusive. Whether Shelley wrote this pamphlet as an embodiment of his own opinions, or merely as a logical confutation of certain arguments, the mode of procedure adopted with him was certainly not one which necessarily resulted from the position of those to whose care the education of his opinions was entrusted. Without waiting to be assured that he was the author, and satisfying themselves with his refusal to answer when questioned as to the authorship, they handed him his sentence of expulsion, which had been already drawn up in due form.
As a child, his habits were quite apparent. He particularly loved wandering under the moonlight, creating amazing stories, and engaging in odd, sometimes risky, activities. At thirteen, he went to Eton. In this small environment, the strong resistance he felt towards anything he viewed as an infringement on human rights and freedom—the principle that later fueled most of his writings—was ignited in Shelley’s mind. If we weren’t aware of the deeper suffering he later faced from even greater injustices, we might think that the challenges he faced by opposing the school's customs, like refusing to be a junior servant, made him overly sensitive about freedom. However, during a time when freedom of speech, as a reflection of freedom of thought, was particularly rejected by established authorities, and no leniency was given for youth or individual quirks, Shelley became a student at Oxford at the age of eighteen. He was dedicated to metaphysical inquiry and had a keen interest in logical debate. In his first year, he published and distributed to the authorities and members of his college a pamphlet—though it was really just two pages long—in which he challenged the typical arguments for the existence of a Deity. These arguments, perhaps, even the most passionate believers have also found unconvincing. Whether Shelley wrote this pamphlet as a reflection of his own beliefs or simply as a logical rebuttal to certain arguments, the action taken against him wasn’t a direct outcome of the stance of those responsible for guiding his education. Without confirming that he was the author and settling for his refusal to disclose authorship when asked, they promptly issued him his expulsion, which had already been prepared in advance.
About this time Shelley wrote, or commenced writing, Queen Mab, a poem which he never published, although he distributed copies among his friends. In after years he had such a low opinion of it in every respect, that he regretted having printed it at all; and when an edition of it was published without his consent, he applied to the Court of Chancery for an injunction to suppress it.
Around this time, Shelley wrote or started writing Queen Mab, a poem he never published, although he shared copies with his friends. Later on, he thought so little of it in every way that he regretted ever printing it; and when a version was published without his permission, he went to the Court of Chancery to get it suppressed.
Shelley’s opinions in politics and theology, which he appears to have been far more anxious to maintain than was consistent with the peace of the household, were peculiarly obnoxious to his father, a man as different from his son as it is possible to conceive; and his expulsion from Oxford was soon followed by exile from his home. He went to London, where, through his sisters, who were at school in the neighbourhood, he made the acquaintence of Harriet West brook, whom he eloped with and married, when he was nineteen and she sixteen years of age. It seems doubtful whether the attachment between them was more than the result of the reception accorded by the enthusiasm of the girl to the enthusiasm of the youth, manifesting itself in wild talk about human rights, and equally wild plans for their recovery and security. However this may be, the result was unfortunate. They wandered about England, Scotland, and Ireland, with frequent and sudden change of residence, for rather more than two years. During this time Shelley gained the friendship of some of the most eminent men of the age, of whom the one who exercised the most influence upon his character and future history was William Godwin, whose instructions and expostulations tended to reduce to solidity and form the vague and extravagant opinions and projects of the youthful reformer. Shortly after the commencement of the third year of their married life, an estrangement of feeling, which had been gradually widening between them, resulted in the final separation of the poet and his wife. We are not informed as to the causes of this estrangement, further than that it seems to have been owing, in a considerable degree, to the influence of an elder sister of Mrs. Shelley, who domineered over her, and whose presence became at last absolutely hateful to Shelley. His wife returned to her father’s house; where, apparently about three years after, she committed suicide. There seems to have been no immediate connection between this act and any conduct of Shelley. One of his biographers informs us, that while they were living happily together, suicide was with Mrs. Shelley a favourite subject of speculation and conversation.
Shelley’s views on politics and theology, which he seemed to care more about than what was good for family peace, were particularly upsetting to his father, who was completely different from him. His expulsion from Oxford was quickly followed by him being kicked out of the house. He moved to London, where, through his sisters who were in school nearby, he met Harriet Westbrook. He ran away with her and married her when he was nineteen and she was sixteen. It’s unclear if their connection was anything deeper than the way the girl’s enthusiasm matched the boy’s passion, which showed in their wild conversations about human rights and equally crazy plans for achieving and securing them. Regardless, things didn’t turn out well. They traveled around England, Scotland, and Ireland, frequently changing where they lived for just over two years. During that time, Shelley made friends with some of the most notable figures of the day, especially William Godwin, who had a significant impact on his character and future, helping to shape and solidify the vague and wild ideas of the young reformer. Not long after the start of their third year of marriage, a growing emotional distance led to the couple's final separation. We don’t know exactly why this distance grew, but it seems to have a lot to do with the influence of Mrs. Shelley’s older sister, who controlled her and whose presence became unbearable for Shelley. His wife went back to her father’s house, where, about three years later, she committed suicide. There doesn’t appear to be any direct connection between this act and Shelley’s behavior. One of his biographers notes that while they were happily married, suicide was a frequent topic of discussion for Mrs. Shelley.
Shortly after his first wife’s death, Shelley married the daughter of William Godwin. He had lived with her almost from the date of the separation, during which time they had twice visited Switzerland. In the following year (1817), it was decreed in Chancery that Shelley was not a proper person to take charge of his two children by his first wife, who had lived with her till her death. The bill was filed in Chancery by their grandfather, Mr. Westbrook. The effects of this proceeding upon Shelley may be easily imagined. Perhaps he never recovered from them, for they were not of a nature to pass away. During this year he resided at Marlow, and wrote The Revolt of Islam, besides portions of other poems; and the next year he left England, not to return. The state of his health, for he had appeared to be in a consumption for some time, and the fear lest his son, by his second wife, should be taken from him, combined to induce him to take refuge in Italy from both impending evils. At Lucca he began his Prometheus, and wrote Julian and Maddalo. He moved from place to place in Italy, as he had done in his own country. Their two children dying, they were for a time left childless; but the loss of these grieved Shelley less than that of his eldest two, who were taken from him by the hand of man. In 1819, Shelley finished his Prometheus Unbound, writing the greater part at Rome, and completing it at Florence. In this year also he wrote his tragedy, The Cenci, which attracted more attention during his lifetime than any other of his works. The Ode to a Skylark was written at Leghorn in the spring of 1820; and in August of the same year, the Witch of Atlas was written, near Pisa. In the following year Shelley and Byron met at Pisa. They were a good deal together; but their friendship, although real, does not appear to have been of a very profound nature; for though unlikeness be one of the necessary elements of friendship, there are kinds of unlikeness which will not harmonize. During all this time, he was not only maligned by unknown enemies, and abused by anonymous writers, but attempts of other kinds are said to have been made to render his life as uncomfortable as possible. There are grounds, however, for doubting whether Shelley was not subject to a kind of monomania upon this and similar points. In 1821, he wrote his Adonais, a monody on the death of Keats. Part of this poem had its origin in the mistaken notion, that the illness and death of Keats were caused by a brutal criticism of his Endymion, which appeared in the Quarterly Review. The last verse of the Adonais seems almost prophetic of his own end. Passionately fond of boating, he and a friend of his, Mr. Williams, united in constructing a boat of a peculiar build, a very fast sailer, but difficult to manage. On the 8th of July, 1822, Shelley and his friend Williams sailed from Leghorn for Lerici, on the Bay of Spezia, near which lay his home for the time. A sudden squall came on, and their boat disappeared. The bodies of the two friends were cast on shore; and, according to quarantine regulations, were burned to ashes. Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when the body of Shelley was burned; so that his ashes were saved, and buried in the Protestant burial-ground at Rome, near the grave of Keats, whose body had been laid there in the spring of the preceding year. Cor Cordium were the words inscribed by his widow on the tomb of the poet.
Shortly after the death of his first wife, Shelley married the daughter of William Godwin. He had been living with her almost since the separation, and during that time, they had visited Switzerland twice. The following year (1817), Chancery decided that Shelley was not a suitable person to take care of his two children from his first marriage, with whom he had lived until their mother's death. Their grandfather, Mr. Westbrook, filed the case in Chancery. It's easy to imagine how this affected Shelley. He may never have fully recovered from it, as the impact was not something one could easily shake off. During this year, he lived in Marlow and wrote The Revolt of Islam, along with parts of other poems; and the next year, he left England for good. His declining health, as he had been showing signs of tuberculosis for some time, combined with the fear that his son from his second marriage might be taken from him, pushed him to seek refuge in Italy to escape these looming threats. In Lucca, he began his Prometheus and wrote Julian and Maddalo. He moved around Italy as he had done in England. After the deaths of their two children, they were temporarily left without kids; however, this loss affected Shelley less than the earlier loss of his two eldest children, who were taken from him by others. In 1819, Shelley completed his Prometheus Unbound, writing most of it in Rome and finishing it in Florence. That same year, he wrote his tragedy The Cenci, which gained more attention during his lifetime than any of his other works. The Ode to a Skylark was written in Leghorn in the spring of 1820, and in August of that year, he wrote The Witch of Atlas near Pisa. The following year, Shelley and Byron met in Pisa. They spent quite a bit of time together; however, while their friendship was genuine, it doesn't seem to have been very deep, because even though diversity is a necessary part of friendship, some kinds of differences just do not harmonize. Throughout this time, Shelley faced slander from unknown adversaries and attacks from anonymous writers, and it's said that there were various attempts made to make his life as uncomfortable as possible. Nonetheless, there are reasons to believe that Shelley may have been somewhat obsessed with these issues. In 1821, he wrote his Adonais, a mourning poem for Keats' death. Part of this poem was inspired by the mistaken belief that Keats' illness and death were due to a harsh review of his Endymion published in the Quarterly Review. The final verse of Adonais seems almost prophetic of his own fate. He had a passionate love for boating, and he and his friend, Mr. Williams, teamed up to build a uniquely designed boat that was very fast but hard to handle. On July 8, 1822, Shelley and Williams set sail from Leghorn to Lerici, near the Bay of Spezia, where Shelley's home was at the time. A sudden squall hit, and their boat vanished. The bodies of the two friends washed ashore; as per quarantine regulations, they were cremated. Lord Byron, Leigh Hunt, and Mr. Trelawney were present when Shelley's body was burned, ensuring that his ashes were preserved and buried in the Protestant cemetery in Rome, near Keats' grave, who had been laid to rest there in the spring of the previous year. Cor Cordium were the words inscribed by his widow on the poet's tomb.
The character of Shelley has been sadly maligned. Whatever faults he may have committed against society, they were not the result of sensuality. One of his biographers, who was his companion at Oxford, and who does not seem inclined to do him more than justice, asserts that while there his conduct was immaculate. The whole picture he gives of the youth, makes it easy to believe this. To discuss the moral question involved in one part of his history would be out of place here; but even on the supposition that a man’s conduct is altogether inexcusable in individual instances, there is the more need that nothing but the truth should be said concerning that, and other portions thereof. And whatever society may have thought itself justified in making subject of reprobation, it must be remembered that Shelley was under less obligation to society than most men. Yet his heart seemed full of love to his kind; and the distress which the oppression of others caused him, was the source of much of that wild denunciation which exposed him to the contempt and hatred of those who were rendered uncomfortable by his unsparing and indiscriminate anathemas. In private, he was beloved by all who knew him; a steady, generous, self-denying friend, not only to those who moved in his own circle, but to all who were brought within the reach of any aid he could bestow. To the poor he was a true and laborious benefactor. That man must have been good to whom the heart of his widow returns with such earnest devotion and thankfulness in the recollection of the past, and such fond hope for the future, as are manifested by Mrs. Shelley in those extracts from her private journal given us by Lady Shelley.
The character of Shelley has been unfairly criticized. No matter what faults he may have had in society, they weren’t due to sensuality. One of his biographers, who was his friend at Oxford and seems to be fair to him, claims that while there, his behavior was impeccable. The overall impression he gives of Shelley as a young man makes this easy to believe. It wouldn’t be appropriate to dive into the moral questions surrounding part of his history here; however, even assuming that a man’s behavior is completely unjustifiable in certain instances, it’s even more important that only the truth is shared about that and other areas. And whatever society may have thought gave it the right to judge him, it should be noted that Shelley had less obligation to society than most people. Yet he seemed to be filled with love for others; the pain he felt from the oppression of others was a big part of the fierce criticism he expressed, which led to scorn and hatred from those who felt uncomfortable by his unfiltered and broad denunciations. In private, he was cherished by all who knew him; a loyal, generous, and selfless friend, not just to those in his social circle but to anyone in need of his help. He was a true and dedicated benefactor to the poor. A man must have been good if his widow’s heart returns to him with such heartfelt devotion and gratitude for the past, and such hopeful anticipation for the future, as shown by Mrs. Shelley in those entries from her private journal shared with us by Lady Shelley.
As regards his religious opinions, one of the thoughts which most strongly suggest themselves is,—how ill he must have been instructed in the principles of Christianity! He says himself in a letter to Godwin, “I have known no tutor or adviser (not excepting my father) from whose lessons and suggestions I have not recoiled with disgust.” So far is he from being an opponent of Christianity properly so called, that one can hardly help feeling what a Christian he would have been, could he but have seen Christianity in any other way than through the traditional and practical misrepresentations of it which surrounded him. All his attacks on Christianity are, in reality, directed against evils to which the true doctrines of Christianity are more opposed than those of Shelley could possibly be. How far he was excusable in giving the name of Christianity to what he might have seen to be only a miserable perversion of it, is another question, and one which hardly admits of discussion here. It was in the name of Christianity, however, that the worst injuries of which he had to complain were inflicted upon him. Coming out of the cathedral at Pisa one day, [Footnote: From Shelley Memorials, edited by Lady Shelley, which the writer of this paper has principally followed in regard to the external facts of Shelley’s history.] Shelley warmly assented to a remark of Leigh Hunt, “that a divine religion might be found out, if charity were really made the principle of it instead of faith.” Surely the founders of Christianity, even when they magnified faith, intended thereby a spiritual condition, of which the central principle is coincident with charity. Shelley’s own feelings towards others, as judged from his poetry, seem to be tinctured with the very essence of Christianity. [Footnote: His Essay on Christianity is full of noble views, some of which are held at the present day by some of the most earnest believers. At what time of his life it was written we are not informed; but it seems such as would insure his acceptance with any company of intelligent and devout Unitarians.] He did not, at one time at least, believe that we could know the source of our being; and seemed to take it as a self-evident truth, that the Creator could not be like the creature. But it is unjust to fix upon any utterance of opinion, and regard it as the religion of a man who died in his thirtieth year, and whose habits of thinking were such, that his opinions must have been in a state of constant change. Coleridge says in a letter: “His (Shelley’s) discussions, tending towards atheism of a certain sort, would not have scared me; for me it would have been a semitransparent larva, soon to be sloughed, and through which I should have seen the true image—the final metamorphosis. Besides, I have ever thought that sort of atheism the next best religion to Christianity; nor does the better faith I have learned from Paul and John interfere with the cordial reverence I feel for Benedict Spinoza.”
Regarding his religious views, one of the thoughts that stands out is how poorly he must have understood the principles of Christianity! He mentions in a letter to Godwin, “I have had no tutor or adviser (not even my father) whose lessons and suggestions I haven't recoiled from in disgust.” Far from being a true opponent of Christianity, one can't help but feel what a Christian he could have been, had he been able to see Christianity in a different light, rather than through the distorted and practical misrepresentations that surrounded him. All his criticisms of Christianity are actually aimed at issues that the true teachings of Christianity oppose far more than anything Shelley proposed. Whether he was justified in labeling what was just a miserable distortion of Christianity as Christianity is a separate question, and one that doesn’t really allow for discussion here. Nonetheless, it was in the name of Christianity that the worst harm he suffered was inflicted on him. One day, coming out of the cathedral in Pisa, Shelley strongly agreed with a comment from Leigh Hunt that “a true religion might be discovered if charity were truly made its foundation instead of faith.” Surely the founders of Christianity, even when they emphasized faith, meant a spiritual state that fundamentally aligns with charity. Shelley’s feelings toward others, as shown in his poetry, seem to embody the essence of Christianity. His Essay on Christianity is filled with noble ideas, some of which are still held today by some of the most sincere believers. We don’t know when in his life he wrote it, but it seems like the kind of work that would make him accepted among any group of intelligent and devout Unitarians. At one point, at least, he didn’t believe we could know the source of our existence; he seemed to accept as self-evident that the Creator could not be like the creation. However, it’s unfair to pin any expression of his opinions as the definitive religion of a man who died at thirty, whose way of thinking was such that his views must have been constantly evolving. Coleridge wrote in a letter: “His (Shelley’s) discussions, leaning toward a certain form of atheism, wouldn’t have frightened me; for me, it would have been a semi-transparent larva, soon to be shed, through which I would see the true image—the final transformation. Besides, I’ve always thought that kind of atheism is the next best belief to Christianity; and the deeper faith I've acquired from Paul and John doesn’t diminish the deep respect I have for Benedict Spinoza.”
Shelley’s favourite study was metaphysics. The more impulse there is in any direction, the more education and experience are necessary to balance that impulse: one cannot help thinking that Shelley’s taste for exercises of this kind was developed more rapidly than the corresponding power. His favourite physical studies were chemistry and electricity. With these he occupied himself from his childhood; apparently, however, with more delight in the experiments themselves, than interest in the general conclusions to be arrived at by means of them. In the embodiment of his metaphysical ideas in poetry, the influence of these studies seems to show itself; for he uses forms which appeal more to the outer senses than to the inward eye; and his similes belong to the realm of the fancy, rather than the imagination: they lack vital resemblance. Logic had considerable attractions for him. To geometry and mathematics he was quite indifferent. One of his biographers states that “he was neglectful of flowers,” because he had no interest in botany; but one who derived such full delight from the contemplation of their external forms, could hardly be expected to feel very strongly the impulse to dissect them. He derived exceeding pleasure from Greek literature, especially from the works of Plato.
Shelley's favorite subject was metaphysics. The stronger the impulse in any direction, the more education and experience are needed to balance it out: one can't help but think that Shelley's taste for this kind of exploration developed faster than his corresponding ability. His favorite physical subjects were chemistry and electricity. He engaged with these from a young age; however, it seems he found more joy in the experiments themselves than in the broader conclusions they might lead to. In his poetry, the influence of his metaphysical ideas seems evident; he uses forms that appeal more to the senses than to the imagination, and his similes are more fanciful than imaginative: they lack vital resemblance. He was quite attracted to logic. He had little interest in geometry and mathematics. One of his biographers remarked that “he was neglectful of flowers,” since he wasn't interested in botany; however, someone who found such joy in observing their external forms couldn't be expected to feel a strong urge to dissect them. He derived immense pleasure from Greek literature, particularly from Plato's works.
Several little peculiarities in Shelley’s tastes are worth mentioning, because, although in themselves insignificant, they seem to correspond with the nature of his poetry. Perhaps the most prominent of these was his passion for boat-sailing. He could not pass any piece of water without launching upon it a number of boats, constructed from what paper he could find in his pockets. The fly-leaves of the books he was in the way of carrying with him, for he was constantly reading, often went to this end. He would watch the fate of these boats with the utmost interest, till they sank or reached the opposite side. He was just as fond of real boating, and that frequently of a dangerous kind; but it is characteristic of him, that all the boats he describes in his poems are of a fairy, fantastic sort, barely related to the boats which battle with earthly winds and waves. Pistol-shooting was also a favourite amusement. Fireworks, too, gave him great delight. Some of his habits were likewise peculiar. He was remarkably abstemious, preferring bread and raisins to anything else in the way of eating, and very seldom drinking anything stronger than water. Honey was a favourite luxury with him. While at college, his biographer Hogg says he was in the habit, during the evening, of going to sleep on the rug, close to a blazing fire, heat seeming never to have other than a beneficial effect upon him. After sleeping some hours, he would awake perfectly restored, and continue actively occupied till far into the morning. His whole movements are represented as rapid, hurried, and uncertain. He would appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly; forget appointments; burst into wild laughter, heedless of his situation, whenever anything struck him as peculiarly ludicrous. His changes of residence were most numerous, and frequently made with so much haste that whole little libraries were left behind, and often lost. He was very fond of children, and used to make humorous efforts to induce them to disclose to him the still-remembered secrets of their pre-existence. He seemed to have a peculiar attraction towards mystery, and was ready to believe in a hidden secret, where no one else would have thought of one. His room, while he was at college, was in a state of indescribable confusion. Not only were all sorts of personal necessaries mingled with books and philosophical instruments, but things belonging to one department of service were not unfrequently pressed into the slavery of another. He dressed well but carelessly. In person he was tall, slender, and stooping; awkward in gait, but in manners a thorough gentleman. His complexion was delicate; his head, face, and features, remarkably small; the last not very regular, but in expression, both intellectual and moral, wonderfully beautiful. His eyes were deep blue, “of a wild, strange beauty;” his forehead high and white; his hair dark brown, curling, long, and bushy. His appearance in later life is described as singularly combining the appearances of premature age and prolonged youth.
Several odd quirks in Shelley’s tastes are worth noting because, while they may seem insignificant, they reflect the essence of his poetry. One of the most notable was his love for sailing. He couldn’t pass any body of water without launching a few boats made from whatever paper he had in his pockets. The blank pages of the books he often carried with him—since he was always reading—frequently served this purpose. He would watch the fate of these boats with intense interest until they sank or made it to the other side. He enjoyed real boating as well, often in dangerous situations; however, all the boats he describes in his poetry are of a fairy-tale, fantastical nature, barely resembling the boats that struggle against real winds and waves. He was also fond of pistol shooting, and he took great pleasure in fireworks. Some of his habits were quite unusual. He was very moderate, preferring bread and raisins over anything else for food, and he rarely drank anything stronger than water. Honey was one of his favorite treats. While at college, his biographer Hogg mentions that he would often fall asleep on the rug next to a roaring fire in the evening, as heat seemed to have only a positive effect on him. After a few hours of sleep, he would wake up fully refreshed and remain active until well into the morning. His movements were described as quick, hurried, and erratic. He would appear and disappear suddenly and unexpectedly, forget appointments, and burst out laughing without regard for his surroundings whenever something struck him as particularly funny. He changed residences frequently and often in such a rush that he left behind entire small libraries, which were usually lost. He had a deep affection for children and would humorously try to get them to share the long-remembered secrets of their past lives. He seemed to have a special fascination with mystery and was quick to believe in hidden secrets where others wouldn’t think to look. His room during college was in a state of utter chaos. All sorts of personal items were mixed with books and philosophical tools, and things from one category of use were often forced into another. He dressed well but without much care. Physically, he was tall, slender, and hunched; he had an awkward walk but was a true gentleman in manner. He had a delicate complexion; his head, face, and features were remarkably small, the last not very symmetrical but incredibly beautiful in both intellectual and moral expression. His eyes were deep blue, described as having “a wild, strange beauty;” his forehead was high and fair; his hair was dark brown, curly, long, and bushy. His appearance in later life was said to uniquely combine signs of premature aging and prolonged youth.
The only art in which his taste appears to have been developed was poetry. Even in his poetry, taken as a whole, the artistic element is not generally very manifest. His earliest verses (none of which are included in his collected works) can hardly be said to be good in any sense. He seems in these to have chosen poetry as a fitting material for the embodiment of his ardent, hopeful, indignant thoughts and feelings, but, provided he can say what he wants to say, does not seem to care much about how he says it. Indeed, there is too much of this throughout his works; for if the utterance, instead of the conveyance of thought, were the object pursued in art, of course not merely imperfection of language, but absolute external unintelligibility, would be admissible. But his art constantly increases with his sense of its necessity; so that the Cenci, which is the last work of any pretension that he wrote, is decidedly the most artistic of all. There are beautiful passages in Queen Mab, but it is the work of a boy-poet; and as it was all but repudiated by himself, it is not necessary to remark further upon it. The Revolt of Islam is a poem of twelve cantos, in the Spenserian stanza; but in all respects except the arrangement of lines and rimes, his stanza, in common with all other imitations of the Spenserian, has little or nothing of the spirit or individuality of the original. The poem is dedicated to the cause of freedom, and records the efforts, successes, defeats, and final triumphant death of two inspired champions of liberty—a youth and maiden. The adventures are marvellous, not intended to be within the bounds of probability, scarcely of possibility. There are very noble sentiments and fine passages throughout the poem. Now and then there is grandeur. But the absence of art is too evident in the fact that the meaning is often obscure; an obscurity not unfrequently occasioned by the difficulty of the stanza, which is the most difficult mode of composition in English, except the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he employs to express thought seem sometimes mechanical devices for that purpose, rather than an utterance which suggested itself naturally to a mind where the thought was vitally present. The words are more a clothing for the thought than an embodiment of it. They do not lie near enough to the thing which is intended to be represented by them. It is, however, but just to remark, that some of the obscurity is owing to the fact, that, even with Mrs. Shelley’s superintendence, the works have not yet been satisfactorily edited, or at least not conducted through the press with sufficient care. [Footnote: This statement is no longer true.]
The only area where his taste seems to have really developed was poetry. Even in his poetry overall, the artistic quality isn’t usually very obvious. His earliest poems (none of which are included in his collected works) can hardly be called good in any sense. It seems he chose poetry as a suitable way to express his passionate, hopeful, and angry thoughts and feelings, but as long as he can get his point across, he doesn’t seem to care much about how he says it. In fact, this lack of concern is evident throughout his works; because if the goal of art were the expression instead of the conveyance of thought, then not only imperfect language but complete external unintelligibility would be acceptable. However, his artistic sense develops as he recognizes its importance; so much so that the Cenci, which is the last work of any significance that he wrote, is clearly the most artistic of all. There are beautiful sections in Queen Mab, but it’s the work of a young poet, and since he nearly disowned it, there’s no need to discuss it further. The Revolt of Islam is a poem made up of twelve cantos, written in the Spenserian stanza; but aside from the line and rhyme structure, his stanza, like all other imitations of the Spenserian style, lacks the spirit and individuality of the original. The poem supports the cause of freedom and chronicles the efforts, victories, defeats, and ultimate triumphant deaths of two inspired champions of liberty—a young man and a woman. The adventures are extraordinary, meant to go beyond the bounds of probability, scarcely even possible. There are many noble sentiments and beautiful passages throughout the poem. Occasionally, there are moments of grandeur. But the lack of artistic quality is glaringly obvious in the frequent obscurity of meaning; this obscurity is often caused by the complexity of the stanza, which is one of the most difficult forms of composition in English, second only to the rigid sonnet. The words and forms he uses to express thoughts sometimes feel like mechanical devices rather than a natural expression from a mind where the thoughts were genuinely present. The words serve more as a covering for the thought than as its embodiment. They don’t connect closely enough to the ideas they’re meant to represent. However, it’s important to note that some of the obscurity is because, even under Mrs. Shelley’s supervision, the works haven’t been edited properly yet, or at least not published with enough attention to detail. [Footnote: This statement is no longer true.]
The Cenci is a very powerful tragedy, but unfitted for public representation by the horrible nature of the historical facts upon which it is founded. In the execution of it, however, Shelley has kept very much nearer to nature than in any other of his works. He has rigidly adhered to his perception of artistic propriety in respect to the dramatic utterance. It may be doubted whether there is sufficient difference between the modes of speech of the different actors in the tragedy, but it is quite possible to individualize speech far too minutely for probable nature; and in this respect, at least, Shelley has not erred. Perhaps the action of the whole is a little hurried, and a central moment of awful repose and fearful anticipation might add to the force of the tragedy. The scenes also might, perhaps, have been constructed so as to suggest more of evolution; but the central point of horror is most powerfully and delicately handled. You see a possible spiritual horror yet behind, more frightful than all that has gone before. The whole drama, indeed, is constructed around, not a prominent point, but a dim, infinitely-withdrawn, underground perspective of dismay and agony. Perhaps it detracts a little from our interest in the Lady Beatrice, that after all she should wish to live, and should seek to preserve her life by a denial of her crime. She, however, evidently justifies the denial to herself on the ground that, the deed being absolutely right, although regarded as most criminal by her judges, the only way to get true justice is to deny the fact, which, there being no guilt, she might consider as only a verbal lie. Her very purity of conscience enables her to utter this with the most absolute innocence of look, and word, and tone. This is probably a historical fact, and Shelley had to make the best of it. In the drama there is great tenderness, as well as terror; but for a full effect, one feels it desirable to be brought better acquainted with the individuals than the drama, from its want of graduation, permits. Shelley, however, was only six-and-twenty when he wrote it. He must have been attracted to the subject by its embodying the concentration of tyranny, lawlessness, and brutality in old Cenci, as opposed to, and exercised upon, an ideal loveliness and nobleness in the person of Beatrice.
The Cenci is a powerful tragedy, but it's not suitable for public performance because of the horrific historical events it’s based on. In writing it, though, Shelley has stayed much closer to reality than in his other works. He’s strictly followed his idea of artistic appropriateness regarding the dramatic expression. It’s questionable whether there’s enough difference in how the various characters speak, but individual speech can be overly specific for realism; in this regard, at least, Shelley has not made that mistake. The overall action might feel a bit rushed, and a central moment of chilling stillness and tense anticipation could enhance the tragic impact. The scenes could also have been arranged to hint at more development; however, the central moment of horror is depicted in a powerful and delicate way. You sense a possible deeper spiritual horror lurking behind, even more terrifying than everything that’s happened so far. The entire play centers not on a single striking point but on a vague, infinitely distant, underlying sense of dread and suffering. It might lessen our investment in Lady Beatrice that she ultimately wishes to live and tries to save her life by denying her crime. However, she clearly rationalizes her denial by thinking that, since the act was entirely right, despite being seen as deeply criminal by her judges, the only way to achieve true justice is to deny it. Since she feels no guilt, she considers the denial merely a verbal falsehood. Her inner purity of conscience allows her to express this with complete innocence in her expression, words, and tone. This is likely a historical fact, and Shelley had to work with it. The play contains both great tenderness and terror; yet for a full effect, it would be beneficial to know the characters better than the drama, due to its lack of development, allows. However, Shelley was only twenty-six when he wrote it. He must have been drawn to the theme by its portrayal of the culmination of tyranny, lawlessness, and brutality in old Cenci, which is exercised against the ideal beauty and nobility of Beatrice.
But of all Shelley’s works, the Prometheus Unbound is that which combines the greatest amount of individual power and peculiarity. There is an airy grandeur about it, reminding one of the vast masses of cloud scattered about in broken, yet magnificently suggestive forms, all over the summer sky, after a thunderstorm. The fundamental ideas are grand; the superstructure, in many parts, so ethereal, that one hardly knows whether he is gazing on towers of solid masonry rendered dim and unsubstantial by intervening vapour, or upon the golden turrets of cloudland, themselves born of the mist which surrounds them with a halo of glory. The beings of Greek, mythology are idealized and etherealized by the new souls which he puts into them, making them think his thoughts and say his words. In reading this, as in reading most of his poetry, we feel that, unable to cope with the evils and wrongs of the world as it and they are, he constructs a new universe, wherein he may rule according to his will; and a good will in the main it is—good always in intent, good generally in form and utterance. Of the wrongs which Shelley endured from the collision and resulting conflict between his lawless goodness and the lawful wickedness of those in authority, this is one of the greatest,—that during the right period of pupillage, he was driven from the place of learning, cast on his own mental resources long before those resources were sufficient for his support, and irritated against the purest embodiment of good by the harsh treatment he received under its name. If that reverence which was far from wanting to his nature, had been but presented, in the person of some guide to his spiritual being, with an object worthy of its homage and trust, it is probable that the yet free and noble result of Shelley’s individuality would have been presented to the world in a form which, while it attracted still only the few, would not have repelled the many; at least, not by such things as were merely accidental in their association with his earnest desires and efforts for the well-being of humanity.
But out of all of Shelley’s works, Prometheus Unbound combines the most individual power and uniqueness. There's an airy grandeur to it, reminiscent of the vast clouds scattered in broken yet magnificently suggestive shapes across the summer sky after a thunderstorm. The main ideas are grand; the additional elements in many parts are so ethereal that it's hard to tell if you're looking at solid towers of masonry, obscured and insubstantial because of the mist, or the golden towers of cloudland, born from the mist that surrounds them with a halo of glory. The figures from Greek mythology are idealized and etherealized by the new spirits he instills in them, making them think his thoughts and speak his words. In reading this, as with most of his poetry, we feel that, unable to deal with the evils and injustices of the world, he creates a new universe where he can govern according to his will; and it's largely a good will—good in intent, generally good in form and expression. Of the injustices Shelley faced due to the clash between his unruly goodness and the lawful wickedness of those in power, one of the greatest is that during his formative years, he was forced out of the academic environment, left to rely on his own mental resources long before they were adequate to support him, and upset with the pure embodiment of good because of the harsh treatment he endured in its name. If the reverence that was inherent to his nature had been properly presented, in the form of some guide to his spiritual self, with an object worthy of its respect and trust, it’s likely that the free and noble outcome of Shelley’s individuality would have been shared with the world in a way that, while still appealing to only a few, wouldn’t have alienated the many; at least not over issues that were merely incidental to his sincere wishes and efforts for the well-being of humanity.
That which chiefly distinguishes Shelley from other writers is the unequalled exuberance of his fancy. The reader, say for instance of that fantastically brilliant poem, The Witch of Atlas, the work of three days, is overwhelmed in a storm, as it were, of rainbow snow-flakes and many-coloured lightnings, accompanied ever by “a low melodious thunder.” The evidences of pure imagination in his writings are unfrequent as compared with those of fancy: there are not half the instances of the direct embodiment of idea in form, that there are of the presentation of strange resemblances between external things.
What sets Shelley apart from other writers is the unmatched vibrancy of his imagination. Take, for example, the fantastically brilliant poem, The Witch of Atlas, which was created in just three days; it immerses the reader in a whirlwind of rainbow snowflakes and colorful lightning, always accompanied by “a low melodious thunder.” The signs of pure imagination in his work are relatively rare compared to instances of fancy: there are far fewer examples of directly embodying an idea in form than there are of presenting odd similarities between external things.
One of the finest short specimens of Shelley’s peculiar mode is his Ode to the West Wind, full of mysterious melody of thought and sound. But of all his poems, the most popular, and deservedly so, is the Skylark. Perhaps the Cloud may contest it with the Skylark in regard to popular favour; but the Cloud, although full of beautiful words and fantastic cloud-like images, is, after all, principally a work of the fancy; while the Skylark, though even in it fancy predominates over imagination in the visual images, forms, as a whole, a lovely, true, individual work of art; a lyric not unworthy of the lark, which Mason apostrophizes as “sweet feathered lyric.” The strain of sadness which pervades it is only enough to make the song of the lark human.
One of the best short examples of Shelley’s unique style is his Ode to the West Wind, filled with a mysterious melody of thought and sound. But out of all his poems, the most popular, and rightly so, is the Skylark. The Cloud might compete with the Skylark in terms of popularity, but the Cloud, while full of beautiful words and whimsical, cloud-like images, is mainly a product of imagination; whereas the Skylark, despite the fact that imagination also dominates its visual imagery, ultimately creates a beautiful, genuine work of art. It is a lyric that truly honors the lark, which Mason refers to as “sweet feathered lyric.” The underlying sadness that runs through it is just enough to make the lark's song feel more human.
In The Sensitive Plant, a poem full of the peculiarities of his genius, tending through a wilderness of fanciful beauties to a thicket of mystical speculation, one curious idiosyncrasy is more prominent than in any other—curious, as belonging to the poet of beauty and loveliness: it is the tendency to be fascinated by what is ugly and revolting, so that he cannot withdraw his thoughts from it till he has described it in language, powerful, it is true, and poetic, when considered as to its fitness for the desired end, but, in force of these very excellences in the means, nearly as revolting as the objects themselves. Associated with this is the tendency to discover strangely unpleasant likenesses between things; which likenesses he is not content with seeing, but seems compelled, perhaps in order to get rid of them himself, to force upon the observation of his reader. But the admirer of Shelley is not pleased to find that one or two passages of this nature have been omitted in some editions of his works.
In The Sensitive Plant, a poem that showcases the unique qualities of his talent, navigating through a landscape of imaginative beauty towards a realm of mystical thought, one intriguing trait stands out more than any other—strange, considering he is the poet of beauty and grace: it is his fascination with what is ugly and disturbing, which keeps his mind fixed on it until he can express it in language that is indeed powerful and poetic, suitable for its purpose, but the very strength of these qualities makes it almost as repulsive as the subjects themselves. Along with this is his tendency to find odd and unpleasant similarities between things; these similarities he doesn’t just acknowledge but feels driven, perhaps to exorcise them from his own mind, to highlight to his readers. However, fans of Shelley are not happy to discover that one or two passages of this kind have been left out in some editions of his works.
Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley. Doubtless this has in part been his own fault, as Coleridge implies when he writes to this effect of him: that his horror of hypocrisy made him speak in such a wild way, that Southey (who was so much a man of forms and proprieties) was quite misled, not merely in his estimate of his worth, but in his judgment of his character. But setting aside this consideration altogether, and regarding him merely as a poet, Shelley has written verse which will last as long as English literature lasts; valuable not only from its excellence, but from the peculiarity of its excellence. To say nothing of his noble aims and hopes, Shelley will always be admired for his sweet melodies, lovely pictures, and wild prophetic imaginings. His indignant remonstrances, intermingled with grand imprecations, burst in thunder from a heart overcharged with the love of his kind, and roused to a keener sense of all oppression by the wrongs which sought to overwhelm himself. But as he recedes further in time, and men are able to see more truly the proportions of the man, they will judge, that without having gained the rank of a great reformer, Shelley had in him that element of wide sympathy and lofty hope for his kind which is essential both to the birth and the subsequent making of the greatest of poets.
Few men have been more misunderstood or misrepresented than Shelley. Certainly, this has partly been his own fault, as Coleridge suggests when he notes that Shelley's horror of hypocrisy led him to speak in such a wild manner that Southey, who was very much a stickler for rules and propriety, was completely misled—not just in his appraisal of Shelley's worth but also in his assessment of his character. However, putting this aside and looking at him solely as a poet, Shelley has written verse that will endure as long as English literature exists; it's valuable not just for its quality but for its unique qualities. Aside from his noble aims and aspirations, Shelley will always be admired for his beautiful melodies, stunning imagery, and intense prophetic visions. His passionate protests, mixed with grand curses, explode with thunder from a heart overflowing with love for humanity, heightened by his own experiences of oppression. But as time goes on and people can see the true measure of the man, they will recognize that even without achieving the status of a great reformer, Shelley possessed that deep sympathy and high hopes for his fellow humans, which are essential both to the birth and the ongoing development of the greatest poets.
A SERMON.
[Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex-street, London, 1879.]
[Footnote: Read in the Unitarian chapel, Essex Street, London, 1879.]
PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.—Let us therefore, as many as be perfect, be thus minded; and if in anything ye be otherwise minded, God shall reveal even this unto you. Nevertheless, whereto we have already attained, let us walk by that same.
PHILIPPIANS iii. 15, 16.—So then, all of us who are mature should have this mindset; and if any of you think differently, God will reveal that to you as well. However, let’s continue to live up to the truth we have already achieved.
This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is pretty clearly a not overwise marginal gloss that has crept into the text.
This is the reading of the oldest manuscripts. The rest of the verse is pretty clearly a not-so-smart marginal note that has found its way into the text.
In its origin, opinion is the intellectual body, taken for utterance and presentation by something necessarily larger than any intellect can afford stuff sufficient for the embodiment of. To the man himself, therefore, in whose mind it arose, an opinion will always represent and recall the spirit whose form it is,—so long, at least, as the man remains true to his better self. Hence, a man’s opinion may be for him invaluable, the needle of his moral compass, always pointing to the truth whence it issued, and whose form it is. Nor is the man’s opinion of the less value to him that it may change. Nay, to be of true value, it must have in it not only the possibility, but the necessity of change: it must change in every man who is alive with that life which, in the New Testament, is alone treated as life at all. For, if a man’s opinion be in no process of change whatever, it must be dead, valueless, hurtful Opinion is the offspring of that which is itself born to grow; which, being imperfect, must grow or die. Where opinion is growing, its imperfections, however many and serious, will do but little hurt; where it is not growing, these imperfections will further the decay and corruption which must already have laid hold of the very heart of the man. But it is plain in the world’s history that what, at some given stage of the same, was the embodiment in intellectual form of the highest and deepest of which it was then spiritually capable, has often and speedily become the source of the most frightful outrages upon humanity. How is this? Because it has passed from the mind in which it grew into another in which it did not grow, and has of necessity altered its nature. Itself sprung from that which was deepest in the man, it casts seeds which take root only in the intellectual understanding of his neighbour; and these, springing up, produce flowers indeed which look much the same to the eye, but fruit which is poison and bitterness,—worst of it all, the false and arrogant notion that it is duty to force the opinion upon the acceptance of others. But it is because such men themselves hold with so poor a grasp the truth underlying their forms that they are, in their self-sufficiency, so ambitious of propagating the forms, making of themselves the worst enemies of the truth of which they fancy themselves the champions. How truly, in the case of all genuine teachers of men, shall a man’s foes be they of his own household! For of all the destroyers of the truth which any man has preached, none have done it so effectually or so grievously as his own followers. So many of them have received but the forms, and know nothing of the truth which gave him those forms! They lay hold but of the non-essential, the specially perishing in those forms; and these aspects, doubly false and misleading in their crumbling disjunction, they proceed to force upon the attention and reception of men, calling that the truth which is at best but the draggled and useless fringe of its earth-made garment. Opinions so held belong to the theology of hell,—not necessarily altogether false in form, but false utterly in heart and spirit. The opinion then that is hurtful is not that which is formed in the depths, and from the honest necessities of a man’s own nature, but that which he has taken up at second hand, the study of which has pleased his intellect; has perhaps subdued fears and mollified distresses which ought rather to have grown and increased until they had driven the man to the true physician; has puffed him up with a sense of superiority as false as foolish, and placed in his hand a club with which to subjugate his neighbour to his spiritual dictation. The true man even, who aims at the perpetuation of his opinion, is rather obstructing than aiding the course of that truth for the love of which he holds his opinion; for truth is a living thing, opinion is a dead thing, and transmitted opinion a deadening thing.
In its essence, an opinion is the collection of thoughts that emerge from something greater than any single mind can fully capture. For the person who formed the opinion, it always reflects the spirit from which it originated—at least as long as they stay true to their better self. Thus, a person's opinion can be incredibly valuable, serving as their moral compass, always pointing back to the truth from which it came. The fact that a person's opinion can change doesn’t diminish its value. On the contrary, for it to be truly valuable, it must incorporate both the potential and the necessity for change: it should evolve in everyone who is alive with the kind of life described in the New Testament as true life. If a person's opinion isn’t undergoing any change, it is effectively dead, worthless, and potentially harmful. An opinion originates from something that is meant to grow; being imperfect, it must either grow or wither away. Where opinions are evolving, their imperfections, no matter how serious, cause little harm; where they aren’t evolving, those imperfections contribute to the decay and corruption that have already gripped the very essence of the person. History shows us that what was once the peak of intellectual achievement often becomes the source of terrible injustices against humanity. How does this happen? Because it moves from the mind where it developed into another where it fails to grow, inevitably altering its nature. Born from the deepest parts of a person, it plants seeds that only take root in the intellectual understanding of others; these seeds may sprout and appear similar, but they bear poisonous and bitter fruit—most troubling of all, the misguided and arrogant belief that it is a duty to impose these opinions on others. It is because such people have a weak grasp of the truth behind their opinions that they, in their arrogance, are so eager to spread those opinions, ultimately becoming the worst enemies of the truth they believe they defend. Truly, in the case of all genuine teachers, a person's greatest enemies often come from within their own circle! Of all the destroyers of the truth preached by any individual, none have done so as effectively and painfully as their own followers. Many of them grasp only the external forms and have no understanding of the underlying truth that inspired those forms! They cling only to the trivial, fleeting aspects of those forms, and these misleading fragments they force onto others, calling it the truth when it is at best just the tattered and useless edge of its earthly attire. Opinions held in this way belong to a misguided kind of theology—potentially not entirely false in form, but completely misguided in essence and spirit. The harmful opinion is not the one formed from the depths of a person's honest nature, but one taken secondhand, studied for intellectual satisfaction; it may have quelled fears and soothed anxieties that should have grown and intensified until they drove the person to seek true guidance; it inflates their sense of superiority in a way that is both foolish and false, putting a weapon in their hands to force their neighbors into obedience to their spiritual beliefs. Even the person who seeks to preserve their opinion is often hampering rather than supporting the pursuit of the truth for which they claim to hold that opinion; for truth is alive, opinion is dead, and passing down opinions merely spreads stagnation.
Let us look at St. Paul’s feeling in this regard. And, in order that we may deprive it of none of its force, let us note first the nature of the truth which he had just been presenting to his disciples, when he follows it with the words of my text:—
Let’s consider St. Paul’s feelings about this. To ensure we capture all its significance, let’s first look at the essence of the truth he had just shared with his disciples before he continues with the words of my text:—
But what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ.
But whatever benefits I had, I considered a loss for Christ.
Yea doubtless, and I count all things but loss for the excellency of the knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have suffered the loss of all things, and do count them but dung, that I may win Christ,
Yes, absolutely, and I consider everything a loss compared to the greatness of knowing Christ Jesus my Lord. Because of Him, I have given up everything, and I regard it all as garbage so that I can gain Christ.
And be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness which is of God by faith:
And be found in Him, not having my own righteousness, which comes from the law, but that which is through faith in Christ, the righteousness that is from God based on faith:
That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the fellowship of his sufferings, being made conformable unto his death;
That I may know him, and the power of his resurrection, and the shared experience of his sufferings, becoming like him in his death;
If by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.
If there's any way I can achieve the resurrection of the dead.
Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect: but I follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am apprehended of Christ Jesus.
Not that I've already achieved it or am already perfect, but I press on to try to take hold of that for which Christ Jesus took hold of me.
Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended: but this one thing I do, forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto those things which are before, I press toward the mark for the prize of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus.
Brothers, I don’t consider myself to have fully understood everything; but this one thing I do: forgetting what’s behind me and focusing on what lies ahead, I push toward the goal for the prize of God’s high calling in Christ Jesus.
St. Paul, then, had been declaring to the Philippians the idea upon which, so far as it lay with him, his life was constructed, the thing for which he lived, to which the whole conscious effort of his being was directed,—namely, to be in his very nature one with Christ, to become righteous as he is righteous; to die into his death, so that he should no more hold the slightest personal relation to evil, but be alive in every fibre to all that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, perfect. He had been telling them that he spent himself in continuous effort to lay hold upon that for the sake of which Christ had laid hold on him. This he declares the sole thing worth living for: the hope of this, the hope of becoming one with the living God, is that which keeps a glorious consciousness awake in him, amidst all the unrest of a being not yet at harmony with itself, and a laborious and persecuted life. It cannot therefore be any shadow of indifference to the truth to which he has borne this witness, that causes him to add, “If in anything ye be otherwise minded.” It is to him even the test of perfection, whether they be thus minded or not; for, although a moment before, he has declared himself short of the desired perfection, he now says, “Let as many of us as are perfect be thus minded.” There is here no room for that unprofitable thing, bare logic: we must look through the shifting rainbow of his words,—rather, we must gather all their tints together, then turn our backs upon the rainbow, that we may see the glorious light which is the soul of it. St. Paul is not that which he would be, which he must be; but he, and all they who with him believe that the perfection of Christ is the sole worthy effort of a man’s life, are in the region, though not yet at the centre, of perfection. They are, even now, not indeed grasping, but in the grasp of, that perfection. He tells them this is the one thing to mind, the one thing to go on desiring and labouring for, with all the earnestness of a God-born existence; but, if any one be at all otherwise minded,—that is, of a different opinion,—what then? That it is of little or no consequence? No, verily; but of such endless consequence that God will himself unveil to them the truth of the matter. This is Paul’s faith, not his opinion. Faith is that by which a man lives inwardly, and orders his way outwardly. Faith is the root, belief the tree, and opinion the foliage that falls and is renewed with the seasons. Opinion is, at best, even the opinion of a true man, but the cloak of his belief, which he may indeed cast to his neighbour, but not with the truth inside it: that remains in his own bosom, the oneness between him and his God. St. Paul knows well—who better?—that by no argument, the best that logic itself can afford, can a man be set right with the truth; that the spiritual perception which comes of hungering contact with the living truth—a perception which is in itself a being born again—can alone be the mediator between a man and the truth. He knows that, even if he could pass his opinion over bodily into the understanding of his neighbour, there would be little or nothing gained thereby, for the man’s spiritual condition would be just what it was before. God must reveal, or nothing is known. And this, through thousands of difficulties occasioned by the man himself, God is ever and always doing his mighty best to effect.
St. Paul had been sharing with the Philippians the core idea that shaped his life, the reason he lived, and to which all his conscious efforts were directed—specifically, to be united with Christ in his very essence, to become righteous as He is righteous; to die with His death, so that he would no longer have any personal relationship with evil but instead be fully alive to all that is pure, lovely, loving, beautiful, and perfect. He was telling them that he dedicated himself to continuously striving to grasp that for which Christ had grasped him. He stressed that this pursuit is the only thing worth living for: the hope of becoming one with the living God keeps his consciousness vibrant amidst the turmoil of a life that isn’t yet in harmony with itself and filled with difficulties and persecution. Therefore, it isn't indifference to the truth he has witnessed that leads him to add, “If in anything you think differently.” For him, this is even the measure of perfection—whether they share that mindset or not; because, although he just stated that he falls short of the perfection he seeks, he now says, “Let as many of us as are perfect be this way.” There is no space for unproductive logic here; we must look beyond the shifting colors of his words—rather, we need to gather all their hues, then turn our backs on the rainbow to see the brilliant light that is their essence. St. Paul is not yet what he aspires to be, what he must be; yet he, along with all who believe that the perfection of Christ is the ultimate aim of a person's life, are in the realm, though not yet at the center, of that perfection. They are not fully capturing it, but they are held by it. He tells them this is the one thing to focus on, the single thing to keep desiring and working toward with all the intensity of a life born of God; however, if anyone thinks differently—meaning, has a different opinion—what then? Is it of little or no significance? No, certainly not; it is of such immense importance that God Himself will reveal the truth to them. This is Paul’s faith, not just his opinion. Faith is what enables a person to live inwardly and directs how they behave outwardly. Faith is the root, belief is the tree, and opinion is the leaves that fall and regrow with the seasons. Opinion, even if it comes from a genuine person, is merely the cover of their belief, which they may share with others, but without the truth inside it: that truth remains in their own heart, the unity between them and God. St. Paul understands—who better?—that no argument, even the best logic has to offer, can align a person with the truth; it is the spiritual insight that arises from a deep connection with living truth—that insight, which is itself a new birth—that can truly bridge the gap between a person and the truth. He knows that even if he could somehow transfer his opinion directly into someone else's understanding, it wouldn’t make much of a difference, because that person’s spiritual state would remain unchanged. God must reveal the truth, or nothing is truly known. And this, despite countless challenges posed by the individual themselves, is what God is constantly and diligently working to accomplish.
See the grandeur of redeeming liberality in the Apostle. In his heart of hearts he knows that salvation consists in nothing else than being one with Christ; that the only life of every man is hid with Christ in God, and to be found by no search anywhere else. He believes that for this cause was he born into the world,—that he should give himself, heart and soul, body and spirit, to him who came into the world that he might bear witness to the truth. He believes that for the sake of this, and nothing less,—anything more there cannot be,—was the world, with its endless glories, created. Nay, more than all, he believes that for this did the Lord, in whose cross, type and triumph of his self-abnegation, he glories, come into the world, and live and die there. And yet, and yet, he says, and says plainly, that a man thinking differently from all this or at least, quite unprepared to make this whole-hearted profession of faith, is yet his brother in Christ, in whom the knowledge of Christ that he has will work and work, the new leaven casting out the old leaven until he, too, in the revelation of the Father, shall come to the perfect stature of the fulness of Christ. Meantime, Paul, the Apostle, must show due reverence to the halting and dull disciple. He must and will make no demand upon him on the grounds of what he, Paul, believes. He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own Master,—that is, Paul’s Master, and not Paul,—he stands. He leaves him to the company of his Master. “Leaves him?” No: that he does not; that he will never do, any more than God will leave him. Still and ever will he hold him and help him. But how help him, if he is not to press upon him his own larger and deeper and wiser insights? The answer is ready: he will press, not his opinion, not even the man’s opinion, but the man’s own faith upon him. “O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the light,—in the light, that is, which is thine, not which is mine; in the light which is given to thee, not to me: thou canst not walk by my light, I cannot walk by thine: how should either walk except by the light which is in him? O brother, what thou seest, that do; and what thou seest not, that thou shalt see: God himself, the Father of Lights, will show it to you.” This, this is the condition of all growth,—that whereto we have attained, we mind that same; for such, following the manuscripts, at least the oldest, seems to me the Apostle’s meaning. Obedience is the one condition of progress, and he entreats them to obey. If a man will but work that which is in him, will but make the power of God his own, then is it well with him for evermore. Like his Master, Paul urges to action, to the highest operation, therefore to the highest condition of humanity. As Christ was the Son of his Father because he did the will of the Father, so the Apostle would have them the sons of the Father by doing the will of the Father. Whereto ye have attained, walk by that.
See the greatness of generous kindness in the Apostle. Deep down, he understands that salvation is nothing more than being united with Christ; that the true life of every person is hidden with Christ in God, and can’t be found anywhere else. He believes he was born into this world for this purpose—to give himself, heart and soul, body and spirit, to the one who came to bear witness to the truth. He believes this, and nothing less—there can be nothing more—was the reason the world, with all its wonders, was created. Furthermore, he believes that this is why the Lord, in whose cross, symbol and triumph of his selflessness, he takes pride, came into the world, and lived and died there. And yet, he clearly states that a person who thinks differently or is not ready to make this full commitment of faith is still his brother in Christ, where the knowledge of Christ they have will grow and transform, with the new ideas pushing out the old until they, too, come to fully understand the Father and reach the complete fullness of Christ. Meanwhile, Paul, the Apostle, must show respect to the hesitant and slow learner. He will not impose on him based on what he, Paul, believes. He is where he is, and God is his teacher. To his own Master—that is, Paul’s Master, not Paul—he stands. He leaves him in the care of his Master. “Leaves him?” No, that’s not what he does, and he will never do that, any more than God will leave him. He will always hold onto him and support him. But how can he help him if he’s not to push his own broader and deeper insights on him? The answer is simple: he will encourage, not his opinion, nor even the man’s opinion, but the man’s own faith. “O brother, beloved of the Father, walk in the light—that is, the light that is yours, not mine; the light that is given to you, not to me: you can’t walk by my light, and I can’t walk by yours; how can either walk except by the light that is in him? O brother, do what you see, and what you don’t see, you will see: God himself, the Father of Lights, will reveal it to you.” This is the key to all growth—that we focus on what we have already achieved; for this, following the oldest manuscripts, seems to be the Apostle’s intention. Obedience is the essential condition for progress, and he urges them to obey. If a person will just act on what is in them, will make the power of God their own, then they will be well forever. Like his Master, Paul calls for action, the highest efforts, leading to the highest state of humanity. Just as Christ was the Son of his Father because he did the Father’s will, the Apostle wants them to be sons of the Father by doing the Father’s will. Walk by that which you have attained.
But there is more involved in this utterance than the words themselves will expressly carry. Next to his love to the Father and the Elder Brother, the passion of Paul’s life—I cannot call it less—is love to all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is dear to him: he can part with none of it. Division, separation, the breaking of the body of Christ, is that which he cannot endure. The body of his flesh had once been broken, that a grander body might be prepared for him: was it for that body itself to tear itself asunder? With the whole energy of his great heart, Paul clung to unity. He could clasp together with might and main the body of his Master—the body that Master loved because it was a spiritual body, with the life of his Father in it. And he knew well that only by walking in the truth to which they had attained, could they ever draw near to each other. Whereto we have attained, let us walk by that.
But there’s more to this statement than just the words themselves. Along with his love for the Father and the Elder Brother, the driving force in Paul’s life—I can’t say it’s anything less—is his love for all his brothers and sisters. Everything human is precious to him; he can't let go of any of it. He can’t stand division, separation, or the breaking of the body of Christ. His own body had once been broken so that a greater body could be formed for him: was that body meant to tear itself apart? With all the passion in his great heart, Paul held tightly to unity. He could strongly embrace the body of his Master— the body that the Master loved because it was a spiritual body, filled with the life of his Father. And he understood that the only way they could ever get closer to each other was by living according to the truth they had already achieved. Let’s walk in the truth we’ve attained.
My honoured friends, if we are not practical, we are nothing. Now, the one main fault in the Christian Church is separation, repulsion, recoil between the component particles of the Lord’s body. I will not, I do not care to inquire who is more to blame than another in the evil fact. I only care to insist that it is the duty of every individual man to be innocent of the same. One main cause, perhaps I should say the one cause of this deathly condition, is that whereto we had, we did not, whereto we have attained, we do not walk by that. Ah, friend! do not now think of thy neighbour. Do not applaud my opinion as just from what thou hast seen around thee, but answer it from thy own being, thy own behaviour. Dost thou ever feel thus toward thy neighbour,—“Yes, of course, every man is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him so long as he thinks me wrong in what I believe, and so long as I think he wrongs in his opinions the dignity of the truth?” What, I return, has the man no hand to grasp, no eyes into which yours may gaze far deeper than your vaunted intellect can follow? Is there not, I ask, anything in him to love? Who asks you to be of one opinion? It is the Lord who asks you to be of one heart. Does the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love, where there is nothing to love? Are you wiser than he, inasmuch as you perceive impossibility where he has failed to discover it? Or will you say, “Let the Lord love where he pleases: I will love where I please”? or say, and imagine you yield, “Well, I suppose I must, and therefore I will,—but with certain reservations, politely quiet in my own heart”? Or wilt thou say none of all these things, but do them all, one after the other, in the secret chambers of thy proud spirit? If you delight to condemn, you are a wounder, a divider of the oneness of Christ. If you pride yourself on your loftier vision, and are haughty to your neighbour, you are yourself a division and have reason to ask: “Am I a particle of the body at all?” The Master will deal with thee upon the score. Let it humble thee to know that thy dearest opinion, the one thou dost worship as if it, and not God, were thy Saviour, this very opinion thou art doomed to change, for it cannot possibly be right, if it work in thee for death and not for life.
My dear friends, if we aren’t practical, we are nothing. The main issue in the Christian Church is the separation, rejection, and distance between the members of the Lord’s body. I don’t care to find out who is more at fault than others in this situation. What matters is that each person needs to ensure they aren’t contributing to it. One major reason, or I should say the main reason, for this lifeless state is that we don’t act on what we’ve attained; we remain stagnant. Ah, my friend! Don’t think about your neighbor right now. Don’t agree with my opinion just because of what you see around you, but reflect on your own feelings and actions. Do you ever think this way about your neighbor: “Of course every man is my brother; but how can I be a brother to him if he thinks I’m wrong in what I believe, and I think he disrespects the truth with his opinions?” What I ask is, doesn’t this person have a hand to shake, eyes that can meet yours in a deeper way than your praised intellect can comprehend? Isn’t there something in them to love? Who says you have to agree with one opinion? It is the Lord who asks for a united heart. Does the Lord love the man? Can the Lord love when there is nothing to love? Are you wiser than He, thinking there’s a limitation where He sees none? Or will you say, “Let the Lord love whoever He wants; I’ll love who I want”? Or perhaps you’ll think, “Well, I guess I have to, so I will—but with some reservations, quietly held in my heart”? Or will you avoid saying any of this but still act this way in the hidden corners of your proud spirit? If you take joy in condemning others, you are a bruiser, a divider of Christ’s oneness. If you pride yourself on your superior perspective and look down on your neighbor, you are the division and should question yourself: “Am I even part of the body?” The Master will hold you accountable for this. It should humble you to realize that your favorite opinion, the one you treat as if it were your savior instead of God, is one you are bound to change; it cannot be right if it brings death instead of life.
Friends, you have done me the honour and the kindness to ask me to speak to you. I will speak plainly. I come before you neither hiding anything of my belief, nor foolishly imagining I can transfer my opinions into your bosoms. If there is one rôle I hate, it is that of the proselytizer. But shall I not come to you as a brother to brethren? Shall I not use the privilege of your invitation and of the place in which I stand, nay, must I not myself be obedient to the heavenly vision, in urging you with all the power of my persuasion to set yourselves afresh to walk according to that to which you have attained. So doing, whatever yet there is to learn, you shall learn it. Thus doing, and thus only, can you draw nigh to the centre truth; thus doing, and thus only, shall we draw nigh to each other, and become brothers and sisters in Christ, caring for each other’s honour and righteousness and true well-being. It is to them that keep his commandments that he and his Father will come to take up their abode with them. Whether you or I have the larger share of the truth in that which we hold, of this I am sure, that it is to them that keep his commandments that it shall be given to eat of the Tree of Life. I believe that Jesus is the eternal son of the eternal Father; that in him the ideal humanity sat enthroned from all eternity; that as he is the divine man, so is he the human God; that there was no taking of our nature upon himself, but the showing of himself as he really was, and that from evermore: these things, friends, I believe, though never would I be guilty of what in me would be the irreverence of opening my mouth in dispute upon them. Not for a moment would I endeavour by argument to convince another of this, my opinion. If it be true, it is God’s work to show it, for logic cannot. But the more, and not the less, do I believe that he, who is no respecter of persons, will, least of all, respect the person of him who thinks to please him by respecting his person, calling him, “Lord, Lord,” and not doing the things that he tells him. Even if I be right, friend, and thou wrong, to thee who doest his commandments more faithfully than I, will the more abundant entrance be administered. God grant that, when thou art admitted first, I may not be cast out, but admitted to learn of thee that it is truth in the inward parts that he requireth, and they that have that truth, and they alone, shall ever know wisdom. Bear with me, friends, for I love and honour you. I seek but to stir up your hearts, as I would daily stir up my own, to be true to that which is deepest in us,—the voice and the will of the Father of our spirits.
Friends, you’ve honored me by inviting me to speak to you. I’ll be straightforward. I stand before you without hiding my beliefs or naively thinking I can impose my views on you. The role I dislike the most is that of a converter. But am I not here as a brother to fellow brothers and sisters? Should I not take the opportunity of your invitation and my position, and must I not follow the divine calling to urge you all to recommit to living according to what you’ve already learned? By doing so, you will continue to grow in understanding. Only through this can we get closer to the ultimate truth; only in this way can we draw closer together and become true siblings in Christ, looking after each other’s honor, righteousness, and well-being. He and his Father will come to dwell with those who keep his commandments. Whether you or I possess more truth in our beliefs, I am certain that those who observe his commandments will be granted a place at the Tree of Life. I believe that Jesus is the eternal Son of the eternal Father; that in him, ideal humanity has been present from the beginning; that as he is the divine man, he is also the human God; that he did not merely take on our nature, but revealed himself as he truly is, eternally. Friends, I hold these beliefs, but I would never disrespect them by engaging in argument. Not for a moment would I try to convince anyone else of my views through debate. If this is true, it’s God’s work to reveal it, not logic. However, I believe even more firmly that he, who shows no favoritism, will especially not regard the person who thinks they can please him by honoring him, saying, “Lord, Lord,” and yet failing to follow his commands. Even if I am right and you are wrong, to you, who keep his commandments more faithfully than I do, will be granted a greater welcome. God help me, that when you are first welcomed, I may not be cast out but allowed to learn from you that what he requires is truth in our hearts, and only those who possess that truth will ever know wisdom. Please bear with me, friends, for I love and respect you. I aim only to inspire your hearts, as I strive each day to remind myself to stay true to what resonates deeply within us—the voice and will of the Father of our spirits.
Friends, I have not said we are not to utter our opinions. I have only said we are not to make those opinions the point of a fresh start, the foundation of a new building, the groundwork of anything. They are not to occupy us in our dealings with our brethren. Opinion is often the very death of love. Love aright, and you will come to think aright; and those who think aright must think the same. In the meantime, it matters nothing. The thing that does matter is, that whereto we have attained, by that we should walk. But, while we are not to insist upon our opinions, which is only one way of insisting upon ourselves, however we may cloak the fact from ourselves in the vain imagination of thereby spreading the truth, we are bound by loftiest duty to spread the truth; for that is the saving of men. Do you ask, How spread it, if we are not to talk about it? Friends, I never said, Do not talk about the truth, although I insist upon a better and the only indispensable way: let your light shine. What I said before, and say again, is, Do not talk about the lantern that holds the lamp, but make haste, uncover the light, and let it shine. Let your light so shine before men that they may see your good works,—I incline to the Vatican reading of good things,—and glorify your Father who is in heaven. It is not, Let your good works shine, but, Let your light shine. Let it be the genuine love of your hearts, taking form in true deeds; not the doing of good deeds to prove that your opinions are right. If ye are thus true, your very talk about the truth will be a good work, a shining of the light that is in you. A true smile is a good work, and may do much to reveal the Father who is in heaven; but the smile that is put on for the sake of looking right, or even for the sake of being right, will hardly reveal him, not being like him. Men say that you are cold: if you fear it may be so, do not think to make yourselves warm by putting on the cloak of this or that fresh opinion; draw nearer to the central heat, the living humanity of the Son of Man, that ye may have life in yourselves, so heat in yourselves, so light in yourselves; understand him, obey him, then your light will shine, and your warmth will warm. There is an infection, as in evil, so in good. The better we are, the more will men glorify God. If we trim our lamps so that we have light in our house, that light will shine through our windows, and give light to those that are not in the house. But remember, love of the light alone can trim the lamp. Had Love trimmed Psyche’s lamp, it had never dropped the scalding oil that scared him from her.
Friends, I’m not saying we shouldn’t voice our opinions. I’m just saying that we shouldn’t use those opinions as a fresh start, as the base for something new, or as the foundation for anything. They shouldn't preoccupy us when dealing with each other. Opinions can often kill love. Love genuinely, and you’ll start to think correctly; those who think correctly will think alike. In the meantime, it doesn’t really matter. What matters is that we should live according to what we’ve already achieved. But while we shouldn’t insist on our opinions—because that’s just a way to insist on ourselves, even if we try to convince ourselves that we’re spreading the truth—we are obligated to share the truth with the highest responsibility; that’s what saves people. Do you ask how to share it if we’re not supposed to talk about it? Friends, I never said to stop talking about the truth; I insist on a better, truly essential way: let your light shine. What I’ve said before, and I’ll say again, is don’t talk about the lantern that holds the lamp; hurry up, uncover the light, and let it shine. Let your light shine before others so they can see your good works—I lean towards the Vatican reading of good things—and glorify your Father in heaven. It’s not about letting your good works shine, but rather letting your light shine. It should be the genuine love in your hearts, taking shape in real actions; it’s not about doing good deeds to show that your opinions are correct. If you’re authentic, even your discussions about the truth will be a good work, a shining of the light within you. A genuine smile is a good work and can reveal the Father in heaven; but a smile that’s put on just to appear right, or even to actually be right, won’t reveal him because it’s not genuine. People say you’re cold; if you worry that might be true, don’t think you can warm yourself by adopting this or that trendy opinion; get closer to the central warmth, the living humanity of the Son of Man, so you have life, warmth, and light in yourself; understand him, obey him, and then your light will shine, and your warmth will spread. There’s an influence, both in good and evil. The better we are, the more people will glorify God. If we keep our lamps trimmed so that we have light in our home, that light will shine through our windows and illuminate those outside. But remember, only love for the light can trim the lamp. If Love had trimmed Psyche’s lamp, it would never have spilled the scalding oil that drove him away.
The man who holds his opinion the most honestly ought to see the most plainly that his opinion must change. It is impossible a man should hold anything aright. How shall the created embrace the self-existent Creator? That Creator, and he alone, is the truth: how, then, shall a man embrace the truth? But to him who will live it,—to him, that is, who walks by that to which he has attained,—the truth will reach down a thousand true hands for his to grasp. We would not wish to enclose that which we can do more than enclose,—live in, namely, as our home, inherit, exult in,—the presence of the infinitely higher and better, the heart of the living one. And, if we know that God himself is our inheritance, why should we tremble even with hatred at the suggestion that we may, that we must, change our opinions? If we held them aright, we should know that nothing in them that is good can ever be lost; for that is the true, whatever in them may be the false. It is only as they help us toward God, that our opinions are worth a straw; and every necessary change in them must be to more truth, to greater uplifting power. Lord, change me as thou wilt, only do not send me away. That in my opinions for which I really hold them, if I be a true man, will never pass away; that which my evils and imperfections have, in the process of embodying it, associated with the truth, must, thank God, perish and fall. My opinions, as my life, as my love, I leave in the hands of him who is my being. I commend my spirit to him of whom it came. Why, then, that dislike to the very idea of such change, that dread of having to accept the thing offered by those whom we count our opponents, which is such a stumbling-block in the way in which we have to walk, such an obstruction to our yet inevitable growth? It may be objected that no man will hold his opinions with the needful earnestness, who can entertain the idea of having to change them. But the very objection speaks powerfully against such an overvaluing of opinion. For what is it but to say that, in order to be wise, a man must consent to be a fool. Whatever must be, a man must be able to look in the face. It is because we cleave to our opinions rather than to the living God, because self and pride interest themselves for their own vile sakes with that which belongs only to the truth, that we become such fools of logic and temper that we lie in the prison-houses of our own fancies, ideas, and experiences, shut the doors and windows against the entrance of the free spirit, and will not inherit the love of the Father.
The person who sincerely believes their opinions should see clearly that those opinions need to change. It's impossible for anyone to hold anything completely right. How can the created truly connect with the self-existent Creator? That Creator, and only He, is the truth: so how can a person embrace the truth? But for those who choose to live it—those who act according to their understanding—the truth will extend countless true hands for them to grasp. We wouldn’t want to limit what we can fully inhabit—namely, live in as our home, inherit, and rejoice in—the presence of the infinitely higher and better, the essence of the living one. And if we recognize that God himself is our inheritance, why should we fear or resent the idea that we may, or even must, change our opinions? If we truly held them in the right way, we would know that nothing good within them can ever be lost; that is the true aspect, no matter what false elements they may contain. Our opinions are only valuable to the extent that they guide us toward God, and any necessary changes must lead us to greater truth and upliftment. Lord, change me as you wish, just don’t cast me away. The core of my opinions, if I’m genuine, will never fade; what my flaws and imperfections have misassociated with the truth will, thankfully, perish. I leave my opinions, my life, and my love in the hands of the One who is my very existence. I entrust my spirit to Him from whom it came. So why this aversion to the idea of change, this fear of accepting ideas from those we consider opponents, which blocks our path and hinders our inevitable growth? It could be argued that no one will hold their opinions with necessary sincerity if they entertain the possibility of changing them. But this very objection reveals an unhealthy overemphasis on opinion. Is it not to say that to be wise, one must accept being foolish? We must face whatever must be. It’s because we cling to our opinions rather than the living God, because our self-interest and pride interfere with what truly belongs only to the truth, that we become imprisoned by our own thoughts, ideas, and experiences. We close ourselves off from the free spirit and refuse to embrace the love of the Father.
Yet, for the help and comfort of even such a refuser as this, I would say: Nothing which you reject can be such as it seems to you. For a thing is either true or untrue: if it be untrue, it looks, so far like itself that you reject it, and with it we have nothing more to do; but, if it be true, the very fact that you reject it shows that to you it has not appeared true,—has not appeared itself. The truth can never be even beheld but by the man who accepts it: the thing, therefore, which you reject, is not that which it seems to you, but a thing good, and altogether beautiful, altogether fit for your gladsome embrace,—a thing from which you would not turn away, did you see it as it is, but rush to it, as Dante says, like the wild beast to his den,—so eager for the refuge of home. No honest man holds a truth for the sake of that because of which another honest man rejects it: how it may be with the dishonest, I have no confidence in my judgment, and hope I am not bound to understand.
Yet, for the help and comfort of even someone who refuses this, I would say: Nothing you reject can be as it seems to you. A thing is either true or untrue: if it’s untrue, it has enough of its essence that you reject it, and we have nothing more to discuss; but if it’s true, the very fact that you reject it shows that it hasn’t appeared true to you—hasn’t shown itself as it truly is. The truth can only be recognized by the person who accepts it: therefore, what you reject is not what it seems to you, but something good, entirely beautiful, perfectly suited for your joyful embrace—something you wouldn’t turn away from if you saw it as it is, but would rush toward it, as Dante says, like a wild beast returning to its den—so eager for the safety of home. No honest person holds onto a truth for the reason that another honest person rejects it: as for the dishonest, I don't have faith in my judgment, and I hope I’m not required to understand.
Let us then, my friends, beware lest our opinions come between us and our God, between us and our neighbour, between us and our better selves. Let us be jealous that the human shall not obscure the divine. For we are not mere human: we, too, are divine; and there is no such obliterator of the divine as the human that acts undivinely. The one security against our opinions is to walk according to the truth which they contain.
Let’s be careful, my friends, not to let our opinions create a gap between us and God, between us and our neighbors, and between us and our best selves. We should be protective of the divine not being hidden by the human. We are not just human; we are also divine, and nothing destroys the divine like a human acting without divinity. The only way to ensure our opinions don’t mislead us is to follow the truth they hold.
And if men seem to us unreasonable, opposers of that which to us is plainly true, let us remember that we are not here to convince men, but to let our light shine. Knowledge is not necessarily light; and it is light, not knowledge, that we have to diffuse. The best thing we can do, infinitely the best, indeed the only thing, that men may receive the truth, is to be ourselves true. Beyond all doing of good is the being good; for he that is good not only does good things, but all that he does is good. Above all, let us be humble before the God of truth, faithfully desiring of him that truth in the inward parts which alone can enable us to walk according to that which we have attained. May the God of peace give you his peace; may the love of Christ constrain you; may the gift of the Holy Spirit be yours. Amen.
And if people seem unreasonable to us, opposing what we believe to be obviously true, let's remember that we're not here to convince anyone, but to let our light shine. Knowledge isn't necessarily light; it's light, not knowledge, that we need to share. The best thing we can do, by far the best—indeed, the only thing—that allows others to embrace the truth is to be true ourselves. Being good is more important than simply doing good; because a good person not only does good things, but everything they do is good. Above all, let's be humble before the God of truth, earnestly seeking from Him the truth within us that allows us to live according to what we've learned. May the God of peace grant you His peace; may the love of Christ inspire you; may you receive the gift of the Holy Spirit. Amen.
TRUE CHRISTIAN MINISTERING.
[Footnote: A spoken sermon.]
[Footnote: A spoken message.]
MATT. xx. 25—28—But Jesus called them unto him and said, Ye know that the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and they that are great exercise authority upon them. But it should not be so among you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your minister; and whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant: even as the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many.
MATT. xx. 25—28—But Jesus called them over and said, "You know that the leaders of the gentiles dominate them, and those who are powerful control them. But it shouldn't be like that among you. Instead, whoever wants to be great among you must be your servant, and whoever wants to be first must be your slave. Just as the Son of Man didn't come to be served but to serve and to give his life as a ransom for many."
How little this is believed! People think, if they think about it at all, that this is very well in the church, but, as things go in the world, it won’t do. At least, their actions imply this, for every man is struggling to get above the other. Every man would make his neighbour his footstool that he may climb upon him to some throne of glory which he has in his own mind. There is a continual jostling, and crowding, and buzzing, and striving to get promotion. Of course there are known and noble exceptions; but still, there it is. And yet we call ourselves “Christians,” and we are Christians, all of us, thus far, that the truth is within reach of us all, that it has come nigh to us, talking to us at our door, and even speaking in our hearts, and yet this is the way in which we go on! The Lord said, “It shall not be so among you.” Did he mean only his twelve disciples? This was all that he had to say to them, but—thanks be to him!—he says the same to every one of us now. “It shall not be so among you: that is not the way in my kingdom.” The people of the world—the people who live in the world—will always think it best to get up, to have less and less of service to do, more and more of service done to them. The notion of rank in the world is like a pyramid; the higher you go up, the fewer are there who have to serve those above them, and who are served more than those underneath them. All who are under serve those who are above, until you come to the apex, and there stands some one who has to do no service, but whom all the others have to serve. Something like that is the notion of position—of social standing and rank. And if it be so in an intellectual way even—to say nothing of mere bodily service—if any man works to a position that others shall all look up to him and that he may have to look up to nobody, he has just put himself precisely into the same condition as the people of whom our Lord speaks—as those who exercise dominion and authority, and really he thinks it a fine thing to be served.
How little people actually believe this! They think, if they even think about it at all, that it's fine in the church, but in the real world, it won't work. Their actions show this, as everyone is trying to rise above one another. Each person would make their neighbor a stepping stone so they can climb onto a throne of glory they've imagined for themselves. There's constant jostling, pushing, buzzing, and striving for promotions. Of course, there are some known and noble exceptions, but still, that's the reality. And yet we call ourselves “Christians,” and we are Christians, at least in the sense that the truth is within everyone's reach, coming close to us, talking to us at our door, and even speaking in our hearts, and still, we act this way! The Lord said, “It shall not be so among you.” Did he mean just his twelve disciples? That was what he said to them, but—thankfully!—he says the same to each of us today. “It shall not be so among you: that is not how my kingdom operates.” The people of the world—the ones who live in the world—will always think it's best to climb higher, doing less and less service while having more and more service done for them. The idea of rank in the world is like a pyramid; the higher you go, the fewer people there are who serve those above them and who are served more than those beneath them. Everyone below serves those above, until you reach the top, where someone stands who does no serving at all, but whom everyone else has to serve. That's a bit like the idea of social position and rank. And if it’s the same in an intellectual sense—even putting aside physical service—if anyone strives to reach a position where others look up to him, and he has to look up to no one, he has just placed himself in the same situation as the people about whom our Lord speaks—those who wield power and authority, and he genuinely believes it’s a great thing to be served.
But it is not so in the kingdom of heaven. The figure there is entirely reversed. As you may see a pyramid reflected in the water, just so, in a reversed way altogether, is the thing to be found in the kingdom of God. It is in this way: the Son of Man lies at the inverted apex of the pyramid; he upholds, and serves, and ministers unto all, and they who would be high in his kingdom must go near to him at the bottom, to uphold and minister to all that they may or can uphold and minister unto. There is no other law of precedence, no other law of rank and position in God’s kingdom. And mind, that is the kingdom. The other kingdom passes away—it is a transitory, ephemeral, passing, bad thing, and away it must go. It is only there on sufferance, because in the mind of God even that which is bad ministers to that which is good; and when the new kingdom is built the old kingdom shall pass away.
But it’s not like that in the kingdom of heaven. The situation there is completely the opposite. Just as you might see a pyramid reflected in water, in a completely reversed way, that’s how things work in the kingdom of God. Here’s how it goes: the Son of Man is at the inverted peak of the pyramid; he supports, serves, and helps everyone, and those who want to be great in his kingdom must come close to him at the bottom, to support and help all that they can. There’s no other rule of order, no other rule of rank and position in God’s kingdom. And remember, that is the kingdom. The other kingdom will fade away—it’s temporary, fleeting, a bad thing, and it will inevitably go away. It only exists because in the mind of God even bad things contribute to good; and when the new kingdom is established, the old kingdom will vanish.
But the man who seeks this rank of which I have spoken, must be honest to follow it. It will not do to say, “I want to be great, and therefore I will serve.” A man will not get at it so. He may begin so, but he will soon find that that will not do. He must seek it for the truth’s sake, for the love of his fellows, for the worship of God, for the delight in what is good. In the kingdom of heaven people do not think whether I am promoted, or whether you are promoted. They are so absorbed in the delight and glory of the goodness that is round about them, that they learn not to think much about themselves. It is the bad that is in us that makes us think about ourselves. It is necessary for us, because there is bad in us, to think about ourselves, but as we go on we think less and less about ourselves, until at last we are possessed with the spirit of the truth, the spirit of the kingdom, and live in gladness and in peace. We are prouder of our brothers and sisters than of ourselves; we delight to look at them. God looks at us, and makes us what he pleases, and this is what we must come to; there is no escape from it.
But the person who wants to achieve this status I’ve mentioned must be genuine in their pursuit. It’s not enough to say, “I want to be great, so I’ll serve.” That approach won’t work. You might start off that way, but soon you’ll realize it isn’t enough. You need to seek this for the sake of truth, for the love of others, for honoring God, and for the joy of what is good. In the kingdom of heaven, people don’t worry about who gets promoted. They are so immersed in the joy and glory of goodness around them that they don’t think much about themselves. It’s our flaws that make us focus on ourselves. While it’s necessary to reflect on ourselves because of our shortcomings, as time passes, we begin to think less about ourselves until, eventually, we are filled with the spirit of truth, the spirit of the kingdom, and we live in happiness and peace. We take more pride in our brothers and sisters than in ourselves; we love to admire them. God watches over us and shapes us as He wishes, and this is the state we must strive for; there’s no way around it.
But the Lord says, that “the Son of Man came not to be ministered unto.” Was he not ministered unto then? Ah! he was ministered unto as never man was, but he did not come for that. Even now we bring to him the burnt-offerings of our very spirits, but he did not come for that. It was to help us that he came. We are told, likewise, that he is the express image of the Father. Then what he does, the Father must do; and he says himself, when he is accused of breaking the Sabbath by doing work on it, “My Father worketh hitherto, and I work.” Then this must be God’s way too, or else it could not have been Jesus’s way. It is God’s way. Oh! do not think that God made us with his hands, and then turned us out to find out our own way. Do not think of him as being always over our heads, merely throwing over us a wide-spread benevolence. You can imagine the tenderness of a mother’s heart who takes her child even from its beloved nurse to soothe and to minister to it, and that is like God; that is God. His hand is not only over us, but recollect what David said—“His hand was upon me.” I wish we were all as good Christians as David was. “Wherever I go,” he said, “God is there—beneath me, before me, his hand is upon me; if I go to sleep he is there; when I go down to the dead he is there.” Everywhere is God. The earth underneath us is his hand upholding us. [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every spring-fountain of gladness about us is his making and his delight. He tends us and cares for us; he is close to us, breathing into our nostrils the breath of life, and breathing into our spirit this thought and that thought to make us look up and recognize the love and the care around us. What a poor thing for the little baby would it be if it were to be constantly tended thus tenderly and preciously by its mother, but if it were never to open its eyes to look up and see her mother’s face bending over it. A poor thing all its tending would be without that. It is for that that the other exists; it is by that that the other comes. To recognize and know this loving-kindness, and to stand up in it strong and glad; this is the ministration of God unto us. Do you ever think “I could worship God if he was so-and-so?” Do you imagine that God is not as good, as perfect, as absolutely all-in-all as your thoughts can imagine? Aye, you cannot come up to it; do what you will you never will come up to it. Use all the symbols that we have in nature, in human relations, in the family—all our symbols of grace and tenderness, and loving-kindness between man and man, and between man and woman, and between woman and woman, but you can never come up to the thought of what God’s ministration is. When our Lord came he just let us see how his Father was doing this always, he “came to give his life a ransom for many.” It was in giving his life a ransom for us that he died; that was the consummation and crown of it all, but it was his life that he gave for us—his whole being, his whole strength, his whole energy—not alone his days of trouble and of toil, but deeper than that, he gave his whole being for us; yea, he even went down to death for us.
But the Lord says that “the Son of Man came not to be served.” Was he not served then? Ah! He was served like no one else, but he didn’t come for that. Even now we present to him the offerings of our very souls, but he didn’t come for that. He came to help us. We’re also told that he is the perfect representation of the Father. So, what he does, the Father must do; and he says himself, when he's accused of breaking the Sabbath by working on it, “My Father is working until now, and I am working.” Then this must be God's way too, or it wouldn’t have been Jesus’s way. It is God’s way. Oh! Don’t think that God made us with his hands, and then left us to find our own way. Don’t picture him as always looking down on us, just showering us with broad kindness. You can imagine the tenderness of a mother’s heart who takes her child away from its beloved nurse to soothe and care for it, and that’s like God; that is God. His hand is not only over us, but remember what David said—“His hand was upon me.” I wish we were all as good Christians as David was. “Wherever I go,” he said, “God is there—beneath me, before me, his hand is upon me; if I go to sleep, he is there; when I go to the grave, he is there.” Everywhere is God. The earth beneath us is his hand supporting us. [Footnote: The waters are in the hollow of it.] Every spring of joy around us is his making and his delight. He cares for us; he is close to us, breathing into our nostrils the breath of life, and inspiring our spirit with thoughts that make us look up and recognize the love and care surrounding us. What a sad thing it would be for a little baby if it were constantly cared for so tenderly by its mother, but never opened its eyes to see her face bending over it. All that care would mean nothing without that. It exists for that reason; it comes from that. To recognize and know this loving-kindness, and to stand strong and joyful in it; this is God’s ministry to us. Do you ever think “I could worship God if he were like this or that?” Do you believe that God isn’t as good, as perfect, as completely fulfilling as your thoughts can imagine? Yes, you can’t reach it; no matter what you do, you will never reach it. Use all the symbols we have in nature, in human relationships, in the family—all our symbols of grace and tenderness, and loving-kindness between people, but you will never fully grasp what God's ministry is. When our Lord came, he showed us how his Father was always doing this: he “came to give his life a ransom for many.” It was in giving his life as a ransom for us that he died; that was the culmination and pinnacle of it all, but it was his life that he gave for us—his entire being, his whole strength, his total energy—not just his days of suffering and toil, but deeper than that, he gave his entire existence for us; indeed, he even went down to death for us.
But how are we to learn this ministration? I will tell you where it begins. The most of us are forced to work; if you do not see that the commonest things in life belong to the Christian scheme, the plan of God, you have got to learn it. I say this is at the beginning. Most of us have to work, and infinitely better is that for us than if we were not forced to work, but not a very fine thing unless it goes to something farther. We are forced to work; and what is our work? It is doing something for other people always. It is doing; it is ministration in some shape or other. All kind of work is a serving, but it may not be always Christian service. No. Some of us only work for our wages; we must have them. We starve, and deserve to starve, if we do not work to get them. But we must go a little beyond that; yes, a very great way beyond that. There is no honest work that one man does for another which he may not do as unto the Lord and not unto men; in which he cannot do right as he ought to do right. Thus, I say that the man who sees the commonest thing in the world, recognizing it as part of the divine order of things, the law by which the world goes, being the intention of God that one man should be serviceable and useful to another—the man, I say, who does a thing well because of this, and who tries to do it better, is doing God service.
But how do we learn this service? Let me explain where it starts. Most of us have to work; if you don’t realize that the simplest parts of life are part of the Christian plan, the plan of God, then you need to understand that. I believe this understanding is essential from the beginning. Many of us have to work, and it's much better for us than if we didn't have to, but it’s not truly meaningful unless it leads to something greater. We are compelled to work, and what is our work? It’s always about doing something for others. It’s action; it’s service in one form or another. All types of work involve serving, but they aren’t always Christian service. No. Some of us just work for our pay; we need it. We’d starve, and rightly so, if we don’t work to earn it. But we must go a bit further than that; indeed, we need to go much further. There’s no honest work that one person does for another that he can’t do as if serving the Lord and not just people; in which he can’t do right as he should. Therefore, I say that a person who sees the simplest things in life, recognizing them as part of the divine order and God’s intention for one person to be helpful and useful to another—the person who does a task well because of this realization, and who strives to improve, is serving God.
We talk of “divine service.” It is a miserable name for a great thing. It is not service, properly speaking, at all. When a boy comes to his father and says, “May I do so and so for you?” or, rather, comes and breaks out in some way, showing his love to his father—says, “May I come and sit beside you? May I have some of your books? May I come and be quiet a little in your room?” what would you think of that boy if he went and said, “I have been doing my father a service.” So with praying to and thanking God, do you call that serving God? If it is not serving yourselves it is worth nothing; if it is not the best condition you can find yourselves in, you have to learn what it is yet. Not so; the work you have to do to-morrow in the counting-house, in the shop, or wherever you may be, is that by which you are to serve God. Do it with a high regard, and then there is nothing mean in it; but there is everything mean in it if you are pretending to please people when you only look for your wages. It is mean then; but if you have regard to doing a thing nobly, greatly, and truly, because it is the work that God has given you to do, then you are doing the divine service.
We talk about “divine service.” It's a terrible name for something so important. It’s not service, in the true sense of the word, at all. When a boy goes to his father and asks, “Can I do this for you?” or, even better, comes in excitedly, showing his love for his dad—saying, “Can I sit next to you? Can I use some of your books? Can I just hang out quietly in your room?”—what would you think of that boy if he then said, “I’ve been doing a service for my dad”? The same goes for praying and thanking God; do you really call that serving God? If it’s not about serving yourselves, it doesn’t mean anything; if it’s not the best state you can be in, you still have to understand what that is. No, the work you have to do tomorrow in the office, in the store, or wherever you are, is how you serve God. Do it with respect, and then there’s nothing small about it; but it becomes small if you’re just trying to please people while really just looking for your paycheck. That’s not right; but if you focus on doing your work nobly, truly, and with greatness because it’s what God has given you to do, then you’re performing divine service.
Of course, this goes a great deal farther. We have endless opportunities of showing ourselves neighbours to the man who comes near us. That is the divine service; that is the reality of serving God. The others ought to be your reward, if “reward” is a word that can be used in such a relation at all. Go home and speak to God; nay, hold your tongue, and quietly go to him in the secret recesses of your own heart, and know that God is there. Say, “God has given me this work to do, and I am doing it;” and that is your joy, that is your refuge, that is your going to heaven. It is not service. The words “divine service,” as they are used, always move me to something of indignation. It is perfect paganism; it is looking to please God by gathering together your services,—something that is supposed to be service to him. He is serving us for ever, and our Lord says, “If I have washed your feet, so you ought to wash one another’s feet.” This will be the way in which to minister for some.
Of course, this goes much deeper. We have countless opportunities to show kindness to those who come into our lives. That's the true service; that's what it really means to serve God. Helping others should be your reward, if "reward" is even the right word for this kind of relationship. Go home and talk to God; or better yet, stay quiet and go to Him in the private corners of your heart, knowing that He is there. Say, “God has given me this work to do, and I’m doing it;” and that is your joy, your refuge, your path to heaven. It’s not about service. The phrase "divine service," as it’s typically used, often frustrates me. It feels like pure paganism; it’s about trying to please God by gathering our acts of service, which we think are for Him. He serves us endlessly, and our Lord says, “If I have washed your feet, then you should wash one another’s feet.” This is how we should minister to others.
But still, when we are beginning to learn this, some of us are looking about us in a blind kind of way, thinking, “I wish I could serve God; I do not know what to do! How is it to be begun? What is it at the root of it? What shall I find out to do? Where is there something to do?”
But still, when we start to learn this, some of us are looking around in a confused way, thinking, “I wish I could serve God; I don’t know where to start! How do I begin? What’s the core of it? What should I find to do? Where can I find something to do?”
Now, first of all, service is obedience, or it is nothing. This is what I would gladly impress upon you; upon every young man who has come to the point to be able to receive it. There is a tendency in us to think that there is something degrading in obedience, something degrading in service. According to the social judgment there is; according to the judgment of the earth there is. Not so according to the judgment of heaven, for God would only have us do the very thing he is doing himself. You may see the tendency of this nowadays. There is scarcely a young man who will speak of his “master.” He feels as if there is something that hurts his dignity in doing so. He does just what so many theologians have done about God, who, instead of taking what our Lord has given us, talk about God as “the Governor of the Universe.” So a young man talks about his master as “the governor;” nay, he even talks of his own father in that way, and then you come in another region altogether, and a worse one. I take these things as symptoms, mind. I know habits may be picked up, when they get common, without any great corresponding feeling; but a wrong habit tends always to a wrong feeling, and if a man cannot learn to honour his father, so as to be able to call him “father,” I think one or the other of them is greatly to blame, whether the father or the son I cannot say. I know there are such parents that to tell their children that God is their “Father” is no help to them, but the contrary. I heard of a lady just the other day to whom, in trying to comfort her, some one said, “Remember God is your Father.” “Do not mention the name ‘father’ to me,” she said. Ah! that kind of fault does not lie in God, but in those who, not being like him, cannot use the names aright which belong to him.
Now, first of all, service means obedience, or it’s nothing at all. This is what I would want to impress upon you; on every young man who has reached a point to understand it. There’s a tendency in us to believe that there’s something degrading about obedience, something degrading about service. According to social norms, there is; according to worldly standards, there is. But that’s not how it is in the eyes of heaven, because God only wants us to do what He’s doing Himself. You can see this trend today. There’s hardly a young man who will refer to his “master.” He feels like there’s something that undermines his dignity in doing so. He does exactly what many theologians have done with God; instead of acknowledging what our Lord has offered, they refer to God as “the Governor of the Universe.” Likewise, a young man speaks of his master as “the governor;” in fact, he even refers to his own father that way, and then we enter a completely different, and worse, situation. I take these things as signs, mind you. I know habits can develop, and when they become common, they can do so without any strong corresponding feelings; but a bad habit always tends to foster a negative sentiment, and if a man can’t learn to honor his father enough to call him “father,” I think one or the other of them is greatly at fault, whether it's the father or the son, I can’t say. I know there are parents for whom telling their children that God is their “Father” is no help, but the opposite. I heard of a lady just the other day who, when someone tried to comfort her by saying, “Remember, God is your Father,” replied, “Don’t mention the name ‘father’ to me.” Ah! That kind of issue doesn’t come from God, but from those who, not resembling Him, cannot use the names that rightfully belong to Him.
But now, as to this service, this obedience. Our Lord came to give his life a ransom for the many, and to minister unto all in obedience to his Father’s will. We call him equal with God—at least, most of us here, I suppose, do; of course we do not pretend to explain; we know that God is greater than he, because he said so; but somehow, we can worship him with our God, and we need not try to distinguish more than is necessary about it. But do you think that he was less divine than the Father when he was obedient? Observe his obedience to the will of his Father. He was not the ruler there. He did not give the commands; he obeyed them. And yet we say He is God! Ah, that is no difficulty to me. Obedience is as divine in its essence as command; nay, it may be more divine in the human being far; it cannot be more divine in God, but obedience is far more divine in its essence with regard to humanity than command is. It is not the ruling being who is most like God; it is the man who ministers to his fellow, who is like God; and the man who will just sternly and rigidly do what his master tells him—be that master what he may—who is likest Christ in that one particular matter. Obedience is the grandest thing in the world to begin with. Yes, and we shall end with it too. I do not think the time will ever come when we shall not have something to do, because we are told to do it without knowing why. Those parents act most foolishly who wish to explain everything to their children—most foolishly. No; teach your child to obey, and you give him the most precious lesson that can be given to a child. Let him come to that before you have had him long, to do what he is told, and you have given him the plainest, first, and best lesson that you can give him. If he never goes to school at all he had better have that lesson than all the schooling in the world. Hence, when some people are accustomed to glorify this age of ours as being so much better in everything than those which went before, I look back to the times of chivalry, which we regard now, almost, as a thing to laugh at, or a merry thing to make jokes about; but I find that the one essential of chivalry was obedience. It is recognized in our army still, but in those times it was carried much farther. When a boy was seven years old he was sent into another family, and put with another boy there to do what? To wait with him upon the master and the mistress of the house, and to be taught, as well, what few things they knew in those times in the way of intellectual cultivation. But he also learned stern, strict obedience, such as it was impossible for him to forget. Then, when he had been there seven years, hard at work, standing behind the chair, and ministering, he was advanced a step; and what was that step? He was made an esquire. He had his armour given him; he had to watch his armour in the chapel all night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God. I do not say that all these things were carried out afterwards, but this was the idea of them. He was an esquire, and what was the duty of an esquire? More service; more important service. He still had to attend to his master, the knight. He had to watch him; he had to groom his horse for him; he had to see that his horse was sound; he had to clean his armour for him; to see that every bolt, every rivet, every strap, every buckle was sound, for the life of his master was in his hands. The master, having to fight, must not be troubled with these things, and therefore the squire had to attend to them. Then seven years after that a more solemn ceremony is gone through, and the squire is made a knight; but is he free of service then? No; he makes a solemn oath to help everybody who needs help, especially women and children, and so he rides out into the world to do the work of a true man. There was a grand and essential idea of Christianity in that—no doubt wonderfully broken and shattered, but not more so than the Christian church has been; wonderfully broken and shattered, but still the essence of obedience; and I say it is recognized in our army still, and in every army; and where it is lost it is a terrible loss, and an army is worth nothing without it. You remember that terrible story from the East, that fearful death-charge, one of the grandest things in our history, although one of the most blundering:—
But now, regarding this service and obedience. Our Lord came to give his life as a ransom for many and to serve everyone in obedience to his Father’s will. We refer to him as equal with God—at least, I assume most of us here do. We don’t pretend to understand it fully; we know God is greater than him because he said so. Yet somehow, we can worship him alongside our God, and we don’t need to draw too many distinctions about it. But do you think he was less divine than the Father when he was obedient? Notice his obedience to his Father’s will. He wasn’t the one in charge there. He didn't give the orders; he followed them. And still, we say He is God! That’s not an issue for me. Obedience is just as divine in essence as giving commands; in fact, it might be more divine in humans. It can’t be more divine in God, but obedience is certainly more divine in terms of humanity than commands are. It’s not the one in charge who reflects God the most; it’s the person who serves others who resembles God; and the person who rigidly does what their master tells them—no matter who that master is—resembles Christ in that one aspect. Obedience is the greatest thing in the world from the start. Yes, and we will end with it too. I don’t think there will ever be a time when we won’t have something to do, since we are told to do it without knowing why. Those parents are being very foolish who think they should explain everything to their children—very foolish. No; teach your child to obey, and you give them the most valuable lesson possible. If they learn to do what they are told early on, you have given them the simplest, first, and best lesson you can. If they never go to school at all, having that lesson is better than all the education in the world. So when some people glorify our age as being way better in every way than those before it, I look back to the times of chivalry, which we now almost laugh at or joke about; but I find that the essential value of chivalry was obedience. It’s still recognized in our army, but in those times, it went much deeper. When a boy turned seven, he was sent to another household and paired with another boy for what purpose? To serve the master and mistress of the house and to learn what few things they knew in terms of education. But he also learned strict, disciplined obedience that was impossible for him to forget. After seven years of hard work, standing behind the chair and serving, he’d move up a level; and what was that level? He became a squire. He received his armor and had to keep watch over it in the chapel all night, laying it on the altar in silent devotion to God. I don’t claim that all of this was completed afterward, but this was the intention behind it. He was a squire, and what was his duty? More service; more significant service. He still had to help his master, the knight. He had to look after him; groom his horse; ensure his horse was sound; clean his armor; check that every bolt, rivet, strap, and buckle was secure, for the life of his master depended on him. The master, being in battle, shouldn’t be burdened with these concerns, so the squire managed them. Then, seven years later, there was a more solemn ceremony, and the squire became a knight; but was he free from service then? No; he took a solemn oath to help anyone in need, especially women and children, and so he went out into the world to do the work of a true man. There was a grand and essential idea of Christianity in that—undoubtedly deeply broken and shattered, but not more so than the Christian church itself; wonderfully broken and shattered, but still with the essence of obedience; and I say it is still recognized in our army and every army; and where it is lost, it’s a terrible loss, and an army is worth nothing without it. You remember that dreadful story from the East, that fearsome death charge, one of the most remarkable events in our history, although one of the most disastrous:—
“Theirs not to make reply, Theirs not to reason why, Theirs but to do and die; Into the valley of death Rode the Six Hundred.”
“They don’t get to respond, They don’t get to question why, They just have to act and die; Into the valley of death Rode the Six Hundred.”
So with the Christian man; whatever meets him, obedience is the thing. If he is told by his conscience, which is the candle of God within him, that he must do a thing, why he must do it. He may tremble from head to foot at having to do it, but he will tremble more if he turns his back. You recollect how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red Cross, who is the knight of holiness, ill in body, diseased in mind, without any of his armour on, attacked by a fearful giant. What does he do? Run away? No, he has but time to catch up his sword, and, trembling in every limb, he goes on to meet the giant; and that is the thing that every Christian man must do. I cannot put it too strongly; it is impossible. There is no escape from it. If death itself lies before us, and we know it, there is nothing to be said; it is all to be done, and then there is no loss; everything else is all lost unto God. Look at our Lord. He gave his life to do the will of his Father, and on he went and did it. Do you think it was easy for him—easier for him than it would have been for us? Ah! the greater the man the more delicate and tender his nature, and the more he shrinks from the opposition even of his fellowmen, because he loves them. It was a terrible thing for Christ. Even now and then, even in the little touches that come to us in the scanty story (though enough) this breaks out. “We are told by John that at the Last Supper He was troubled in spirit, and testified.” And then how he tries to comfort himself as soon as Judas has gone out to do the thing which was to finish his great work: “Now is the Son of Man glorified, and God is glorified in him. If God be glorified in him, God shall also glorify him in himself.” Then he adds,—just gathering up his strength,—“I shall straightway glorify him.” This was said to his disciples, but I seem to see in it that some of it was said for himself. This is the grand obedience! Oh, friends, this is a hard lesson to learn. We find every day that it is a hard thing to teach. We are continually grumbling because we cannot get the people about us, our servants, our tradespeople, or whoever they may be, to do just what we tell them. It makes half the misery in the world because they will have something of their own in it against what they are told. But are we not always doing the same thing? and ought we not to learn something of forgiveness for them, and very much from the fact that we are just in the same position? We only recognize in part that we are put here in this world precisely to learn to be obedient. He who is our Lord and our God went on being obedient all the time, and was obedient always; and I say it is as divine for us to obey as it is for God to rule. As I have said already, God is ministering the whole time. Now, do you want to know how to minister? Begin by obeying. Obey every one who has a right to command you; but above all, look to what our Lord has said, and find out what he wants you to do out of what he left behind, and try whether obedience to that will not give a consciousness of use, of ministering, of being a part of the grand scheme and way of God in this world. In fact, take your place in it as a vital portion of the divine kingdom, or—to use a better figure than that—a vital portion of the Godhead. Try it, and see whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is not dignity; whether you will not feel in yourselves that you have begun to be cleansed from your plague when you begin to say, “I will seek no more to be above my fellows, but I will seek to minister to them, doing my work in God’s name for them.”
So it is with the Christian man; whatever happens, obedience is key. If his conscience, which is God's light within him, tells him to do something, he must do it. He might feel terrified at the thought of doing it, but he will feel even more afraid if he turns away. Remember how our old poet Spenser shows us the Knight of the Red Cross, the knight of holiness, who is sick in body, troubled in mind, unarmored, and attacked by a huge giant. What does he do? Run away? No, he just has time to grab his sword, and despite trembling, he steps up to face the giant; and that’s what every Christian man must do. I can't stress it enough; it’s impossible to avoid. Even if death lies ahead and we know it, there’s nothing left to say; we just must act, and then there's no loss; everything else is lost to God. Look at our Lord. He gave his life to fulfill His Father's will, and he went ahead and did it. Do you think it was easy for him—easier than it would be for us? Ah! the greater the person, the more sensitive and tender they are, and the more they shy away from opposition, even from their fellow humans, because they love them. It was a terrible ordeal for Christ. Even in the little details we get from the brief story (which is enough), this shows through. “John tells us that at the Last Supper He was troubled in spirit and testified.” Then how he tries to comfort himself after Judas leaves to do what would complete his great work: “Now the Son of Man is glorified, and God is glorified in him. If God is glorified in him, God will also glorify him in himself.” Then he adds—just gathering his strength—“I will glorify him soon.” He was speaking to his disciples, but it seems like some of it was meant for himself. This is true obedience! Oh, friends, this is a tough lesson to learn. Every day we find how difficult it is to teach. We’re constantly complaining because we can’t get those around us—our workers, our suppliers, or whoever—to just do what we ask. This causes a lot of the world’s misery because they want to put something of their own into it against what they are told. But aren’t we doing the same thing? Shouldn’t we learn to forgive them and recognize that we’re in the same position? We only partly realize that we are here in this world to learn obedience. He who is our Lord and God was always obedient; I say it’s as divine for us to obey as it is for God to lead. As I’ve mentioned before, God is constantly serving. Now, do you want to know how to serve? Start by obeying. Obey everyone who has the right to command you; but above all, listen to what our Lord has said, discover what he wants you to do from what he left behind, and see if obedience to that doesn’t bring a sense of purpose, of serving, of being part of God’s grand plan in this world. In fact, take your place in it as an essential part of the divine kingdom or—to use a better analogy—an essential part of the Godhead. Try it and see whether obedience is not salvation; whether service is not dignity; whether you will not feel that you’ve begun to be freed from your burdens when you start to say, “I will no longer seek to be above others, but I will seek to serve them, doing my work in God’s name for them.”
“Who sweeps a room as for Thy law, Makes that and the action fine.”
“Whoever sweeps a room as if it’s for Your law, Makes both the room and the act special.”
Both the room and the action are good when done for God’s sake. That is dear old George Herbert’s way of saying the same truth, for every man has his own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to make you think as God thinks, feel as God feels, judge as God judges, is just the one thing that is promised. I do not know anything else that is promised positively but that, and who dares pray for anything else with perfect confidence? God will not give us what we pray for except it be good for us, but that is one thing that we must have or perish. Therefore, let us pray for that, and with the name of God dwelling in us—if this is not true, the whole world is a heap of ruins—let us go forth and do this service of God in ministering to our fellows, and so helping him in his work of upholding, and glorifying and saving all.
Both the room and the action are good when done for God’s sake. That’s dear old George Herbert’s way of expressing the same truth, since everyone has their own way of saying it. The gift of the Spirit of God to help you think like God thinks, feel like God feels, and judge like God judges is exactly what is promised. I don’t know of anything else that is positively promised, and who would dare pray for anything else with full confidence? God won’t give us what we pray for unless it’s good for us, but that is one thing we absolutely need or we will perish. So, let’s pray for that, and with the name of God within us—if this isn’t true, then the whole world is in ruins—let’s go out and do this service for God by helping our fellow humans, thus assisting Him in His work of upholding, glorifying, and saving everyone.
THE FANTASTIC IMAGINATION
That we have in English no word corresponding to the German Mährchen, drives us to use the word Fairytale, regardless of the fact that the tale may have nothing to do with any sort of fairy. The old use of the word Fairy, by Spenser at least, might, however, well be adduced, were justification or excuse necessary where need must.
The fact that there's no English word that matches the German Mährchen forces us to use the word Fairytale, even though the story might not involve any actual fairies. However, the earlier use of the word Fairy, at least by Spenser, could be mentioned if justification or explanation is needed where necessary.
Were I asked, what is a fairytale? I should reply, Read Undine: that is a fairytale; then read this and that as well, and you will see what is a fairytale. Were I further begged to describe the fairytale, or define what it is, I would make answer, that I should as soon think of describing the abstract human face, or stating what must go to constitute a human being. A fairytale is just a fairytale, as a face is just a face; and of all fairytales I know, I think Undine the most beautiful.
If someone were to ask me, "What is a fairytale?" I would say, Read Undine: that's a fairytale; then check out this and that too, and you'll understand what a fairytale is. If they pressed me to describe the fairytale or define it, I would say it's as difficult as trying to describe a human face or explaining what makes someone human. A fairytale is simply a fairytale, just like a face is just a face; and out of all the fairytales I know, I think Undine is the most beautiful.
Many a man, however, who would not attempt to define a man, might venture to say something as to what a man ought to be: even so much I will not in this place venture with regard to the fairytale, for my long past work in that kind might but poorly instance or illustrate my now more matured judgment. I will but say some things helpful to the reading, in right-minded fashion, of such fairytales as I would wish to write, or care to read.
Many men, however, who wouldn’t try to define a man, might be willing to say something about what a man should be. I won’t attempt that here concerning fairytales, as my past efforts in that area may not effectively demonstrate my now more developed perspective. Instead, I’ll share a few thoughts that could be useful for reading, in a constructive way, the types of fairytales I’d like to write or enjoy reading.
Some thinkers would feel sorely hampered if at liberty to use no forms but such as existed in nature, or to invent nothing save in accordance with the laws of the world of the senses; but it must not therefore be imagined that they desire escape from the region of law. Nothing lawless can show the least reason why it should exist, or could at best have more than an appearance of life.
Some thinkers would feel seriously restricted if they could only use forms that exist in nature or create only according to the laws of the physical world; however, it shouldn't be assumed that they want to escape the realm of law. Anything without law has no reason to exist and, at best, can only have an illusion of life.
The natural world has its laws, and no man must interfere with them in the way of presentment any more than in the way of use; but they themselves may suggest laws of other kinds, and man may, if he pleases, invent a little world of his own, with its own laws; for there is that in him which delights in calling up new forms—which is the nearest, perhaps, he can come to creation. When such forms are new embodiments of old truths, we call them products of the Imagination; when they are mere inventions, however lovely, I should call them the work of the Fancy: in either case, Law has been diligently at work.
The natural world has its own rules, and people shouldn't interfere with them any more than they do with their actual use. However, these rules can inspire different kinds of laws, and people can create a little world of their own if they want, complete with their own rules. There’s something in our nature that enjoys bringing new forms to life, which is probably the closest we can get to creating something new. When these forms represent old truths in a fresh way, we call them products of the Imagination; when they’re just creations, no matter how beautiful, I’d call them the work of the Fancy. In both cases, Law has been hard at work.
His world once invented, the highest law that comes next into play is, that there shall be harmony between the laws by which the new world has begun to exist; and in the process of his creation, the inventor must hold by those laws. The moment he forgets one of them, he makes the story, by its own postulates, incredible. To be able to live a moment in an imagined world, we must see the laws of its existence obeyed. Those broken, we fall out of it. The imagination in us, whose exercise is essential to the most temporary submission to the imagination of another, immediately, with the disappearance, of Law, ceases to act. Suppose the gracious creatures of some childlike region of Fairyland talking either cockney or Gascon! Would not the tale, however lovelily begun, sink at once to the level of the Burlesque—of all forms of literature the least worthy? A man’s inventions may be stupid or clever, but if he do not hold by the laws of them, or if he make one law jar with another, he contradicts himself as an inventor, he is no artist. He does not rightly consort his instruments, or he tunes them in different keys. The mind of man is the product of live Law; it thinks by law, it dwells in the midst of law, it gathers from law its growth; with law, therefore, can it alone work to any result. Inharmonious, unconsorting ideas will come to a man, but if he try to use one of such, his work will grow dull, and he will drop it from mere lack of interest. Law is the soil in which alone beauty will grow; beauty is the only stuff in which Truth can be clothed; and you may, if you will, call Imagination the tailor that cuts her garments to fit her, and Fancy his journeyman that puts the pieces of them together, or perhaps at most embroiders their button-holes. Obeying law, the maker works like his creator; not obeying law, he is such a fool as heaps a pile of stones and calls it a church.
Once he creates his world, the most important rule is that there must be harmony among the laws that govern this new world. As the creator, he must adhere to these laws. If he forgets even one, he makes the story unbelievable according to its own rules. To fully experience a moment in this imagined world, we must see its laws followed. When those laws are broken, we no longer belong to that world. Our imagination, which is crucial for engaging with someone else's imagination, stops functioning the moment law disappears. Imagine the lovely beings from a childlike Fairyland speaking in cockney or Gascon! Wouldn't the story, no matter how beautifully it starts, immediately drop to the level of farce—one of the least respectable forms of literature? An inventor’s creations can be either foolish or brilliant, but if he doesn't stick to their laws, or if one law clashes with another, he contradicts himself as a creator; he is not an artist. He fails to harmonize his tools, or he tunes them to different pitches. The human mind is shaped by living law; it thinks through law, exists within law, and grows from law; therefore, it can only produce meaningful results with law. Inconsistent, discordant ideas may come to a person, but if he tries to use one, his work will become dull, and he will abandon it out of sheer boredom. Law is the foundation in which beauty can thrive; beauty is the only material in which Truth can be expressed; you could even say that Imagination is the tailor that designs her outfits, and Fancy is the helper that assembles them, or at most embellishes their buttonholes. By following law, the creator works like his maker; by ignoring law, he is a fool who simply piles up stones and calls it a church.
In the moral world it is different: there a man may clothe in new forms, and for this employ his imagination freely, but he must invent nothing. He may not, for any purpose, turn its laws upside down. He must not meddle with the relations of live souls. The laws of the spirit of man must hold, alike in this world and in any world he may invent. It were no offence to suppose a world in which everything repelled instead of attracted the things around it; it would be wicked to write a tale representing a man it called good as always doing bad things, or a man it called bad as always doing good things: the notion itself is absolutely lawless. In physical things a man may invent; in moral things he must obey—and take their laws with him into his invented world as well.
In the moral realm, it's different: a person can reshape ideas in new ways and use their imagination, but they can't create anything entirely new. They can't turn the laws of morality upside down for any reason. They shouldn't interfere with the relationships between living beings. The laws governing the human spirit must apply, both in this world and in any imaginary one they create. It wouldn’t be wrong to imagine a world where everything repels rather than attracts; however, it would be wrong to write a story where a character deemed good always does bad things, or a character deemed bad always does good things: that concept itself is completely lawless. In physical matters, a person can invent freely; in moral matters, they must follow the rules—and carry those rules into their imagined world as well.
“You write as if a fairytale were a thing of importance: must it have a meaning?”
“You write as if a fairytale is something significant: does it really need to have a meaning?”
It cannot help having some meaning; if it have proportion and harmony it has vitality, and vitality is truth. The beauty may be plainer in it than the truth, but without the truth the beauty could not be, and the fairytale would give no delight. Everyone, however, who feels the story, will read its meaning after his own nature and development: one man will read one meaning in it, another will read another.
It definitely has some meaning; if it has balance and harmony, it has energy, and energy is truth. The beauty might be more obvious in it than the truth, but without the truth, the beauty couldn't exist, and the fairytale wouldn't be enjoyable. However, anyone who connects with the story will interpret its meaning based on their own personality and growth: one person will find one meaning in it, while another will find a different one.
“If so, how am I to assure myself that I am not reading my own meaning into it, but yours out of it?”
“If that’s the case, how can I make sure I’m not imposing my own meaning onto it, but instead getting yours from it?”
Why should you be so assured? It may be better that you should read your meaning into it. That may be a higher operation of your intellect than the mere reading of mine out of it: your meaning may be superior to mine.
Why should you be so confident? It might be better for you to interpret it in your own way. That could be a deeper exercise of your intellect than just taking my meaning from it: your interpretation might surpass mine.
“Suppose my child ask me what the fairytale means, what am I to say?”
“Suppose my child asks me what the fairytale means, what am I supposed to say?”
If you do not know what it means, what is easier than to say so? If you do see a meaning in it, there it is for you to give him. A genuine work of art must mean many things; the truer its art, the more things it will mean. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of art that it needs THIS IS A HORSE written under it, what can it matter that neither you nor your child should know what it means? It is there not so much to convey a meaning as to wake a meaning. If it do not even wake an interest, throw it aside. A meaning may be there, but it is not for you. If, again, you do not know a horse when you see it, the name written under it will not serve you much. At all events, the business of the painter is not to teach zoology.
If you don’t understand what it means, what’s easier than just saying so? If you see a meaning in it, then it’s yours to interpret. A true piece of art should convey many meanings; the more authentic its art, the more interpretations it will have. If my drawing, on the other hand, is so far from being a work of art that it needs "THIS IS A HORSE" written underneath it, what does it matter if neither you nor your child knows what it means? It’s not there to provide a meaning but to inspire one. If it doesn’t even spark your interest, just put it aside. There may be a meaning there, but it’s not for you. And if you can’t recognize a horse when you see one, the label underneath won’t help you much anyway. In any case, the painter’s job isn’t to teach zoology.
But indeed your children are not likely to trouble you about the meaning. They find what they are capable of finding, and more would be too much. For my part, I do not write for children, but for the childlike, whether of five, or fifty, or seventy-five.
But your kids probably won't bother you about the meaning. They discover what they can, and anything more would be overwhelming. As for me, I don't write for children, but for those who are childlike, whether they are five, fifty, or seventy-five.
A fairytale is not an allegory. There may be allegory in it, but it is not an allegory. He must be an artist indeed who can, in any mode, produce a strict allegory that is not a weariness to the spirit. An allegory must be Mastery or Moorditch.
A fairytale isn't an allegory. It might contain elements of allegory, but it isn't one itself. Only a true artist can create a strict allegory, in any style, that doesn't become tiresome. An allegory has to be Mastery or Moorditch.
A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, helps itself on all sides, sips at every wholesome flower, and spoils not one. The true fairytale is, to my mind, very like the sonata. We all know that a sonata means something; and where there is the faculty of talking with suitable vagueness, and choosing metaphor sufficiently loose, mind may approach mind, in the interpretation of a sonata, with the result of a more or less contenting consciousness of sympathy. But if two or three men sat down to write each what the sonata meant to him, what approximation to definite idea would be the result? Little enough—and that little more than needful. We should find it had roused related, if not identical, feelings, but probably not one common thought. Has the sonata therefore failed? Had it undertaken to convey, or ought it to be expected to impart anything defined, anything notionally recognizable?
A fairytale, like a butterfly or a bee, explores every angle, drinks from every good flower, and harms none. To me, a true fairytale is very much like a sonata. We all understand that a sonata has meaning; and when people can speak with just the right amount of vague language and choose loose metaphors, minds can connect in interpreting a sonata, resulting in a more or less satisfying sense of understanding. But if two or three people each sat down to write what the sonata meant to them, how close to a clear idea would they get? Not very close—and that closeness would be more than necessary. We would likely find it stirred similar, if not identical, feelings, but probably not a single shared thought. So, has the sonata failed? Did it intend to convey, or should it be expected to communicate, anything specific, anything recognizable?
“But words are not music; words at least are meant and fitted to carry a precise meaning!”
"But words aren't music; at least, words are designed to convey a specific meaning!"
It is very seldom indeed that they carry the exact meaning of any user of them! And if they can be so used as to convey definite meaning, it does not follow that they ought never to carry anything else. Words are live things that may be variously employed to various ends. They can convey a scientific fact, or throw a shadow of her child’s dream on the heart of a mother. They are things to put together like the pieces of a dissected map, or to arrange like the notes on a stave. Is the music in them to go for nothing? It can hardly help the definiteness of a meaning: is it therefore to be disregarded? They have length, and breadth, and outline: have they nothing to do with depth? Have they only to describe, never to impress? Has nothing any claim to their use but the definite? The cause of a child’s tears may be altogether undefinable: has the mother therefore no antidote for his vague misery? That may be strong in colour which has no evident outline. A fairytale, a sonata, a gathering storm, a limitless night, seizes you and sweeps you away: do you begin at once to wrestle with it and ask whence its power over you, whither it is carrying you? The law of each is in the mind of its composer; that law makes one man feel this way, another man feel that way. To one the sonata is a world of odour and beauty, to another of soothing only and sweetness. To one, the cloudy rendezvous is a wild dance, with a terror at its heart; to another, a majestic march of heavenly hosts, with Truth in their centre pointing their course, but as yet restraining her voice. The greatest forces lie in the region of the uncomprehended.
It's really rare that words convey the exact meaning intended by any user! And even if they can be used to express a clear meaning, it doesn’t mean they shouldn't have other implications. Words are living things that can be used in different ways for different purposes. They can communicate a scientific fact, or reflect a child's dream in a mother’s heart. They are like pieces of a jigsaw puzzle or notes on a music staff. Does the music in them count for nothing? It hardly helps to clarify a meaning; should it then be ignored? They have length, width, and shape: do they have nothing to do with depth? Are they only meant to describe and never to move? Should only the clear and definite use them? The reason behind a child's tears might be completely unclear: does that mean the mother has no way to soothe his vague sadness? Something can be rich in color without a clear shape. A fairytale, a sonata, a brewing storm, an endless night can grab you and pull you away: do you struggle with it right away, questioning its power over you and where it’s taking you? Each thing's essence is in the mind of its creator; that essence makes one person feel one way and another person feel another. For one, the sonata is filled with fragrance and beauty; for another, it’s just comforting and sweet. For one, the gathering clouds are a wild dance with a sense of dread at its core; for another, it’s a grand march of heavenly beings, with Truth at its center guiding the way but still holding back her voice. The most powerful forces exist in the realm of the unknown.
I will go farther.—The best thing you can do for your fellow, next to rousing his conscience, is—not to give him things to think about, but to wake things up that are in him; or say, to make him think things for himself. The best Nature does for us is to work in us such moods in which thoughts of high import arise. Does any aspect of Nature wake but one thought? Does she ever suggest only one definite thing? Does she make any two men in the same place at the same moment think the same thing? Is she therefore a failure, because she is not definite? Is it nothing that she rouses the something deeper than the understanding—the power that underlies thoughts? Does she not set feeling, and so thinking at work? Would it be better that she did this after one fashion and not after many fashions? Nature is mood-engendering, thought-provoking: such ought the sonata, such ought the fairytale to be.
I will go further. The best thing you can do for someone, after awakening their conscience, is not to give them things to think about, but to stir up what's already inside them; in other words, to encourage them to come up with their own thoughts. The best Nature does for us is to create moods within us that lead to important thoughts. Does any part of Nature inspire just one thought? Does it ever suggest only one specific idea? Does it make two people in the same place at the same time think the same thing? Is it a failure because it’s not specific? Isn't it significant that it awakens something deeper than understanding—the power that underlies thoughts? Doesn’t it activate feelings, and therefore thinking? Would it be better if it did this in just one way instead of many? Nature inspires moods and provokes thought; that’s what a sonata and a fairytale should do.
“But a man may then imagine in your work what he pleases, what you never meant!”
"But then a person can interpret your work however they want, even in ways you never intended!"
Not what he pleases, but what he can. If he be not a true man, he will draw evil out of the best; we need not mind how he treats any work of art! If he be a true man, he will imagine true things; what matter whether I meant them or not? They are there none the less that I cannot claim putting them there! One difference between God’s work and man’s is, that, while God’s work cannot mean more than he meant, man’s must mean more than he meant. For in everything that God has made, there is layer upon layer of ascending significance; also he expresses the same thought in higher and higher kinds of that thought: it is God’s things, his embodied thoughts, which alone a man has to use, modified and adapted to his own purposes, for the expression of his thoughts; therefore he cannot help his words and figures falling into such combinations in the mind of another as he had himself not foreseen, so many are the thoughts allied to every other thought, so many are the relations involved in every figure, so many the facts hinted in every symbol. A man may well himself discover truth in what he wrote; for he was dealing all the time with things that came from thoughts beyond his own.
Not what he wants, but what he can do. If he's not a genuine person, he'll pull negativity from the best things; we shouldn't care about how he treats any piece of art! If he's a genuine person, he'll imagine true things; it doesn't matter whether I meant them or not. They exist even if I can't claim to have put them there! One difference between God's work and man's is that, while God's work can't mean more than he intended, man's work must mean more than he intended. Because in everything God has created, there's layer upon layer of deeper meaning; he also expresses the same idea in increasingly profound ways. It's God's creations, his embodied thoughts, that a person can use, modified and adapted to their own goals, to express their thoughts; therefore, he can't avoid his words and images forming unexpected combinations in someone else's mind, as there are countless thoughts connected to every other thought, so many relationships tied to every image, and so many facts hinted in every symbol. A person may well discover truth in what they wrote, as they are constantly engaging with ideas that come from beyond their own thoughts.
“But surely you would explain your idea to one who asked you?”
“But you would definitely explain your idea to someone who asked you, right?”
I say again, if I cannot draw a horse, I will not write THIS IS A HORSE under what I foolishly meant for one. Any key to a work of imagination would be nearly, if not quite, as absurd. The tale is there, not to hide, but to show: if it show nothing at your window, do not open your door to it; leave it out in the cold. To ask me to explain, is to say, “Roses! Boil them, or we won’t have them!” My tales may not be roses, but I will not boil them.
I’ll say it again: if I can’t draw a horse, I won’t write THIS IS A HORSE under what I stupidly intended to be one. Any explanation for a work of imagination would be almost, if not completely, as ridiculous. The story is there, not to be hidden, but to be displayed: if it shows nothing at your window, don’t open your door to it; leave it outside in the cold. Asking me to explain is like saying, “Roses! Cook them, or we won’t have them!” My stories might not be roses, but I’m not going to cook them.
So long as I think my dog can bark, I will not sit up to bark for him.
As long as I believe my dog can bark, I won't sit up and bark for him.
If a writer’s aim be logical conviction, he must spare no logical pains, not merely to be understood, but to escape being misunderstood; where his object is to move by suggestion, to cause to imagine, then let him assail the soul of his reader as the wind assails an aeolian harp. If there be music in my reader, I would gladly wake it. Let fairytale of mine go for a firefly that now flashes, now is dark, but may flash again. Caught in a hand which does not love its kind, it will turn to an insignificant, ugly thing, that can neither flash nor fly.
If a writer wants to make a logical impact, they need to put in a lot of effort, not just to be understood, but to avoid being misunderstood. If the goal is to inspire through suggestion and provoke imagination, then they should touch the reader’s soul like the wind plays an aeolian harp. If there's music in my reader, I want to bring it out. Let my fairytale be like a firefly that lights up and goes dark, but could shine again. If it gets caught in hands that don’t appreciate it, it will become a dull, ugly thing that can't shine or fly.
The best way with music, I imagine, is not to bring the forces of our intellect to bear upon it, but to be still and let it work on that part of us for whose sake it exists. We spoil countless precious things by intellectual greed. He who will be a man, and will not be a child, must—he cannot help himself—become a little man, that is, a dwarf. He will, however, need no consolation, for he is sure to think himself a very large creature indeed.
The best approach to music, I think, is not to analyze it with our intellect, but to be quiet and allow it to affect that part of us for which it was created. We ruin countless valuable things by being overly intellectual. Anyone who wants to be an adult and refuses to be a child must—it's unavoidable—become a bit childish, that is, stunted. However, he won't need any comfort because he's likely to see himself as quite a significant being.
If any strain of my “broken music” make a child’s eyes flash, or his mother’s grow for a moment dim, my labour will not have been in vain.
If any part of my "broken music" makes a child's eyes light up, or causes his mother's to dim for a moment, my effort won't have been wasted.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!